5035 Old fDtertptUaeAr*t~Pttm President White Library, Cornell University. Cornell University Library BX5035.L69 096 Convocation book of M DC VI. commonly ca olin 3 1924 029 447 145 The original of this book is in the Cornell University Library. There are no known copyright restrictions in the United States on the use of the text. http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924029447145 BISHOP OVERALL'S CONVOCATION BOOK. J (0) MI W a § to 7,V vi*-- l IiALIL, { 'V^^ ; -.V/V; /.V/'.uktr Oxford. JS4.3 THE CONVOCATION BOOK OF MDCVI. COMMONLY CALLED BISHOP OVERALL'S CONVOCATION BOOK, CONCERNING THE GOVERNMENT OF GOD'S CATHOLIC CHURCH KINGDOMS OF THE WHOLE WORLD. OXFORD : JOHN HENRY PARKER. M DCCC XLIV. OXFORD : PRINTED BY I. SHRIMPTON. PREFACE. King James the First, on his accession to the throne of England, adopted temperate and conciliatory measures towards the adherents of the Church of Rome. In the speech which he made at the opening of his first parliament he assured them that he was not of a persecuting temper ; and that, if the judges had formerly pressed the punishment for recusancy further than the laws intended, it was his desire that a better remedy should be adopted for that grievance" Shortly before this, he had declared himself much indebted to Clement the Eighth, the reigning pontiff, for his kind offices and private temporal carriage towards him in many things ; and that he would be ever ready to requite the same towards him as bishop of Rome in state and condition of a secular prince* But the Gunpowder Plot (hastened, pro- bably, by the severities inflicted upon the Romanists under colour of a recent Act of Parliament ) altered the aspect of affairs. Upon its discovery the parliament passed a statute requiring that all should participate in the Sacrament of the Lord's Supper in the parish church at least once in the year, under a penalty of £20. for the first year's neglect, £40. for the second, and .£60. for the third. It gave to the king the option of receiving from each recusant either a penalty of £20. monthly, or two thirds of his lands. An oath of alle- a Works of King James, pp. 491, its, seminary priests, and recusants. 492 ; Collier ii. 686 ; Kennett's Compl. This act revived all the statutes, seven Hist. ii. 670. in number, made in the reign of Queen b Feed. xvi. 573. Elizabeth against all manner of re- c 1 Jac. I. cap. 4. An act for the due cusants. execution of the statutes against Jesu- O PREFACE. giance was prescribed, the refusal of which, involved the recusant in all the terrible penalties of a praemunire d . The Convocation which met in 1603 and continued its sittings amid many prorogations to 1610 e , employed itself in framing a book of canons, and the volume now printed. This latter was intended to serve a twofold object ; to discuss and to settle the origin, not only of the civil polity, but also of the ecclesiastical. It had become necessary to counteract the doctrines respecting the secular government which had been promulgated by the Jesuit Parsons, and at the same time to refute the claims of the papal supremacy so strenu- ously advanced by Sanders f . The members of Convocation therefore applied themselves to frame a work which, as the title-page sets forth, was to treat of "the government of God's Holy Catholic Church and the kingdoms of the whole world." But while thus occupied, their deliberations met with an interruption equally sudden and unexpected. The king, who was nervously sensitive upon every question which might in any way affect his prerogative, took alarm at their proceedings, and conceived that they had advanced doctrines inimical to his interests, or at the least had expressed them- selves in a manner culpably unguarded ; and he addressed the following letter e to Dr. Abbot, afterwards Archbishop of Canterbury, at that time a member of the lower house of Convocation 11 . d 3 Jac. I., cap. 4 and 5. from Bishop Overal's Convocation- ' Wake's State of the Church, p. 506, Book." (4to. Lond. 1691.) p. 35. 507, 509. h Burnet in the History of His Own ' See Bishop Buckeridge, De potes- Time, (ii. 212, foL 1734,) gives this tate Papae, p. 61. account of the matter. — ' There was a f Welwood's Memorials, p. 32; Wil- book drawn up by Bishop Overal, four- kins' Concilia, iv. 405. The original, score years ago, concerning govern- as will be seen in the following note, ment ; in which its being of a divine was formerly in the possession of Bishop institution was very positively asserted. Burnet, and in 1691 was " in the hands It was read in Convocation, and passed of a Gentleman of the Temple," see by that body in order to the publishing "The vindication of a late pamphlet, it, in opposition to the principles laid entituled, Obedience and Submission down in that famous book of Parsons to the present government demonstrated the Jesuit, published under the name of PREFACE. 7 " Good Doctor Abbot, " I cannot abstain to give you my judgment of your pro- ceedings in your Convocation, as you call it; and both as rex in solio, and unus g regis in Ecclesia, I am doubly con- cerned. My title to tbe crown nobody calls in question, but they that neither love you nor me ; and you guess whom I mean. All that you and your brethren have said of a king in possession, (for that word, I tell you, is no worse than that you make use of in your canon,) concerns not me at all. I am the next heir, and the crown is mine by all rights but that of conquest ; and Mr. Solicitor has sufficiently expressed my own thoughts concerning the nature of kingship in general, and concerning the nature of it, ut in mea persona, and I believe you were all of his opinion ; at least none of you said aught contrary to it at the time he spoke to you from me. But you know, all of you, as I think, that my reason of calling you together was to give your judgments how far a Christian and a protestant king may concur to assist his neighbours to shake off their obedience to their own sovereign upon the account of oppression, tyranny, or what else you like to name it. In the late Queen's time this kingdom was very free in assisting the Hollanders both with arms and advice ; and none of your coat ever told me that any scrupled at it in her reign. Upon my coming to Eng- land you may know that it came from some of yourselves to Dollman. King James the First did had made in this matter ; and it was not like a Convocation entering into published, as well as licensed by him, such a theory of politics : so he wrote a very few days before he came under a long letter to Abbot, who was after- suspension for not taking the oaths, wards Archbishop of Canterbury, but But there was a paragraph or two in it was then in the lower house: I had that they had not considered, which was the original, writ all in his own hand, plainly calculated to justify the owning in my possession. By it he desired of the United Provinces to be a lawful that no further progress should be made government. For it was there laid in that matter, and that this book might down that when a change of govern- not he offered to him for his assent, ment was brought to a thorough settle- There that matter slept, but Sancroft ment, it was then to be owned and had got Overall's own book into his submitted to as a work of the pro- hands,soin the beginning of this reign, vidence of God; and a part of King he resolved to publish it, as an authentic James's letter to Abbot, related to this.' declaration that the Church of England 8 PREFACE. raise scruples about this matter. And albeit I have often told my mind concerning jus regium in subditos, as in May last in the star-chamber upon the occasion of Hales his pamphlet, yet I never took any notice of these scruples till the affairs of Spain and Holland forced me to it. All my neighbours called on me to concur in the treaty between Holland and Spain ; and the honour of the nation will not suffer the Hollanders to be abandoned, especially after so much money and men spent in their quarrel. Therefore I was of the mind to call my clergy together, to satisfy, not so much me, as the world about us, of the justice of my owning the Hollanders at this time. This I needed not have done ; and you force me to say I wish I had not. You have dipped too deep into what all kings reserve among the arcana im- perii. And whatever aversion you may profess against God's being the author of sin, you have stumbled upon the threshold of that opinion, in saying upon the matter that even tyranny is God's authority, and should be reverenced as such. If the king of Spain should return to claim his old pontifical right to my kingdom, you leave me to seek for others to fight for it ; for you tell us upon the matter before- hand, his authority is God's authority, if he prevail. " ' Mr. Doctor, I have no time to express my mind further in this thorny business. I shall give you my orders about it by Mr. Solicitor ; and until then, meddle no more in it, for they are edge tools, or rather like that weapon that's said to cut with one edge and cure with the other. I commit you to God's protection, good Dr. Abbot, and rest, " Your good friend, " James R." It is clear that these canons did not obtain the royal assent, and therefore possess no authority, although they are 1 From this point the letter was in the king's own hand. PREFACE. 9 not without their value as an index of the theological opinions of the Church of England at the period. The text of the present edition is founded upon the follow- ing manuscripts. A. The original copy drawn up under the inspection of Dean Overall, prolocutor of the lower house of Convocation, and attested by him at the end as having been thrice read and approved^. It is a folio volume, written with care and neatness upon paper ; and, in general, in a good state of pre- servation, excepting that the tops of a few of the leaves at the beginning have been gnawed away by mice. This injury is at least as old as Sancroft's time, as corresponding blanks occur in his transcript. The first book consists of one hundred and five pages. With the second book a new scribe was employed, and a different system of arrangement adopted ; each chapter being now written upon a separate gathering of paper, the first and last leaf of which were left blank, and the whole series, marked with the letters from A. to L. in- clusive, were bound together. The third book varies from the two former in the total absence of canons, and in the signature of Overall being added after the 'placet' at the end of each chapter. Along with this manuscript are preserved three loose folio sheets of paper, which contain the corrections proposed by the members of the upper house of Convocation when the manuscript draught passed before them for revision. It is somewhat singular, however, that of the proposed alterations some are found inserted in the text of this manuscript. These corrections are adopted in the present edition, and the read- ings which they have supplanted are thrown to the bottom of the page. This volume is preserved among the manuscripts belong- x See p. 272. 10 PREFACE. ing to the episcopal library of Durham, (folio, 11.) It is not difficult to conjecture how it came there. Cosin, the founder of this library, had been secretary and librarian to Overall, and was with him at the time of his death; upon which occasion it probably came into his possession 1 . For the use of this highly-important manuscript, the editor offers his thanks to the Venerable the Archdeacons of Durham and Northumberland, the official trustees of the Episcopal Library at Durham. B. A small fragment of the first book, extending only to the end of the thirteenth canon" 1 - It is a contemporary manuscript, in folio ; and contains readings, some of which agree with the uncorrected readings of A, others are pecu- liar to itself, and in a third class it agrees with Bishop Barlow's copy, which will be presently described. The use of this manuscript has been permitted to the editor by the Dean and Chapter of Durham 11 , to whom he begs leave to offer his thanks for their kindness. C. A transcript made from the volume A. by Sancroft, probably at the time when as prebendary of Durham he obtained the loan of that manuscript from Bishop Cosin, his 1 And yet there is a passage in a authority of the king's supremacy in letter from Cosin, at that time preben- causes ecclesiastical, and setting forth dary of Durham, to Morton, Bishop of the unjust authority claimed and that see, in which he speaks concerning usurped by the Bishop of Rome over this book in terms which make the kings and all other Bishops in the suggestion of the text somewhat doubt- world. I think there be few living ful. He writes as follows : ' I shall now, besides your Lordship, that were but trouble your Lordship with a few members of that Convocation ; and I lines more, and make an end. Often- would gladly receive your Lordship's times have I heard it from my Lord knowledge of that work, by whom it Overall, when I had the happiness to was penned, how far it passed in the live with that rare and excellent man, Synod, and what became of it at last V that when he was Prolocutor of the This letter is dated 8 August, 1648. Convocation House, A.D. 1606, there Morton's answer, which would have was a certain book, made, as I remem- thrown much light upon the subject, is ber, by Archbishop Bancroft, or some unfortunately not extant, other, at his appointment, then proposed m See p. 18, note x - and read before the clergy, who for- " It is marked Hunter's MS. folio, mally gave their 'placets' to it, to have 27, and is described in the Catalogue it published and printed in the name of as 'Inferences drawn from the Old the whole synod. It was a book, if my Testament.' memory fail me not, asserting the just PREFACE. 11 diocesan. From this copy it was afterwards printed, the licence being signed by Sancroft himself shortly before his deprivation of the revenues of the Archbishoprick of Canter- bury". This transcript is of no great importance. It passed, along with the Archbishop's other books, into the library of Emmanuel College, Cambridge p , by the liberality of the Master and Fellows of which (more especially of the Rev. R. J. Bunch, one of the Fellows) this manuscript was lent to the editor. Besides these authorities, a most important manuscript formerly belonging to Bishop Barlow, and now deposited in the library of Queen's College, Oxford, has been collated for this edition. The various readings which it supplies will be found at the end of the volume. It contains the first book only, extending as far as p. 78 of this volume. Bishop Barlow has written in it a conjecture respecting the date of the Convocation in which these canons passed, whence it appears that he was unacquainted with the Durham manuscript, which contains a note of the precise year, namely 1606 q . At the end of the volume, immediately following the last canon, are these memoranda and signa- tures. " The said 36 Chapters, with the Constitutions made upon them, have passed with one consent both the Convocation Houses, and so are approved." "R. Cant." " The said 36 Chapters, with the Constitutions made upon them, have been diligently read and deliberately examined, ° The licence is dated 24 June, 1689. subscriptionibus patet Ric. Bancroft The variations which it supplies from fuisse Cantuariensem archiepiscopum, the text of the present edition are dis- sequitur synodum hanc inter annos tinguished in the notes by the letter D. 1604 and 1610, sub Jacoho rege cele- P Marked, I. 2. 24. bratam fuisse : siquidem Rich. Ban- i ' Quo anno coacta est haec synodus croft electus est [archi]episcopns Can- mihi certo non constat ; cum tamen ex tuariensis anno 1604, moritur 16.10.' 12 PREFACE. and thereupon have likewise passed with one consent in the Convocation House of the province of York. Jo. Bristol, prseses Convoc. Edward Maplet. Ebor r . Richard Snowden. Gun,. Goodwin, proloc. Rob*. Whittell. Christopher Lyndley. Hen. Bankes. Leo. Lowther. Hen. Rebank. [?] Tho. Dodson. Chr. Nelson. Ri. Harwood. Richard Slater. Clement Colmore. Roger Bellwood." H. Swinburne. On the fly-leaf of the manuscript is the following memo- randum in Archbishop Laud's handwriting. "A tract proving the supremacy of kings and chief civil governors above the High Priest, from the Creation to the end of [the] Jewish estate. "These 36 Chapters, with the Constitutions made upon them were with joint consent approved in the Synods at [?of] Canterbury and York in Archbishop Bancroft's time; as appears in fine libri hujus. "I have heard there was a second part to prove the like, from Christ to this present. But I could never see it, nor could I tell whether it ever passed the Convocations, as this did. " W. Cant." For the collations of this manuscript, as well as for much assistance rendered to the work generally, the Editor tenders his thanks to the Rev. W. F. Audland, M.A., Fellow of Queen's College. 1 Here Archbishop Laud has added 1 640, who was then bishop of Bristol the following note. ' This was the now and Dean of York, bishop of Worcester, Dr. Thornborough, 'W. Cant.' The Title and Preface to the former edition are as follow. Bifhop OVERALL'S Cott\)otattoit^Booi M DC VI. Concerning the GOVERNMENT OF God's CATHOLICK CHURCH, AND THE KINGDOMS OF THE Whole WORLD. LONDON, Printed for Walter Kettilby, at the Bishop's Head in St. Paul's Church- Yard, 1690. AN Advertifement TO THE READER. THAT Convocation in which the Acts and Canons {now Printed) pass'd, was first call'd An. 1603. I mo Jac. and continued by Adjournments and Prorogations to 1610. The Three following Books are publish' d from a Copy care- fully and faithfully transcribed from the Original MS. which was Bishop Overall's, and drawn up by him; after whose Decease, it came into the Possession of D r . John Cosin, some- time his Secretary, and after Lord Bishop of Duresm, who bequeathed it, with other his Books, both Printed and Manu- script, to the Publick Library, by him founded at Duresm, for the use of that Church, where {it is suppos'd) it is yet to be seen. TJie First of these Three Books was also heedfully compar'd, and in some casual defects, supply' d from another MS. which from the Attestation of Archbishop Bancroft {who there pre- sided) at the end thereof, under his own hand, seems to have been the Original, that then pass'd the Upper-House of Con- vocation ; And after his Decease, it came to his Successors the Archbishops of Canterbury. And among them, to Archbishop Laud, as appears under his own hand-writing, in the last Page of it. And is now, or was lately, in the Possession of D r . Barlow, the present Lord Bishop of Lincoln. 16 TO THE READER. In the First and Second of these Books, there were several Amendments made by the Upper-House of Convocation ; all placed at the end of Bishop Overall's MS. and according to such Amendments, inserted in their proper places, is the fol- lowing Book Printed. Note, That the Numeral Letters in the Margin, through- out the First Book, refer to the Pages in Bishop Overall's Original MS. at Duresm, as in the second Page following, ii. p. in MS. means the second Page in that MS. 1$ sic de cceteris. In the First Book of that MS. Placet is set at the bottom of every Page, and in the Printed Copy that word is some- times misplaced by a line or two; as on the Margin, p. 10. Placet is set against I. 8. which should have been against I. 10. CONCERNING THK GOVERNMENT OF GOD'S CATHOLIC CHURCH, AND THE KINGDOMS OF THE WHOLE WORLD. BOOK FIRST. CHAPTER FIRST. Amongst the rest of the titles and attributes of God in BOOK the Scriptures, which are common to the blessed Trinity, these following are three, viz. Creator, Lord of lords, andi 5. King of kings; which be there applied as well to the Son ofRev.19.16. God, our Lord Jesus Christ, the second Person in the said [3 ?] io.' blessed Trinity, as to God a the Father, and to God the Holy f eb ' h 3 ' Ghost. Agreeably whereunto, and not otherwise, our chief Col. 1. 16. purpose being to imitate the Scriptures, in setting out and [22—31.] describing the Deity and dignity of our Saviour Christ, by His Almighty power, and universal government of all the world, as heir of all things, and head of His Church ; we hold it fit to begin with His Divine power of creation : and thereupon in the sense aforesaid do affirm that He in the beginning did create both heaven and earth ; and that amongst the rest of the creatures which He then made, He created our first parents, Adam and Eve, from whose loins mankind is de- scended 15 . " ' Amongst those attributes, and Personin the sacred Trinity, as to God.' names of God, which are common in The ahove passage, being wanting in the Scripture to all the blessed Trinity, MS. A, is supplied from B, with the are these, to be the Creator and exception of the marginal references. Governor of the world, the Lord of which are taken from C. lords, and King of kings, which be b ' From whose loins it is also mani- there applied as well to the Son of fest in the Scripture that the whole God, our Lord Jesus Christ, the second race of mankind is descended.' B. BOOK I. OVERALLS CONVOCATION BOOK. CANON I. If ang man tfterefore sfiaH«affirm toitb ang ^Pagan, heretic, &tbeist, or ang ot^cr profane persons, fobtcb fenofo not, or [beliebe] not tfje Scriptures, either tfiat fieaben antf eartb [ba& no beginning, or tftat] tbe foorto foas mace bg angels, or [tbe ftebil c ; tftat tbe foorUf foas not] otbertoise matte bg ©ftrist, tfian [as f^e foas an instrument of] CGoU tbe jfatber for tbe making [of it ; or tbat |^e &Qj not, as CRolJ,] create our safO parents, &&am [anlr T,bt d , be irotb greatlg err e . PLACET EIS.] CHAPTER II. To him that shall duly read the Scriptures', it will be plain and evident that the Son of God, having created our first parents, and purposing to multiply their seed into many generations, for the replenishing of the world with their posterity, did give to Adam for his time, and to the rest of the patriarchs and chief fathers successively before the flood, authority, power, and dominion over their children and offspring 8 , to rule and govern them; ordaining by the law of nature h , that their said 1 children and offspring j (be- gotten and brought up by them) should fear, reverence, honour, and obey them. Which power and authority before the flood, resting in the patriarchs, and in the chief fathers, 3 because it had a very large extent, not only for the education c Pro, made by inferior angels and tares.' B. The reading of the text is the devil, lege, made by angels or the from an addition made by red chalk in devil. Auth. Correct. B. omits the the margin of A. words ' or the devil.' e Pro, their children and nephews, * The authorized corrections re- lege, their children and offspring. Auth. quire us to remove these words, ' or Correct, and A. that He did only create the superior h Pro, and ordained by the very rules parts of our bodies, and the devil the of reason and law of nature, lege, or- inferior,' the exact position of which in daining by the law of nature. Auth. the Canon does not appear. Correct. ' Ordaining by the very law e In fine canonis deleantur hasc verba, of nature.' A. The curse of God be upon him. Auth. ' ' said' is struck through in A. with Correct. red chalk, as if to be removed. ' Pro, the book of Genesis, lege, J Pro, that their said children and the Scriptures. Auth. Correct. ' To him nephews, lege, that their said children that will carefully peruse the Scrip- and offspring. Auth. Correct, and A. I. OVERALL'S CONVOCATION BOOK. of their said k children and offspring, whilst they were young, BOOK but likewise for the ordering, ruling, and governing of them - afterwards, when they came to men's estate. And for that also it had no superior [authority, or power, over, or above] it on earth, appearing in the Scriptures, although it be called either patriarchal, regal, and imperial, and that we only term it potestas patria ; yet, being well considered how far it did reach, we may truly say that it was in a sort ' potestas regia ; as now, in a right and true construction, potestas regia may justly be called potestas patria m . CANON II. If ang man shall therefore affirm that men at the first, Without all gootr education, or ctbilitg, ran up anir iroWn in foooirs, anir fielirs, as fotlir creatures, resting themselbes in tabes, anir irens, anil acfenowletfgtng no supertoritg one ober another, until then Were taught hg experience the necessttg of gobemment; anir that thereupon theg chose some amongst themselbes to orirer anir rule the rest, gibing them power anir authort'tg so to iro ; anir that consequentlg all cibil power, jurisirictton, anir authoritg, was first treribeir from the people, anir irtsorirereir multituire ; or n either is originallg still in them, or else is ireiruceir hg their consents naturallg from them ; anU 4 is not CUoir's orirtnance originallg iresceniring from ?^im, anir irepeniring upon ?^im°, he troth greatlg err. PLACET EIS. k This word is struck through in A. stands thus. ' And for that also it had 1 Pro, it was vere potestas regia, no superior authority, or power, over or lege, it was in a sort potestas regia. above it on earth, appearing in the Autk. Correct, and B. Scriptures, although it be [not] called m The greater portion of this last either patriarchal, regal, or imperial, sentence is destroyed in A, the text and that we only term it potestas patria ; given above is supplied from B. The yet, being well considered how far it Auth. Correct, for ' above it on earth, did reach, we may truly say that it was although it was called,' require us to in a sort potestas regia; as now in a read, ' above it on earth, appearing in right and true construction, potestas re- the Scriptures, although it be called,' gia may justly be called potestas patria. which accordingly has been adopted ; " ' And either.' B. whereas B. reads ' in the earth, that is ° In fine canonis, post hsec verba, mentioned in the Scriptures, although naturally from them, adde, and is not it was not then called either.' This God's ordinance originally descending reading appears to have been adopted from Him, and depending upon Him, from A. which has ' in the earth, that he doth greatly err. Auth. Correct, and is ... . then called either.' ... In C. it accordingly inserted in A. and B. B 2 BOOK I. OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. CHAPTER III. By the sin of our first parents, Adam and Eve, both they, and in them all their posterity, being so fallen from God, as that they were not [able by any natural powers,] or faculties in them, to discharge [their duties towards Him, or rightly] in any sort to know Him, as [they ought, unto salvation, or serve] His Divine Majesty p , it pleased [Almighty God in mercy (besides the law of nature left in them) to propound" 1 ] unto them another kind [of doctrine than nature could ever have] taught them, viz. the [mystery of salvation through our Lord and] Saviour Jesus Christ ; how the Son [of God, who created them, when they] were not, should in fulness of [time take upon] Him their nature, and reconcile to God again as many as should believe in Him ; the ground of which doctrine God Himself did lay down as the foundation of the Church of [G». 3. Christ, when He said, that ' the seed of the woman should 5 -' break the serpent's head.' CANON III. If ang man tfierefore sfiall affirm eitfier tfiat our first parents after tfieir fall, or ronsequentlg ang of tfieir posteritg, coulft serbe or please ffioti trulg bg ang natural powers, or faculties, tfiat were left t'n tfiem after tfie saft fall ; or tfiat tfie 5 mgsterg of salbation tfirougfi gjesus ©firist mas not a secret, fofiereunto our corrupt nature coulfc not attain ; or tfiat our gbabiour ©firist is not tfie promised seetf tfiat sfiouto break tfie serpent's ficafc ; or tfiat ang can posstblg be partakers of eber= lasting life wttfiout faitfi in ?^im r , fie trotfi greatlg err. PLACET EIS. v Pro, to reverence as they ought, or in mercy (besides the law of nature left serve, lege, to know Him as they ought in them) to propound, &c Auth. Cor- unto salvation, or serve His Divine rect. The clause is omitted in B. Majesty, &c. Auth. Correct. la A. . * In fine canonis, pro, life that do and B. the word ' duly' is inserted before not steadfastly believe in Him, lege, ' serve.' life without faith in Him. Auth. Cor. i Pro, in mercy to propound, lege, and A. and B. overall's convocation book. CHAPTEK IV. B o ok As the Son of God, having [created mankind, did ordain ~ by the law of] nature, and [light of reason, that there should be some amongst them] furnished [with lawful power, and civil authority to rule and govern the rest, in things belonging to this natural life, and civil society 8 , according to the true rules' both of nature and reason : so did He also, according to the supernatural doctrine of the Gospel u , not only ordain that there should be some likewise in His Church to rule and govern it x , but also] gave them another kind of power, supe- riority, and authority, which is termed Ecclesiastical, both for the teaching and instructing of His people in the myste- ries hid from nature, concerning their salvation through the Seed of the woman, and for the better direction and govern- ment of them in the service of God, touching their duties to God and their neighbours. The institution of which eccle- siastical calling, and authority, as also the manner of the worship of God, through the blessed Seed, from the fall of Gen. 4. our first parents till the flood, although, besides their sacri- jj 2 jj' 26 '-' fices, prayers, and preaching?, they be not expressly z set 6 down in the Scriptures 3 ; yet it is not to be doubted, but that, first, Adam for his time, and afterwards the heads, of every family of the faithful, were not only* civil governors over their kindred, but likewise had the power and execution of the priest's office ; and that they were themselves in- structed and taught from God, as they afterward did instruct and teach such as were under them in the said mysteries of 8 Pro, to govern the rest in civilibus et preaching. Auth. Correct, and A. and B. naturalibus, &c, lege, to govern the rest z Pro, be not so plainly and ex- in things belonging to natural life and pressly, lege, be not expressly. Auth. civil society. Auth. Correct. A. and B. Correct, and A. and B. 1 B. reads ' true rules and laws both a The authorized corrections require of nature and reason; so did he also the removal of the following words, not only ordain.' which appear to have originally been u Pro, supernatural and spiritual inserted in this place : ' As are the civil doctrine of the Gospel, lege, super- governors, their authority, and the rules natural doctrine of the Gospel. Auth. of reason and nature whereby they Correct. govern.' 1 Pro, be some amongst those who b Pro, the heads of every family were selected and evocated from the rest, were not, lege, the heads of every and did bear the name of the Church, family-^f the faithful were not only, but, lege, be some likewise in His Auth. Correct, and A. and B. Church to rule and govern, but. Auth. " Pfo, had'\an accession thereunto of Correct. the ^priests, lege, had the power and y Pro, besides their sacrifices, lege, execution of the priests. A. and B. read besides their sacrifices, prayers and 'priestly.' Aiith. Correct. 6 overall's convocation book. BOOK man's restitution, through the promised Seed, by faith d , and : — in the right worship and service of the true God. PLACET EIS. CANON IV. [If ang man shall therefore affirm] that the £>on of ffiob* habing [from the beginning a ©hurch upon earth,] bib leabe e them till the [floob Without priests, anb priestlg] authoritg to gobern anb [instruct them in those wags of their sa!bation f , anb in the right manner of the worship anb serbice of CGob ; or that theg might teach theme] ang other boctrine in that be- half, than that which theg hab receibeb from CBfob h f^imself, he both greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER V. As all mankind, from the creation of the world till the Gen. 5. l, flood, descended from the loins of Adam; so, after the flood, Gen 9 19 bave they all descended from the three sons of Noah, Sem, Gen. io. Cam, and Japhet. CANON V. 7 &nb therefore if ang man shall affirm with ang ^agan 1 , or profane atheist, cither that there was not ang such general beluge, or that there is ang nation or people in the worlb that both not bescenb from one of the saib three sons of Noah, he both greatlg err. PLACET EIS. d By faith, adde, and the right wor- fragments of A. ship and service of the true God. Auth. t Pro, of their salvation, or that they Correct. The addition stands in A. and taught, &c, lege, of their salvation, and B. in the right manner of the worship and ' Pro, from the beginning chosen to service of God, or that they might teach Himself a certain number to be par- them. Auth. Correct, and A. The word takers of the merits of His passion, did ' lawfully' is inserted before ' teach' in B. leave, lege, from the beginning a Church h Pro, than God Himself revealed upon earth, did leave. Auth. Correct, unto them, lege, than they had received and A. and B. from God. Auth. Correct. ' ' Salvation hidden from nature and ' Pro, with any Prometheus, Pagan, in the right manner,' B., of which read- &c. read, with any Pagan. Auth, Cor. ing there are traces in the mutilated and A. and B. OVERALL'S CONVOCATION BOOK. 7 CHAPTER VI. book Noah lived, after the flood, three hundred and fifty years, r Gen " g and saw his children's children wonderfully multiplied ; 28.] during which term of years he was the patriarch, [or chief governor over them; ruling and] ordering of them by vir- tue [of that superiority, power, and authority 11 ] which was given unto [him by Almighty God l , and was also warranted by] the laws [of nature and reason. Touching this patri- archal, or in] effect, [regal government of Noah, there is more expressed in the] Scriptures, [than there was before the flood, of the power and] authority [of Adam, or of any of the chief fathers and rulers that were descended from him. For] now there is mention made by God Himself of punishing blood by blood, which was done by the sword of justice, being the Gen. 9. 6. chief ensign and warrant of supreme and regal authority. Also Rom. 1 3. 4. the extent of this right and authority was so large, as that 8 he lawfully" 1 distributed the whole world unto his said three Gen. 9. 27. sons, and their posterity. So that -his said three sons, Gen. 10 after him, were by the ordinance of God (the chief author of 25 - the said distribution) made three great princes"; and also the sons of those three great princes (of whom about seventy are named) were the heads and governors of the families [Gen. u. and nations that descended from them °, according to their "J tongues, in their several countries p. CANON VI. 3Ef ang man shall therefore affirm either that the ctbtl pofoer anil authoritg fohtch Noah half before the flooij, foas bg the ijeluge ijeterminefii ; or that tt teas gtben unto htm again bg k ThetextofB. is here followed: inZ>. Auth. Correct. ' And accordingly also it stands thus; ' authority of the sword their sons, in number about seventy- two, of justice which was given.' became the heads and governors of the 1 Pro, of a sword by God, lege, of families and nations that should descend the sword of justice by God. Auth. of them, according.' A. and B. Correct. " Pro, that should descend of them, m [Epiphan. in Anchorate. Luther, lege, that descended from them. Auth. in Gen. Pererius in Gen. Func. Chron. Correct. Sulpit. Sever. Schast. Geron. Chro. lib. p The authorized corrections require 2. Selnec. in Gen. cap. 1 0, Georg. Fabric. us to cancel ' as it is expressed in the in Gen. ch. 10. etNic. Gibbons in Gen. Scriptures, of Sem, &c. usque ad held,' 10.] see note A at the end of the volume. but the exact position of the clause is n Pro, besides the Holy Ghost by not indicated. Noah did order and appoint that the 1 Pro, by that deluge extinguished, sons &c, lege, and also the sons of those lege, by the deluge determined. Auth. three great princes, of whom about Correct. ' By that deluge determined.' seventy are named, were the heads &c. A and B. OVERALL'S CONVOCATION BOOK. book bts sons anir nepbefos; or tbat be recetbeif from tbem tfie : — sfoor& of fits soberetptg ; or tbat rtje sat& Htstrtbutton &fU toepenti upon tbetr tonsents, [or recttfacir from tbem] ang sucb autborttg as foitbout tbe same [tt coultt not IatofuIlB] babe been matte ; or tbat rtjts pofoer, [superforftg anir autborttg, anlj all tbe] parts thereof, fobtcb Noab's [tijree sons anU tbetr cfittoren fiatt,] (as ts before fceelarer/,) [Ufa not proceed ortgtnallg from €Ero&, or] were not properlg [|^ts ordinances, but tfiat tbeg fiatr tbe same] from tbe people, [tbetr offspring, be fcotb greatlg err. PLACET EIS.J CHAPTER VII. It is also certain that as the civil magistrates, and their authority, continued after the flood for the government of mankind according to the laws of God and nature r , that thereby they might be kept in order, touching their duties both towards God and their neighbours, agreeably to the said laws, written afterwards more fully, by God s Himself in two tables : so did the priesthood and authority ecclesi- astical also by the like ordinance of God, continue especially amongst the offspring of Sem, both to govern them eccle- siastically, and to instruct them in the mysteries of their salvation through the blessed Seed of the woman, according to the doctrine of the Gospel, which was from time to time in divers manners delivered by the Son of God unto them. This priestly office, and ecclesiastical authority, was yet joined' (as before the flood,) with the office of the chief fathers, and civil governors. Noah himself was both a Gen. 8. 20. prince and a priest"; [he built altars,] offered sacrifices, * Pro, both of God, reason and was yet joined, as before the flood, with nature, lege, of God and nature. Auth. the office &c. Auth. Correct. .... Correct. ' Acording to the laws and * Authority remaining still united, as appointment both of God, nature, and before the flood, in the persons of the reason.' A. and B. chief fathers.' A and B. " Pro, written afterwards by God, u The words 'during this continu- lege, written afterwards more fully by ance of his priesthood' are required God. Auth. Correct. 'Written after- to be cancelled by the authorized cor- wards by God Himself.' A and B. rections. It is probable that they ' Pro, was yet added and annexed, stood in this place. The word ' both ' as before the flood, to the office, lege, is omitted by B. OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. y and [taught the Church, after the flood, three hundred and BOOK fifty-three x years,] all that which he [had learnt from his L — . fathers y , concerning the creation of the world, the fall of man, and of his restitution by Christ, and generally, all that did concern necessarily, either civil societies and government, or ecclesiastical assemblies z and authority, not pmitting the very ceremonies.] After Noah, the chief fathers, Seni, [Abraham, Isaac, and] Jacob did execute that office, God Himself renewing unto them this promise of salvation through the blessed Seed a ; and not only confirm- ing the same to Abraham and his posterity b by the sacra- Gen. it. ment of circumcision, but likewise teaching and instructing 10, them in that heavenly mystery, sometimes by His own voice, and sometimes by visions, and divers other ways, whereof 10 the Scriptures make more plain mention than they do of the delivery of the same evangelical doctrine before the flood. canon vn. li ang man shall therefore affirm either that the priestlg office, anil authoritg eccU&tastttal, mhich Noah fiaJj before tjje flootr, mas bg that toeluge &etermine& c , or that it was bg the election of his offspring conferred again upon htm d ; or that &em, Abraham, Isaac antr 3Jacob, mere neither priests, nor haU ang ecclesiastical authoritg, until theg mere chosen there- unto hg their children antf nephems ; or that the priesthoofc antt ecclesiastical authoritg mere not the [or&inances of Sfoir, for the] goberning antr instructing of the GChitrcfi, [according to 1 B. reads ' three hundred and fifty salvation through the blessed Seed. years. Auth. Correct, and A. and B. i Pro, from his father Lamech, who b Pro, confirming the same by the had been instructed by Adam himself, Sacrament, lege, confirming the same lege, from his fathers. Auth. Correct. to Abraham and his posterity by the In B., ' learned from his father Lamech Sacrament. Auth. Correct. Instead of and Mathuselah, who had been in- ' posterity ' A. and B. have ' seed.' structed by Adam himself, concerning.' c Pro, deluge extinguished, lege, * Pro, ecclesiastical conventions, lege, deluge determined. Auth. Correct, and ecclesiastical assemblies. Auth. Cor. A. and B. an( j /j. d Pro, again unto him, lege, again * Pro, promise, through the blessed upon him. Auth. Correct, and A. In Seed, of salvation, lege, promise of B. it is ' unto him.' 10 overall's convocation book. book the fotll anto] Directions of ffio& f^tmself treltt>ere& [an& re- — '- — bealefo unto them e , as ts aforesaft, fit trotf)] greatls err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER VIII. [As before the flood Cain and his] posterity were opposite to the posterity [of Seth, and might therefore generally have] been called the Church f Malignant ; so fell it out after the flood in the generations of Japhet, but especially of Cham, against the posterity of Sem, in whose lineage the true worship of God, through the blessed Seed, was especially continued : and not that only, but in like manner as the children of Seth in process of time provoked against themn Gen. 6. the wrath of God by corrupting their ways, and following in L ' '■■ their conversation the generations of Cain, and were in that respect, all of them, with the rest of Cain's offspring, justly Gen. 7. punished and drowned by the flood, saving eight persons, — - 1 (Noah and his wife, Sem, Cham, and Japhet, and their three wives,) so did the posterity, not only of Cham and Japhet, as well before as after the g confusion of tongues, and the death of Noah, but likewise the offspring of Sem (who were called more effectually to the knowledge of the mysteries of Christ, and right service of the true God) [leave the ways of Noah h ] and Sem', and gave just [occasion to Almighty God (had He not bound] Himself by His [covenant to the contrary) to have Gen. 10. 8. drowned them] all again. [Nimrod, descended of Cham, not contenting himself with the patriarchal or regal mild govern- ment, ordained of God by the laws of reason and nature, became a tyrant and lord of confusion ; and by histories k ] it is apparent, that within few ages [after the death] of Noah * Pro, God Himself revealed unto Noah. Auth. Correct. ' As well be- them, lege, God Himself delivered and fore as after the death of Noah, but revealed unto them. Auth. Correct. In likewise.' A. and B. B., ' delivered unto them.' h Pro, of Christ, leave the ways f Pro, and might generally have prescribed them by Noah and Sem, been called after a sort the Church, lege, of Christ and right service of the lege, and might therefore generally true God, leave the ways of Noah and have been called the Church. Auth. Sem. Auth. Correct. ' And service of Correct. In B., 'and might have been the true God.' A. and B. called.' ' 'leave the ways taught them by.' A. * Pro, after the death of Noah and k Pro, by profane histories, lege, confusion of tongues, lege, after the by histories. Auth. Correct, and B. confusion of tongues and death of overall's convocation book. 11 his sons, great barbarism and confusion fell among their BOOK generations, through their pride and dissoluteness, in that — ^— they thought scorn to be governed, either civilly or ecclesi- astically, as God Himself, by Noah, had ordained 1 , or to be ruled™ 1 otherwise than as they list themselves : and touching the service of God, and the ecclesiastical authority, they mingled with true religion many false worships, and chose priests among themselves to serve God after their own fashions; or rather they devised to themselves many gods, and found out priests accordingly, such as were content to train them up in those kinds of impiety. In Chaldea itself Josh.24.2. and the places adjacent, the children of Semwere all of them 3] a ' n( ii2. almost grown to be idolaters; [insomuch] as God Himself, '• to keep a remnant more carefully, [that should through] the 12 public profession of His name, be [partakers of His mercies in] Christ, called Abraham with his [family from the habitation of his] fathers, to become a [stranger in the land of Canaan. CANON VIII. If therefore ang man sball affirm tbaf] tfie sa& posteritg of Ctfoaft ftis [cftil&ren tttU well in altering either] tfte manner or form of cibil gobernment, wbicft ffiotr ftati appointed, bg bring- ing in of tgranng or factious popularitg ; or of tfte ecclesias= tical, bg framing unto tfiemselbes a new feiniJ of priestftootf anlr worsftip after tbeir own bumours ; or tftat it was lawful for sucb as fften serbefc ffiotr, upon ang pretence to babe imitated tfteir examples in eitfter of tftose courses, be fcotfi greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER IX. It is apparent in the Scriptures, that although God was not pleased that the issue of Jacob's children should, by the 1 Pro, by Noah had prescribed, the interest of the civil magistrates, lege, by Noah had ordained. Auth. thinking scorn to be ruled, lege, or to Correct, and A. and B. be ruled otherwise. Auth. Correct. The m Pro, through pride the people cancelled reading stands in A . and B. thrust themselves in many places into 12 overall's convocation book. book example of the sons of Noah, grow up to become the heads — of so many several nations, but continuing together, should make one people and nation, to be ruled and governed by the same laws and magistrates : yet it seemed good to His heavenly wisdom, that in so great a people as He foresaw should" descend from Jacob's children, no one tribe or family should continue [charged both with u the regal and] ecclesiastical functions; [and therefore Jacob p making way 13 to the fulfilling of the] will of God herein, did [take just occasion, moved thereunto by the] Spirit of [God, to deprive his eldest son Reuben of his interest by birthright in both those prerogatives, to be disposed afterward by God upon other of his brethren. Now after Jacob's death, the former Gen. 49. 8. thereof, viz. the sceptre,] in process of time, fell to [Judah, as Jacob before had] prophesied; and the other also, viz. the priesthood, was afterwards given to Levi by God's ordi- nance" 1 . CHAPTER X.' After Jacob's death, till Moses was sent to deliver the chil- dren of Israel out of Egypt, there is little in the Scripturestouch- ing either the civil or ecclesiastical government. [It appear- eth, that Joseph being a great prince in Egypt, by the king's authority, whilst he bred, was chief amongst his brethren 8 : but after his death, through the tyranny of the kings of Egypt, which God suffered to lie heavily upon them for many years, " ' As should descend.' D. » In A. and B. the ninth canon here " 'Both with the civil (or regal) follows, and.' D. • ' ' It is apparent that Joseph, heing * ' Jacob, very well knowing the appointed by Pharaoh a great prince will of God.' B. and governor over all Egypt, was con- « The greater portion of this chapter sequently, whilst he lived, the chief is destroyed in A. from ' both with ruler under the king over his brethren the regal,' until within a few words and all their issue. But within a short of the conclusion, but it is here printed time after his death, their servitude from the authorized corrections ; daily increasing, the civil authority which introduce it without specifying which any of the tribes had, was very the readings for which it was to small.' B. ; which apparently, from the be substituted. ' To foreshew that his few words that remain, has been the eldest son Reuben should be deprived reading of A . The authorized cor- of his birthright, whereby he was to rections require the removal of the lose both the civil government over his words ' which continued the space of brethren, and the prerogative of the years,' the position of which is not priesthood. The former whereof, viz. obvious, the sceptre.' B. overall's convocation book. 13 the civil authority, which any of the tribes had, was very small ; BOOK there was such jealousy of their number, (which daily increased : above all ordinary expectation,) as it is not likely that the kings successively would suffer any great authority to rest in them;] howbeit, we think they had some*, either the chief heads of the tribes generally", or of the tribe of Ephraim and Reuben, (for it may be, Jacob's prophecy of Reuben's losing the prerogatives of his birthright was not presently executed,) which did in their civil affairs, appertaining to themselves, bear some chief sway amongst them x . And touching the priesthood, although the people were then generally much polluted with idolatry, yet therein also they had some, most likely the firstborn 7 , who although they durst not there offer 14 sacrifices to God, as they should in that servitude 2 , yet some of them (we doubt not) instructed the people in matters con- cerning the promises of the blessed Seed, and performed, as Josh. 24. they might, the other offices of their priesthood, although 2 o, s.™ many of the people, and of the priests, as it seemeth, were then greatly polluted with idolatry 3 . CANONS IX, AND X. b M. M ang man therefore sfiall affirm eitfier tfjat tfie uniting of tfie cfiil&ren of gjacob into one nation, or the seber= ing of tfie cttul anf ecclesiastical functions (tfie prerogatives of furtfirigfit) from Heufcen tfie first-born, anfc Uibfoing of ffiem from one person, foas mafce fig tftemselbes c ; 1 The authorized corrections require * So required to be corrected from, us to adopt the present text, which 'who although they durst not offer indeed stands in A. and B., for ' how- sacrifice in that servitude,' which yet is beit we doubt not but that either the,' not the reading of A. and B. which and also that the word ' peradventure' stands thus, ' who although they durst ( which does not occur in A. or B.) not offer sacrifices to God publicly in should be removed. that servitude,' &c. « The authorized corrections give * In A. and B. the canon marked X. the reading of the text instead of ' of here follows. the tribe of Ephraim and Reuben, " The present arrangement and text which did in their civil affairs,' as it are according to the authorized cor- stands in A. and B. rections ; in A. and B. Can. lX. follows 1 Corrected from 'bear the chiefest Chap. IX. sway then.' The reading of the text c Or that the division of the priest- is found in A. and B. hoodfrom thereal [regal, £.] authority, ' An authorized correction from 'and having been before united in one per- touching the priesthood, the same con- son, was made by Jacob s sons tnem- tinued in the firstborn,' as in A. an&B. selves, or by the rest of his offspring, 14 overall's convocation book. book X. ©r tfiat tfieir serbitu&e to lEggpt foas unfustlg suffered — - — to lie upon tfiem so long bg &lmigfitg ©oft; or tfiat tfieg being ^ts ©fiurcfi, f^e left tfiem {restitute of sucfi comforts of Direction antf instruction as foere necessarg, tfiose times con- sftreretf, for tfieir cibil or ecclesiastical estate; or tfiat tfie people tooli tfien upon tfiem tfie appointing of tfie fieatis of their tribes anir families, or tfie cfioice of tfieir cibil superiors, or of tfie priests ; or tfiat tfie example of tfiose foicfeetf feings mag be ang lafoful warrant for ang otfier feing so to oppress tfie people, anU CCfiurcfi of CErotr, fie Kotfi greatlg err d . PLACET EIS. nca.vei CHAPTEE XL 15 nunc 10. notions. "When the time came that God in mercy was pleased to deliver the children of Israel out of Egypt, and to place them in the land which He had promised them, He raised up His Deut.33.5. servants, Moses and Joshua, to take that charge upon them ; and accordingly Moses being made their prince, or (as the Scripture speaks) their king, did not only by God's appoint- ment and assistance lead them out of Egypt, but governed them (being six hundred thousand men on foot, besides women and children) forty years by his authority in the wilderness; and Joshua likewise succeeding Moses in the same princely power e and authority, did, after many diffi- culties, bring them into the land of Canaan, and gave them lawful possession thereof. So that, although formerly the children of Israel were kept in such great servitude and bond- not without their choice, or that Jacob sidered, necessary for them ; or that the himself in taking of both from his people took upon them the choice either eldest son, or [as] dividing the one from of their civil superiors, oroftheirpriests; the other, as aforesaid, did commit any or that the examples of those wicked sin, or that he bad not authority from kings may be any lawful warrant for [God] so to do; he doth greatly err. any other king so to oppress the people, placet eis. A. and B. and Church of God, he doth greatly d If any man, therefore, shall affirm err. [placet eis A,~\ A. and B. either that this servitude was unjustly ° The authorized corrections require laid upon them by Almighty God ; or the above reading to be substituted for that they, being His Church, were desti- 'succeeding Moses in the same regal tute of such comforts of instruction and power.' The correction is in the text of government, as were, those times con- A. and B. overall's convocation book. 15 age, whilst they were in Egypt, as notwithstanding their BOOK number, they were no way able, like a free people, to lift up — h — . their heads : yet now they are knit together in one body, and settled as a particular state f and free nation in their own country, being ruled and governed successively, after a mild and temperate manner, first, by Moses in the wilderness, (as is aforesaid,) and then by Joshua in Canaan, whilst he lived. CANON XI. If ang man therefore shall affirm either that the children of Israel were Uelibereti out of lEggpt ha thetr own strength, an& not hg e&o&'s especial direction anft mightg power ; or that it 16 hail heen lawful for them (not warranted hg CEfoiJ) to habe ireparteU thence as theg ofte, without licence first obtained of femg ^haraohe; or that Jffloses anir Joshua were not calleK to that high authoritg hg CJoir f^imself, hut receibeir the same from the people, as fcepentring upon their choice; or that Bathan antr &hiram (tresceniretr from Steuben) tan he fusti= fieU in challenging of Jffloses, that he tooft too much upon him, in executing onlg that authoritg which ©air hair giben him, he tooth greatlg err". PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XII. 12 ca. nunc 13. As Almighty God took order for the settling of His people Auth - Cor - . Tedious, in the land of Canaan, and established a princely authority to rule and govern them civilly, so was He no less careful of His Church. For howsoever the priesthood was disposed of before this time, yet now it 1 is apparent in the Scriptures, Exod. 28.. [l].Levit. ( Pro, as a particular kingdom, by their father Jacob, and Joseph ;' but $j -i lege, as a particular state ; and so it is no such passage occurs. r4.7^1 j in A. and B. ' ' Howsoever Jacob's will was exe- k pj * s ' Or that it had been lawful for them cuted before this time, concerning the ' L.?' "• to have departed thence without licence' priesthood, yet' is the reading required 'J is the reading of A. and B., which is to be amended, as in the text, by the here amended by the authorized authorized corrections, while A. and corrections. B. read, ' For howsoever the priest- h In this chapter the corrections re- hood was disposed of before the quire us to read ' had heen by Abraham, deliverance of Israel out of Egypt, yet Isaac, and Jacob,' instead of, ' had been it is apparent 16 book that the same was after settled in the tribe of Levi : and Aaron : — was made, by God's appointment, (for the better government of the Church,) the Chief and High Priest ; the whole priest- hood being assigned to his children and their offspring, as well to succeed him in the said highest place, as also to execute the other inferior functions belonging to priests ; and the rest of the tribe of Levi were to attend other ecclesi- astical services. PLACET EIS. CANON XII. 17 If an?) man. therefore sfiall affirm eirfier tfiat tfie tribe of Hebt was assignor bg tfie people, to unifertafee tfie satU ecclesi= astical offices ; or tfiat glaron anil fits posterity were cfiosen bg tfie people to be tfieir priests ; or tfiat tfieg were not cfiosen fcirectlg bg <5ob f^imself ; or tfiat tfie people fia& any lawful interest at ang time afterwarfcs, either to cfioose tfieir priests, or (being appointed of ffioi, as is aforesai& k ) to trepribe tfiem of tfieir plates ; or tfiat ©orafi, of tfie tribe of Hebi, can be justi- fies in saging tfiat glarou took too mucfi upon fiim, tfierebg repining eitfier tfiat &aron was ratfier maire |^igfi priest tfian fie fiimself, or tfiat tfie priestfiootr was annexed to Aaron's pos- teritg, wfiereas tfie rest of tfie Hebites toere to serbe in inferior places, fie fcotfi greatlg err 1 . PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XIII. Num. 27. Before Moses' death, God had appointed Joshua to succeed him, but in Joshua's days He appointed none to follow him immediately: whereupon, after his death, the Israelites were™ left without a chief head, or prince to govern them 11 . They k ' Or they being.' D. given above. ' Which thing was done, 1 In fine Canonis ' peradventure' not for that God ceased to care for deleatur. Auth. Corrections. them, or utterly neglected them, but to m ' Were then and often afterwards these ends rather, that they might find left.' A. and B. by experience what it was to want a " A. and B. read as under, but the chief governor, and feeling the mani- alterations require the text to stand as fold inconveniences thereof, might overall's convocation book. 17 18 had then remaining their particular judges and officers book appointed by Moses, at Jethro's counsel, in their several - — : — tribes ; as also the general senate of seventy elders, ordained by God, upon Moses' complaint, over all the nation. Yet there fell very great disorders and confusions amongst them, for want of a chief judge and governor, whereby they might see their own disabilities and errors, and find by experience what it was to want a chief governor ; and furthermore be moved when they were in distress, to flee unto God, and depend only upon Him for the raising up of one from time to time, to deliver and defend them. And it is apparent that the people, shortly after Joshua's time, falling most strangely into gross idolatry, and being from time to time, during the history of the judges, very grievously afflicted by the bor- Judg : 2; dering nations and such as dwelt amongst "them, when they found themselves still unable to withstand their enemies using any great force against them ; then they had (for the most part) recourse to God by prayer, who did at such times appoint one for their prince, chief captain and ruler, to deliver them from their said enemies ; we say ' for the most part,' because sometimes they attempted some matters of import- Judg. 9. ance without v seeking any chief governor from God, as at one time the people of Sichem presumed to choose them a prince of their own after Gideon's death, which turned both to his ruin and to their destruction. And it is 4 here generally to be observed, that when there was the greatest liberty amongst the Israelites, during the time from Joshua till Saul, (whatsoever the people thought of their own courses,) the disorders and idolatry in those days were ascribed by the Judg. 17. Holy Ghost to the want of judges, chief rulers or kings, jg j .' 2 {. amongst them, who should have reformed those enormities, 25 - be moved to depend wholly upon the when they found. A. and B. Divine Providence for the raising up of ' Pro, they attempted to make war one from time to time, to deliver them without any chief governor from God in their great distresses, and defend and at one time, lege, they attempted them from their enemies ; and chiefly some matters of importance, &c. as in for the chastising of them for their text. Auth. Corrections. . . . they at- unthankfulness, idolatry, and many tempted to make wars without seeking other grievous enormities. For it is of any chief governor. A. and B. very evident that the people after ' Pro, and it is moreover to be ob- Joshua's time falling most strangely served, lege, and, it is here generally into gross idolatry, were from time to be observed. Auth. Corrections. And to time ' it is also to be observed. A. and B. " And it is also as manifest that 18 overall's convocation book. BOOK not only in them, but likewise in the priests themselves ; if L they did not r their duties, especially in suppressing of idolatry, as they should have done. PLACET EIS. CANON XIII. is If ang man therefore shall affirm cither* that the Israelite* fell not into mang ebils anb bisorbers, bg being left bestitute of a certain chief gobernor after Joshua's beath ; or that fohen ffiob raiseb up jubges to rule anb gobern them, the people's tonsent boas necessarg thereunto; or that the satb jubges, being once appointeb bg ffiob to those places, receibeb their' authoritg in tfjat behalf from the people ; or that the fact of the &ichemites mag latofullg be imitateb bg ang Christian people, in so choosing" to themselbes a king or jubge, accorbing to fteir ofon humours ; or that the foant of kings, princes, anb rulers in ang rountrg, is not the mother of bisorber anb con* fusion, he botlj grcatlg err x . PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XIV. It is manifest in the Scriptures, that Moses (directed by the Spirit of God) did foresee that the time should come when the Israelites being quietly settled* in the land of 1 Pro, the priests themselves who, rule and govern them, He expected the for aught that appeareth, did not, lege, people's consents, or that the said the priests themselves, if they did not. judges being once appointed by God to Auth. Corrections. The uncorrected those places, received any authority in reading is preserved in A. and B. that behalf from the people,' &c. ■ Pro, either it was not expedient ' Pro, received any authority, lege, for the Israelites to be left destitute of received their authority. Auth. Cor- a certain governor after Joshua's death, rections. 'Received any authority.' A. as the case stood, or that when God and B. &c. He expected the people's con- u Pro, Christian people in choosing, sent, lege, either that the Israelites fell lege, Christian people in so choosing, not into many (&c. as in text) Auth. Correction, and A. and B. Auth. Correction. But A. and B. * MS. B. here ends, read, ' If any man therefore shall t Pro, that when the Israelites were affirm either that it was not just with quietly settled, lege, that the time God, or not expedient for the Israelites should come when the Israelites being to be sometimes left destitute of a quietly settled. Auth. Correction. The supreme and certain governor after MS. A. reads, ' that the time should Joshua's death, (their sins so deserving,) come that the Israelites.' The follow- or that when God raised up judges to ing emendation follows, but the exact 19 Canaan, should be governed by kings after the manner of BOOK other nations. And therefore Almighty God did set down — — '-—- by Moses's pen the duty of all kings, and the rules 2 whereby 15, i6,&o. 20 they ought to govern. Jacob also (being illuminated by the same Holy Spirit) did not only foretell that it would come to pass that the tribe of Judah should bear the sceptre, and that the kingdom, or government of Judah, should be held by succession, according to the manner of other nations; but likewise, that the said sceptre or government should not be taken away from that tribe until the coming of Christ. And Gen. 49. it seemeth that the people were not altogether ignorant of ' this foreseen alteration ; when finding divers wants and con- fusions amongst them after the death of one judge, before God was pleased to appoint them another, they first rashly offered to Gideon, their prince, that his children and offspring should succeed him in that government. And afterwards, j u a g . 8. being weary of depending upon God's pleasure, and misliking 22, the rule of Samuel's sons a , they urged him undutifully and 1 Sam. 8. unseasonably, that they might have a king to rule over them " as other nations had: meaning thereby principally (as we suppose) that such their kings might by succession govern them; so as one being dead they might still have another. We say, that they urged Samuel to this purpose undutifully and unseasonably ; and that thereupon Saul was appointed 1 Sam. 9. to be their king : because otherwise, if they had expected God's good pleasure and time, and contented themselves with His care over them, in raising up (when He thought meet) their judges to govern them, they should have found shortly after, that the prophecy of Jacob should have been fulfilled, and that God would have given the sceptre of Judah into the hands of David, and of his posterity according to their desire b . PLACET EIS. locality to which it refers cannot be 'And misliking the government of traced. Omittantur June verba, although Samuel's sons, they.' A. Almighty God, usque ad yet, inclusive. h The authorized corrections require 1 ' Rulers ' A. incorrectly. the following emendation, which cannot * Pro, and fearing the likelihood be exactly traced, the MS. A. not having that Samuel meant, usque ad misliked, preserved the original form of the text: they, lege, and misliking the rule of Delentur Juec verba, in their weak judg- Samuel's sons, they. Auth. Corrections, ments. c2 20 overall's convocation book. BOOK I. CANON XIV. 21 If ang man therefore sfjall affirm either tfiat tfje people of Israel &£& not griebouslg sin in being foearg of e&o&'s imme- biate election an& appointment of tfieir cfjief gobernors c ; or tfiat tfje people's preposterous Jjaste &ttf ang man preju&ice tfje ifipitg ana autfjoritg of £>aul's regal pofoer, or aftermarUs of tfje sceptre of gjuKafj ; or tfjat tfje people d tfjen fiat/ m tfiem= seines ang autfjoritg to set up a king ober tfjem, (for tfjen tfieg foouto not fjabe been so earnest foitfi Samuel to mafee tfjem a fetng,) or tfjat after ^abfU's a&bancement to tfjat feingt/om, fje mas not as trulg calletr tfjereunto fog &ob himself, as &aron mas to tfie e priestfjooH ; or tfjat BabflJ's posteritg fjatf not on ffiocr's ordinance' as rigfitful an interest to succeed fiim in fit's safer fcingtfom, as eitfjer Aaron's sons fiatt to succeed fiim in tfie priestfiooU, or JWoscs, ^josfiua, antf tfje rest of tfje fufcges, notmitfistaniring tfjat ffioti himself &itr cfioose, anU nameto tfjem parttcularlg, fiair in tfjetr gobernments ; or tfiat tfje people tfien fiati ang more autfjoritg to fjabe foitfistoolf eitfjer Babfo, or ang of fjis posteritg from being tfjetr feing, tfjan tfieg fia& to fjabe repellctr eitfjer Jffloses or ^josfiua, or ang of tfje rest of tfje juijges, fofiom Cfrofc bg name &f& appoint to gobern 22 tfjem, fie irotfj greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XV It is manifest in the Scriptures, that the kings in the Old Testament (notwithstanding that they had their kingdoms by succession) were as strictly hound to the observation of God's laws in their government, as Moses, Joshua, or any other the c Pro, of God's immediate election people then had in themselves authority of their governors, because &c, usque ad to set up. A nth. Corrections. The un- succession, or that, lege, of God's altered reading is preserved in A. immediate election and appointment of e The MS. A. here faultily omits the their chief governors, or that. Aulh. word 'the.' Corrections. ' And appointment of their ' ' Appointment' has been first governors, or that.' A. written, but it is struck through, and d Pro, or that the people did then 'ordinance' is written above it in A. once imagine that they had in them- by the same hand, selves any authority, lege, or that the OVERALL'S CONVOCATION BOOK. 21 judges or princes., elected, named, and appointed by God book Himself. They knew well, as Jethro said g , that it was im- h — possible for themselves to hear 11 and decide all the causes and i 8 ' i° ' b ' controversies that might happen in their kingdoms : and by Moses' example were not ignorant that they might have and appoint' judges to govern under them, not only in every tribe, but generally over all their kingdom : and therefore they did [Exod.18. i 21 22 1 therein accordingly follow the example of Moses, being ' ' J approved by God Himself: no way either diminishing their regal authority, or purposing to puff up their subjects with a conceit of any their own interest in government •>, which they had not from or under them; but thereby ordering their kingdoms' 1 with such a temperate and fatherly moderation, as was most agreeable for the government of God's people. PLACET EIS. CANON XV. If ang man therefore shall affirm either that the feings tit the ©to Testament were not bounb as strictlg to obseroe the 23 lafos of ffiotr in their governments, as mere Jffloses, gjoshua, anb the rest of the \ utfges ; or that then hab ang greater libertg to tfo fohat then list, than the others hatr ; or that then hair no authority, bg the example of iffloses, anir of all the rest of their pre&ecessors in their princelg government, to belegate an& appoint such fubges anft governors unber them, as the other princes formerlg unber them hab appointed; or that because the saib feings Uib imitate the saib princes, in appointing such Jubges to assist them in the government of their ftingboms, therefore their governments foere to be \ ubgeb rather aristocra- tical than trulg monarchical, he both greatlg err. PLACET EIS. * Pro, they know as well as Jethro, have judges.' lege, they knew well, as Jethro said, I Pro, conceit of any interest in that. Aufh. Correction. The correction government, lege, conceit of any their has not heen made in A. own interest in government. A. follows h 'have and decide,' MS. A. incor- the unaltered reading. rectly. k Pro, but thereby composing their 1 Pro, might appoint judges, lege, kingdoms, lege, but thereby ordering might have and appoint judges. The their kingdoms. Auth. Corrections, MS. A. reads, • might appoint and which the MS. A. follows. 22 overall's convocation book. BOOK I. CHAPTER XVI. When God first ordained civil magistrates and gave them authority, His meaning was, that the people whom they were to govern should he subject unto them. From the beginning of the world, till Moses' time, whilst the people of God that professed His true worship were governed by that authority, which was Potestas Patria 1 , and in a sort Regia ; their chil- dren and nephews were bound by the law of nature™, to honour, reverence, and obey them. God having raised up Moses to deliver the children of Israel out of Egypt, and to 24 govern them afterwards as their king or chief ruler"; they Deuts.27. promised him that they would hear him, and do those things which he in the name of God should command them. Being in the wilderness, his own sister Miriam, for using some un- dutiful speeches against him, was stricken by God with an , Num. 12. exceeding great leprosy; and so odious was the murmuring of Korah, Dathan, and Abiram, and their confederates, as the Lord caused the earth to open, and to swallow some of them Num. 16. quick, and the fire to consume the rest. Joshua succeeding p 2 ' , Moses, the people professed their subjection and obedience Josh. 1.16 unto him, saying, 'All that thou hast commanded us, we will 17,18. d j an d whithersoever thou sendest us, we will go; as we obeyed Moses in all things, so will we obey thee. Whoso- ever shall rebel against thy commandment, and will not obey thy words in all that thou dost command him, let him be put to death.' During the reign of all the judges, though the people are noted for many greatf enormities, yet we do not find that they rebelled, or shewed any great disobedience against them, whom God had set over them to rule them except the particular murmuring and opposition of the [Judg. 8. Ephraimites, against Gideon and Jephtha, at their first en- 1, &c] 1 Pro, which was vere potestas patria king or chief ruler, they promised him et regia, lege, which was potestas patria, that they &c. Auth. Corrections and A. and in a sort, regia. Auth. Corrections, <• Post hac verba, Set over them to which the text of MS. A. follows. rule them, adde, except the particular m Pro, by the laws both of reason (as in the text.) Auth. Corrections. This and nature, lege, hy the law of nature. addition is not in A, which reads 'to Auth. Corrections, and A. rule them, which He Himself did not n Pro, as their king, they made a severely revenge when the people had covenant with him that, &c. lege, as their kings,' &c. overall's convocation book. 23 trance, upon conceit they had been contemned ; which oppo- book sition God punished with a great overthrow of them. When — the people had kings, according to the manner of other [ & c g i 2 ' nations, to order and govern them, their subjection was [v. 6.] rather increased than diminished, according to p Samuel's ? Sam - 8 - description of the king's (claim or) manner of ruling, which should reign over them, to command not only over the persons of his subjects, but also over their goods : which manner of ruling or dealing, by any king, without a just cause, as it was tyranny ; so to deny it, when the necessity of the king and state did require it, according to the laws of the 25 kingdom, was a great neglect of preserving the public good, and a high degree of disobedience. Besides, it is generally agreed upon that obedience to kings and civil magistrates is prescribed to all subjects in the fifth commandment, where we are enjoined to ' honour our parents/ Whereby it Exod. 20. followeth, that subjection of inferiors unto their kings and governors, is grounded upon the very law of nature; and consequently that the sentences of death, awarded by God Himself, against such as shewed themselves disobedient and incorrigible q to their parents, or cursed them, or struck them, [Exod. 21. were likewise due unto those who committed any such offences ' ' ' against their kings and rulers, being the heads and fathers of their commonwealths and kingdoms ; which is not only appa- rent by way of consequence, but likewise by example, practice, and precept ; as where Shimei is judged to die for cursing of l Kings 2. David, the Lord's anointed'; where David himself, appointed lgam 2 4 by God to succeed king Saul, would not be induced by any 7. persuasions to lay violent hands upon his master the king ; and where it is said, Principi populi tui non maledices ; and Exod. 22. again, Ne maledicas regi in corde tuo : to which purpose much Kccl ]0 more might be alleged. 20. PLACET EIS. * Pro, Samuel's description of the ' Pro, disobedient to parents, lege, Icing's interest not only &e. usque ad disobedient and incorrigible to their disobedience, lege, Samuel's descrip- parents. Audi. Corrections. ' Incor- tion of the king's claim or manner (as rigibly disobedient to their parents.' in the printed text.) Besides, &c. Auth. A. Corrections. The MS. A. reads, ' Pro, David Christum Domini, 'diminished, as Samuel told them. lege, David the Lord's anointed. Auth. Besides, it is generally,' &c. Corrections and A. 24 overall's convocation book. CANON XVI. If ang man therefore sfiall affirm tfiat it was lawful, m tfie ®fo Testament, either for cfiil&ren or nepfiews, to fiabe been tn'sobetrient to tfieir fathers, being tfieir cfiief governors, from tfie creation till JWoses' time; or afterwartr for tfie cfiil&ren of Israel, either untfer ittoses, 3Josfiua, tfie fttfiges, 26 or tfieir feings, to fiabe been tfisobctrient to tfiem in tfieir Iafo= ful commanoments, or to fiabe murmured, or rebelled against tfiem ; or tfiat it was, in tfiose times, more lawful unto sub= Jects, for ang tause wfiatsoeber, eitfier to curse tfieir princes, lungs, or cibtl gobernors ; or to bear arms against tfiem, or to trepose tfiem from tfieir fting&oms or principalities, or to Ian biolent fian&s upon tfieir persons, tfian it was in tfie sail* times lafoful upon ang occasion for cfiil&ren eitfier to fiabe curseb tfieir parents, or to fiabe rebelled against tfiem wfien tfieg &i& reprobe or correct tfiem, or to fiabe foitfi&raton tfiemselbes from tfieir subjection, saging unto tfiem (tfieg being pribate men,) SKSe will be no more gour cfiil&ren, or gou sfiall be no more our fatfiers ; or (bearing cibil autfioritg ober tfiem) 5SSe will Bepose gou from gour gobernment ober us, antf Will be no longer ruletf bg gou ; or to fiabe offereir ang biolence unto tfiem, or to fiabe beaten tfiem, antf mucfi less to fiabe murirerei tfiem, fie tfotfi grcatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XVII. 27 When God appointed princes, judges, and kings, to reign over His people, the manner usually was, that they had notice of it 8 ; thereby to conform themselves to obedience. Exod. 4. Moses and Aaron acquainted the Israelites with God's 30 - pleasure for their deliverance out of Egypt by their service, [Gen. 12. agreeably to His promise formerly made to Abraham: and 7 > &c they cheerfully, and with great thankfulness, submitted them- selves to be ruled by them. God having appointed Joshua • Pro, that they might have notice Auth. Correct. The text of MS. A. of it, lege, that they had notice of it. follows the correction. overall's convocation book. 25 to succeed Moses, the same was signified by Moses to the BOOK Israelites, and they -willingly protested their obedience unto = — '-— - him. Likewise no sooner did the Lord assign judges to de- 18. fend and govern them, but presently they followed and obeyed f )eut - 3 *- 9 - them. Upon the people's requests, Samuel having anointed 24; 11.11, Saul for their king, when the same was made apparent unto J them, either by casting of lots, or by answer from the Lord 4 , they shouted when they saw him, and said, 'God save the iSam. 10. king.' King David being anointed by Samuel at God's 2 g am 16 appointment to succeed king Saul, and after Saul's death 13 - coming thereupon by God's direction to Hebron, the tribe of Judah presently anointed him again for their king, and 2Sam.2.4. yielded themselves to be governed by him. Seven years &0 am ' 5 ' 1 ' after (all which time, king David had wars with Ishbosheth, Saul's son) the rest of the tribes came unto David, and ac- [2 Sam. 3. knowledged that God had ordained him to be their gover- ?•] nor u , king David growing old, and having appointed from 1,] God his son Solomon* to be anointed king in his own 1 chron. lifetime ; when the people knew that Zadok the priest had 28 i ?• so anointed him, they forthwith upon the blowing of the 34. trumpets?, said all with one voice, ' God save king Solomon.' 1 Kings 1. Afterwards also the like course was held upon the death of 39 - 28 every king, to make his successor known to the people. Sometimes they were so addicted unto new kings, as they expected no further circumstance, but submitted themselves to their government : and sometimes it was held fit for the young princes to imitate king David's example, by kind iKingsi2. usage, and loving words, to knit more firmly their subjects' hearts unto them. PLACET EIS. ' Pro, when the same was made they performing thenceforward the apparent unto them either by casting duties of good subjects unto him, he of lots or by Urim, &c, lege, by would use them in all respects as be- casting of lots, or by answer from the came a just and loving king. King Lord. Auth. Correct. The MS. A. reads, David growing old,' &c. ' either by casting of lots, by Urim and * Pro, having appointed his son Thummim, or other answer.' Solomon, lege, having appointed from " Post verba, he made a covenant God his son Solomon. Auth. Correct. with them, quce sequuntur, scilicet, Having appointed by God's direction either he would &c, usque ad and his son Solomon. A. loving king, deleantur. The MS. r 'Trumpet (and never requiring any reads, ' to be their governor, he made such covenant) ' deleatur hcec paren- a covenant with them, either (as it is thesis. Auth. Correct. ' And never ex- supposed) that he would not revenge pecting any covenant' A. their following of Ishbosheth, or that 26 overall's convocation book. BO I OK CANON XVII. If ang man therefore sball affirm eftfter tbat tbe callings of JWoses, of &aron, of gjosbua, of tbe fuijges, of &aul, of BabflJ, of gbolomon, or of ang otfjer of tbe feings of 3Julrab, electeb antf nameU bg ©oft f^imself, or coming to tbeir feing* ijoms bg succession (accor&ing as ^jacob bg tfte spirit of propbecg bail forctoltr) tfftr receibe ang sucb birtue or strength from tbe people, tbeir saitt notice, presence, an& applause, as tbat toitbout tbe same, tbe safo callings of C5o&, eitber bg name or bg succession ba& been insufficient ; or tbat, if tbe people ba& foitbstoo& ang of tbem, so calleii bg ffioir, as is aforesafU, tbeg bail not tberebg sinneir, antf unjustlg opposed tbemselbes against C&otr ; or, tbat tbe feingifom of 3Ju&ab, *>8 ffioU's ordinance going bg succession, foben one feing bias ijeaU, bis ftcfr roas not in rigbt tbeir feing (bofosoeber bg some gjtbaliab be migbt be bintoreU from enjoging it), or tbat tbe 29 people foere not bountf, foifbout ang furtber circumstance, upon sufficient notice of tbeir former femg's Seatb, to babe obegeK bis beir apparent, as tbeir lafoful feing, be &otb greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XVIII. Although we doubt not but that the priests and Levites in the Old Testament were reckoned amongst the rest of such as were subject to their princes, judges, and kings; yet we have thought it fit to make the same more apparent by some particulars. Aaron the chief priest, and the rest of the Levites, after that Aaron was possessed of the high priesthood 1 , were at Moses 5 direction all" the time that he lived : and when he the said Aaron had in some sort for- gotten his duty to Moses, in joining of b his sister undutifully against him, he found his offence therein, and did humbly * Pro, were wholly at Moses' direc- " ' at the time.' A. tion, lege, were at Moses' direction. ° 'joining of,' ' joining with.' D. Auth. Correct, and A. overall's convocation book. 27 submit himself in this sort unto him : ' Alas, my lord, I book beseech thee, lay not this sin upon us, which we have foolishly L committed/ It is likewise manifest in the book of Joshua, n. that Eleazer, who succeeded Aaron, with the rest of the priests and Levites under him, disposed of themselves and of their service as Joshua their prince and governor did command [j os h. 19. them. And how obedient and humble, both the priests and i 1 ■ 21 - 21 > Levites, and the prophets themselves, were to their kings, the [2Sam.i5. examples of Zadok, Jehoiada, Azariah, Hilkiah, Nathan, 25- „l^ ingS and divers others, do declare; they submitted themselves to [iKingsl. their directions, and when they came into their presence, **- lc ' 1 ™ n - 30 made obeisance before them upon their faces to the ground. [2 Chron. Likewise having offices distributed, and assigned severally 15 - ] -] unto them by sundry kings, they executed the same in the 22. i^H; service of the temple accordingly. And as, whilst they did 23 - *•} their duties they were cherished, so upon any notorious \ 32/j lss offence committed by them, they were censured and punished. [lKings Solomon deposed Abiathar from the high priesthood, and .-j^ placed Zadok in his room. And Josiah likewise thrust all 9. 27 ; 15. the priests from the altar of the Lord in Jerusalem, who had 8 2 i ^ &° n -j defiled the high places by burning of incense d - 1 Kings 2. PLACET EIS. 26 ' 35 ' 2 Kings 23. 5. CANON XVIII. If ana man therefore shall affirm either that the priests in the ©to Testament mere not as rtghtlg antf properlg subfeets to tbe cttu'l governors, as the rest of the people ; or tbat foben tbeg ang foags offenttetr, tbeg might not be puntsfietr as lata- fullg bg them as ang others, be troth greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XIX. As we have said of the people, that when the kings of Judah were to succeed one another, their duty was to come c Pro, having their offices distinct, '' ' who had burnt incense in the high kge, having offices distributed. Auth. places.' D. Correct, and A. 28 overall's convocation book. book together with joy and gladness to receive them for their : — kings (as sent unto them as from God Himself), and accord- ingly to submit themselves unto their authority and govern- ment : so at such times, the priests for the most part, be- 31 sides their general duties, as subjects, had some further service to be then by them performed : the parts of which service are all of them manifest in the advancement of king Solomon 1 Kings 1. to the royal throne of his father king David ; where the priests, by king David's direction, did give thanks to God, and prayed for king Solomon; they offered the people's sacrifices of praise and thanksgiving to God for their new king: and Zadok the High-Priest did himself anoint him. Howbeit this their service thus by them performed, did neither give to king Solomon any right or title to succeed his father, nor to themselves any privilege or exemption from their subjection and obedience unto him. Abiathar the l Kings l. High-Priest did anoint Adonijah to have succeeded king David; and no duty (of likelihood) was omitted which was to be done in such a solemn action : but thereby Adonijah received nothing but a badge of treason against the king his father, which he carried with him to his grave ; and Zadok the High-Priest (notwithstanding that he had anointed king Solomon) was afterward as much subject, and as dutiful unto him, as he had been before unto his father king David. Nay, the greater the services are of any persons to their sovereigns, the greater is and so ought to be their subjection and obedience unto them. CANON XIX. If ann. man therefore shall affirm either that &fcontah was eberlafofulln fctng of the Israelites, because abiathar the$^tgh- priest hair anointed him ; or that fetng Solomon recetbeb from S&aiiok, or from the holn oil foht'th he pourefc upon his heatr, ann interest to his father's femglg seat, fohich fie ha& not be= ; fore, on the or&inance of ffioU an& his father's appointment e ; e Pro, by the ordinance of God, or or that Abiathar. Aulh. Correction. that Abiathar, lege, by the ordinance A . has the unaltered reading, of God and his father's appointment, overall's convocation book. 29 or tfiat &biatfiar migfit not fustlg fiabe been con&emneti for a book traitor, in tfiat fie anot'rttcir gfooniafi, as is afowsaftr ; tfie — - 1 - — rigfit of tfie feing&om being tfien in feing Babib, anb fn fifm bg ©oil's appointment, to be &isposeb of, anb bestomeb upon fits gounger son Solomon ; or tfiat it fiab not been a tratter= ous offence in jSabofe f , if being commanbeb tfiereupon bg feing Uabib to anoint feing Sbolomon, fie sfioulb fiabe refuseb so to fiabe hone ; or, tfiat ettfier 5Sabofe, or ang otfier priest, mfio aftermarbs, accorbing to tfieir buties, anointeb tfie feings of tjubafi, foere tfierebg more exempted from tfieir subjection anb obebience unto tfiem, tfian mere tfie rest of tfie people bg tfieir jog ant* applause, mfien tfieir feings mere nemlg abbanceb to tfieir feingboms, fie botfi greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XX. As it is apparent in the Scriptures that the Israelites generally, as well the priests as the people, were equally bound as subjects, personally to honour, reverence, and obey their kings : so is it there also as manifest, that the authority 33 of their sovereigns over them did not only extend to civil causes, but in like manner to causes ecclesiastical. For as it was then the duty of parents, so, by the law of nature, was it of good kings and civil magistrates, to bring up their children and subjects in the true service and worship of God; as having a care committed unto them, not only of their bodies but likewise of their souls. In which respect the chief charge that all subjects and inferior persons, of what condition soever, should diligently observe the said law of nature, (being the very same in substance that God, writing 8 with His own finger, gave unto Moses, and styled by the name of His Ten Commandments,) was principally imposed upon kings and civil rulers. They were to provide that their subjects had no ' Pro, in Sadoc, if being com- * Pro, the very same that God manded by king, lege, in Sadoc, if writing, lege, the very same in sub- being commanded thereupon by king. stance that God writing. Auth. Cor- Auth. Correction and A. rection and A. 30 overall's convocation book. book other God but Him, who made heaven and earth ; that they * — made to themselves no graven images' 1 , nor bowed down to them, nor worshipped them ; that they did carefully meet at certain times, to serve, honour, and magnify the name of God ; and that they might not be negligent in the observing of the rest of His commandments. And albeit, through the sin of our first parents, both kings and subjects were become unable so to perform these their duties of piety as they should have done ; and that therefore' the priesthood was not only to instruct them in the mysteries of their salvation hid from nature, but likewise to teach them that grace did not so evacuate the law, but that still they were bound to obey it, with this addition or interpretation, that their faith being grounded upon the blessed Seed of the woman, if they endeavoured to do that which God had commanded them, that which either they did amiss, or omitted, should upon their repentance be forgiven, and not imputed unto them ; yet this mystical and heavenly doctrine did no way release, or set at liberty kings and princes from their charge before mentioned ; but rather laid a heavier burden upon them, to 34 provide that their subjects might be trained up both in the doctrine of faith, and in such obedience to God, as His said commandments so qualified by grace, as is before mentioned, did require. CANON XX. If ang man therefore shall affirm either that natural or political fathers (Rings an& princes) in the <©l& Testament, haiJ not a charge lafo upon them bg (SdO to hring up their children antf subjects fn |^is fear ; or that the institution of the priesthood trfo more prejudice the authoritg of natural fathers, or of feings anti princes in that behalf, than grace tiia abrogate the commandments anti the ohetiience of the law j ; or, that natural parents, feings an& princes in those irags, mere not * Pro, images, that they neither hood was ordained not only, lege, and bow down, &c. lege, images, nor that therefore the priesthood was not bowed down to them, nor worshipped only &c. Auth. Correct, and A. them. Auth. Correction. In A. the > Pro, than grace did abrogate the text is that for which the correction is law, lege, than grace did abrogate the substituted. commandments and obedience of the 1 Pro, and that thereupon the priest- law. Auth. Correction and A. OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. 31 more strictlg bounir bg tfie ttoctrine of grate, tfian tfieg foere book before (in respect of ©oil's great mercg unto tfiem), to probfoe — - — tfiat tfieir cfiitoren anil subjects foere not suffered eitfier to fiabe ang false go&s amongst tfiem, or to bob unto, or morsfiip tfie lifoeness of ang tfiing mfiicfi tfieg fiati matte to tfiemselbes, to blaspfieme antr tafee in bain tfie blessed name of C&oti ; or to profane |^is ^abbatfis, or to neglect tfie obserbation of tfie rest of CEfoD's comman&ments, bg committing of mur&er, 35 atmlterg, tfieft, antr sucfi lifee offences, to tfie displeasure of dxtit), anU disturbance of tfieir families, principalities antf kingdoms; or tfiat tfie ftings, princes, or gobernors of tfie Israelites, being instructed in tfie mgsteries of tfieir salbation, mere not as mucfi bountr bg tfie lam of grace, to bring up tfieir subjects in tfie true Uoctrine, tfiat mas grouutfefc upon tfie blessetf &ee&, as tfieg mere bg tfie lam of nature, tfiat tfieg sfiouto carefullg obserbe tfie moral precepts antr command ments of ffioir; or, tfiat being so far bountr, tfieg fiaiJ not equal autfioritg to compel (as neeb sfiouto require) all tfieir subjects, of eberg calling anJj contrition fofiatsoeber, to feeep antr obserbe botfi tfie saiU lams, as foell of grace as of nature, fie trotfi greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XXI. Although it were sufficient to have shewed that godly kings and rulers amongst the Jews had authority from God, as well in causes of true religion as in other of their temporal affairs ; yet, if they had never put the same in practice, some scruple in the minds of the simpler sort might thereby have risen to the prejudice of it. But this point also is manifest in the Scriptures, and ought always, with due thankfulness 36 for the same, to be remembered. It is true that the dignity of the priests in the Old Testament, but especially of the High-Priest, was very great and eminent : howbeit, (the same notwithstanding,) had it not been for godly kings and princes, religion among the Jews, after the first public 32 overall's convocation book. BOOK I. Exod. 32. 4,21. Lev. 10. 16, 17. Judg. 2. 13; 10. 6. Judg. 2.18, 2 Chron. 19. 4, 8. 2 Chron. 17. 7, &c. 2 Kings 16. 3. ver. 11. establishment of it, would not have continued so long as it did, without very great and intolerable corruptions. k Moses did blame Aaron for yielding to the making and worshipping of idols, and reformed the offence. And again, when Aaron, being consecrated High-Priest, had, with his two sons, Eleazar and Ithamar, done amiss in burning the sin-ofFering, which they should, by God's appointment, have eaten ; and Moses, being angry with them, reproved them for it. In the days of the judges, when the people fell to the worshipping of Baalim and Ashtaroth, the Scriptures are silent what became of the priests ; but it is apparent that during the lives of the judges the people were 1 by them restrained in some sort, from that impiety whereunto still after their deaths they greedily re- turned 111 . When Jehosaphat came to his kingdom, he found the people so destitute of teachers, as that he was moved in zeal" to send the priests and many of the Levites through all the cities of Judah to teach and instruct them . Ahaz, the king of Judah, was a very great idolater, delighting himself altogether in the abominations of the heathen ; and Uriah, the High-Priest, was a fit instrument for him ; for what the one did wickedly command, the other, to the intolerable pro- fanation of God's true worship, was ready p to put the same in k Pro, Aaron being designed, &c. usque ad also after he was consecrated High-Priest both he himself and his two sons did amiss, lege, Moses did blame Aaron for (as in the text). Auth. Correction. In A. it stands thus ; 'Aaron being designed by God to .the priesthood, did yield to the making and worshipping of idols, in which respect Moses did blame him and reform the offence. Also after he was consecrated,' &c. 1 Pro, lives of their judges, they were, lege, lives of the judges, the people were. Auth. Correction and A. m Pro, returned. So that in all, &c. usque ad the high places, not the people, lege, returned. When Josa- phat came to his kingdom, he found the people so destitute. Auth. Correc- tion. A. reads thus ; ' So that in all these vacancies the priests had either lost their authority and credit or else they were little better themselves (2 Chron. 19. 4, 8.) than the people. If the priests had done their duties before Jehosaphat came to his kingdom, he had neither found them worshipping of God in high places, nor the people so destitute &c. as that they were in duty compelled to send them and many of the Levites.' " Pro, he was compelled, lege, he was moved in zeal. Auth. Correction. The reading of A. is given in the last note. ° 'In Solomon's late times,' usque ad ' much worse,' deleantnr. Auth. Cor- rection. A. reads, ' In Solomon's latter times, and likewise in the days of diverse other kings, when both he and they were addicted so much to their idolatry, it is probable, if the priest had taken any pains with them, that they might have reformed them; but (for aught that appeareth in the Scriptures to the contrary) when the kings were bad, the priests (their callings con- sidered) were many times worse.' » Pro, was always ready, lege, was ready. Auth. Correction and A. OVERALl/s CONVOCATION BOOK. 33 execution. In the days of Manasses and Ammon, groves BOOK were planted hard hy the temple ; horses were kept by the 1 — entrance of the house of the Lord, either to be offered (as it 33 _ 3 J on ' is thought) for sacrifices to the sun q , or else to carry the2Kings23. picture of it as an idol to be worshipped 1, : the priests, sundry 37 of them, served in high places, and many of the people burnt incense unto Baal, to the sun, to the planets, and to the host of heaven : all which abominations the godly king Josiah 8 L 1 Kings did abolish, reforming both the priests and the people : and 2 kings afterwards, when the kings of Judah did altogether neglect *'■ ™\ their duties in Church causes, religion decreased, and Amos 5. went to havoc. Insomuch as the Scriptures rehearsing the ? 4 3 n Cts causes of the destruction of Hierusalem, do set down this, [2 Kings amongst the rest, for one, viz. ' All the chief of the priests 23 ' 19- J had trespassed wonderfully, according to all the abominations 36. 14, of the heathen, and polluted the house of the Lord, which He had sanctified.' Much more might be alleged to this pur- pose ; as also to shew how king David, king Solomon, and 1 Chron. king Jehosaphat* distributed the Levites and priests into '*- ' <=•] their orders, and prescribed certain rules for them to observe 8. 14. See in the manner of their attendance and service. But to the ^ ; 1 ? ap ' purpose in hand this is sufficient. 2 Chron. 19.[8,&c] CANON XXI. If ang man therefore sfiall affirm eitfier that tfie goijig princes anU feings, in tfie ©to ©estament, trftr not practise tfieir authoritg in causes ecclesiastical, or tfiat in sucfi tfieir practice of it, tfteg JjiK not that fofiicfi tfieg foere bounir to tro ; or tfiat amongst tfie ^jefos tfie true foorsfiip of ffioir foas not berg mucfi furtfieretP an& continued fig tfie gotflg care anU 1 Pro, to be offered for sacrifice to " Pro, the true worship of God was the sun, lege, to be offered (as it is for the most part rather &c, usque ad, thought) for sacrifices to the sun. or that the name (?) of such godly Auth. Correction and MS. A. kings, lege, the true worship of God r [See note B.] was not very much furthered and con- 8 Pro, Josiah, and not the priest, tinued by the godly care and endea- did, lege, Josiah did. Auth. Correc- vours of their princes, or that the want Hon and MS. A. of such godly kings, &c. Auth. Cor- ' Pro, king David and king Jehosa- rection. The MS. A. reads, ' the true phat, lege, king David, king Solomon, worship of God was not for the most and king Jehosaphat. Auth. Correction part rather continued by the godly care and MS. A. and endeavours of their princes and 34 overall's convocation book. book entieabours of tfjeir princes ; or tbat tfje foant of sucfj gofclg — - — fitngs antr princes foas not tfjen an occasion anH an oppor- tunity tafeen, botfj b« tfje priests ani bg tfje people, to foIlo&M tfjeir ohm fancies, anlj to run into tnanp Wsorirers, false foorsfjips, tifolatrg, antr sun&rg sucfj abominations, fje tiotfj grcatln err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XXII. What we have said either of the authority of kings, or of the practice of it in causes ecclesiastical amongst the Jews, we would not have it extended so far by any, as if we 1 imagined that in matters of religion kings might then law- fully command and do what they list. In the separation of the priesthood from the regal principality, (the same having been formerly in one person,) they were then so by God dis- tinguished, as in some things appertaining to the office of kings, no priest as he was a priest had any authority to intermeddle; as in some other things appertaining to the office of priests, no king as he was a king might lawfully be an actor: both of them having their bounds and limits appointed unto them by God, which without sin they might not exceed. And, therefore, as we greatly blame the High- Priest Uriaz for obeying the wicked commandment of king 2Kingsi6. Ahaz, in building by his direction an altar in the temple ac- cording to the form of one that was in Damascus, so do we greatly commend the godlyzeal of Azariah the High-Priest, and 2 chron. of eighty other priests that were with him, in- .withstanding (as 26 - l '- far as lawfully they might) Uzziah king of Juda, when in the pride of his heart he went into the temple of the Lord, and would have burnt incense upon the altar of incense, 39 which none might lawfully do but priests. But it is to be kings, than by the diligence of the lawful to have rested upon them, or priests, either high or low of all sorts, (Placet,) that the want of such godly or that it was not then sometimes as kings and princes.' unlawful to have obeyed the High- " ' Extended so far, as if.' D. Priest as it was at some other times overall's convocation book. 35 observed, that they did not withstand the kings by force, or b o o K armies, but told him? that it ' did not appertain unto him, — h but to the priests, to burn incense unto the Lord ;' and '- ver- '■* therefore urged him 2 to go forth of the sanctuary. Howbeit, the king being angry with them for the same a , persisted (as it appeareth) in his former purpose ; and having incense in his hand, would have burnt it upon the altar, if Grod Himself had not struck him in the forehead with a leprosy, wherewith being terrified (as also with a great earthquake then happen- ing b , as some learned men have written from Amos c ) he Amos 1. 1. was d constrained not only to desist from that rashness, and to depart hastily out of the sanctuary e , but likewise as a leper to dwell in a house apart, (according to the law,) and 2 Chron. Jotham his son, as viceroy, ruled his father's house, and ^iJ^\ s judged the people of the land, Uzziah himself, during his life, 46.] remaining king f . CANON XXII. M ang man therefore sfiall affirm eitfier tfiat ?Kria? the $^igfi=3Prtest foas fcounti to babe built tfie safo altar, because feing gjfia? tfi& commantf fiim, or tfiat pariah anir tfie otfier priests irfir amiss fn reprobtng fetng 2K??iafi so plainly, or that tfieg lafafullg migfif babe usetrs anrj biolence or force against tbe feing's person 11 , eitfier in fiinfcrering fttm from burning of ' Pro, but only told him, lege, thus, ' as some learned men have but told him. Auth. Correction. MS. A. thought, taking their grounds from the follows the uncorrected text. Scriptures.' z Pro, and therefore moved him, c [See note C] lege, and therefore urged him. Auth. d ' He was driven.' MS. A. Correction. The MS. A. has the original c Pro, to depart both willingly and text. hastily, lege, to depart hastily. Auth. a Pro, being angry with them Correction and MS. A. for such their speeches to him, lege, ! The Authorized Corrections require being angry with them for the same. us to dele the words 'was content,' Auth. Correction. The MS. A. has the which not being preserved in the uncorrected text. MS. A., their position cannot be accu- " Pro, wherewith being put in mind rately ascertained, but apparently they of his offence, and terrified when an occurred near the end of the chapter, earthquake, he was easily induced not s Pro, or that they used, or lawfully only, &c. lege, wherewith being terrified might, lege, or that they lawfully might (as also with a great earthquake then have used. Auth. Correction. The MS. happening, as some learned men have A. agrees with the original text, written from Amos 1. 1.) he was con- h Pro, either to have, &c, usque ad strained not only, &c. Auth. Correction. verba, dwell apart, lege, either in hin- But the MS. A. reads the last clause dering him from burning of incense, or D 2 36 overall's convocation book. book intense, or fn tfirusting fiim out of tfie temple, or in compelling — -— fiim to Modi apart in a Souse, as fie IrflJ (tfiougfi fie foas a *o leper) if fie fiafc not of fiimself gietoeb to tfie obserbation of tfie lain in tfiat befialf ; or tfiat fie was Keprtbeti of fiis feing&om eitfier fig tfie saOr strofee of €ro&, or fig fits towelling in a fiouse apart; or tfiat ang tfiing wfiicfi tfie priests tfien oft, migfit fiabe been a lawful warrant to ang priest afterwarlf in tfie ©Itt Testament, eitfier to fiabe UeposeU fig sentence ang of tfieir kings from tfieir kingdoms for tfie like offences, or to fiabe usetf arms, or repressed sucfi tfieir unlawful attempts fig forcible foags, tfiougfi tfieg fiai imagines tfie same migfit fiabe tenirelr to tfie preserbation of religion ; or tfiat eitfier before tfiat time, or afterwar&s, ang priest trfO resist bg force of arms, or tiepose ang of tfie ftings, eitfier of Israel or of 3JuSa, from tfieir feing&oms, tfiougfi tfie feings of Israel, all of tfiem, anil four= teen of tfie kings of 3}utfa, mere open antf plain idolaters, [fie iotfi greatlg err 1 .] PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XXIII. 41 [Chap. 18. We have shewed before that king Solomon did lawfully p ' 27 '-! depose Abiathar from the priesthood, and placed Zadok in his room; but that any priests in the Old Testament (as likewise we have before declared) did ever depose from their crowns any of their kings, how wicked soever, or had any lawful authority k so to do, it can never be proved. Howbeit 2Kingsii. one example of Jehoiada the High-Priest is fit to be con- l, [&"•] sidered. After the death of Ahaziah king of Juda, his mother Athalia finding his children to be very young, killed in thrusting him out of the temple, had any authority to have compelled or in compelling him to dwell apart. the king by any force, or arms, to have Auth. Correction. The reading of the dwelt apart.! MS. A. is as follows ; ' Either to ' These four words are accidentally have hindered him from burning of omitted by the copyist of MS. A. incense, or so to have thrust him out k ' Any authority.' D. of the temple, or that the said priests overall's convocation book. 37 them all but the youngest, and reigned by usurpation six BOOK years over the land. The said youngest child (whose name '■ was Joash) was secretly conveyed away by his aunt Jehosha- beth, his father's sister, and the wife of Jehoiada the High- Priest, who kept him up so ' secretly in the temple, as that Athalia the usurper could never hear of him. Now after the said six years that Joash the true and natural heir appa- rent of the crown" 1 had been so brought up, he the said Jehoiada, being the king's uncle, and the chief head or prince of his tribe, sent through Juda for the Levites and chief fathers both of Juda and of Benjamin, to come unto him to Hierusalem ; who accordingly repairing thither, and being made acquainted by him with the preservation of their prince, (as is aforesaid,) and that it was the Lord's will that he should reign over them, they altogether by a covenant ac- knowledged their allegiance unto him, as unto their lawful king, and so disposed of things, as presently after he was crowned and anointed : which dutiful office of subjects being performed, they apprehended the usurper Athalia, and slew her, as before it was by the said states resolved. In all the 42 process of which action nothing was done either by Jehoiada the High-Priest, or by the rest of the princes and people of Juda and Benjamin, which God Himself did not require at their hands; Joash their late king's son being then their only natural lord and sovereign, although Athalia kept him for six years from the possession of his kingdom. CANON XXIII. If ang matt therefore shall affirm titter that Athalia &t& foell in murfcering her son's children, or that ^jehoiafta antr his wife tfffl amiss in preserving the lift of their feing 3}oash ; or that gtthalia foas not a tgrannical usurper, (the right heir of that fetngJiom Being altbe ;) or that it foas neither lafoful for gjehoia&a, anil the rest of the princes, Metrites, antr people, to hafae gtefoelj their subjection unto their lafoful feing; nor, hailing so tone, antt tfceir feing heing in possession of his 1 ' Kept him so.' D. m ' To the crown.' D. 38 overall's convocation book. book crown, to babe foine& together for the oberthrofoing of &tba* — — Ita the usurper; or that 3Jehoia&a the pJigb=3Pr.test was not bounJj, as be was a priest, both to triform the princes an& peo- ple of the Horir's promise, that gjoasb sfioute retp ober them, anil likewise to anoint him ; or that this fact, either of the princes, priests, or people, foas to be belli for a lawful warrant, for ang afterwar&s, either princes, priests or people, to babe 43 fccposetf ang of the feings of 3Ju&a, who bg right of suc- cession came to their crowns, or to babe feillc& them for ang respect Whatsoever, anij to babe set another in their places _ accor&ing to tbeir own cboice ; or tbat either this example of gjehoiaba, or ang thing else in the ©to Testament, &fo gibe then unto the f^igb=$ritst ang autboritg to Dispute, fteter- mine, or jucfge, whether the rhtforen of the Kings of ^uJ>a shoufo either be fecpt from the crown, because their fathers were foolaters, or being in possession of it, shoufof be fteposelr from it in that respect, or in ang other respect mhatsoeber, he tooth greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XXIV. Almighty God, forseeing what defects there would be sometimes in kings and civil magistrates, and sometimes not only in the inferior priests, but likewise in the High-Priests themselves ; did still (as occasion required, and for the benefit of His Church) raise up and send unto them His prophets, men endued by His Holy Spirit, with extraordinary autho- rity, knowledge, zeal and courage; who neither feared king nor priest, but told them plainly of their 11 thoughts, denounced the judgment of God against them for their sins, and executed without respect of persons such other parts of their duties as God Himself immediately gave them in charge. Notwithstanding the priests stood much upon their autho-44 ■ ' Their faults.' D. overall's convocation book. 39 rity, and bragged that the ' law should not perish from them/ book flattering themselves and the people with lying words , (as appeareth by the people's speeches, taught most likely by Jer ' - ' 4 them) ' The temple of the Lord, the temple of the Lord, this is [is. 28. 7.] the temple of the Lord;' yet the prophets told them plainly, [Jer.e.is.] that they erred, that they were covetous, receivers of gifts, ^ s- j.'l and false dealers ; that they had polluted the temple of God, [Zeph. s. that the law should perish from them, that God Himself had '■ *■] found their wickedness in His own house, that Hierusalem is.]' should be destroyed, and that they themselves should be [Ezet. carried into captivity. In respect of which, their faithful, , ' '* bold, and plain dealing, according to God's command- 11.] ment, and particular directions, the priests were for the most [Jj- 25- part greatly moved, and incensed against them. Pashur the High-Priest struck the prophet Jeremy upon the face, Jer. 20. 2. and afterwards cast him into prison ; also his death was con- spired amongst the. priests, and the rest from time to time [Jer.26.8.] were little better entreated by them. It is true that there were in those times very many'false prophets, who pretend- [1 Kings ing that they likewise were sent from God, did greatly ' ' c '* trouble that Church and state ; but their falsehood and lewd- ness ought neither to have prejudiced the good priests, nor the true prophets. PLACET EIS. CANON XXIV. If an" man therefore shall affirm either tfiat the priests in the ©10 Testament, from the highest to the lowest, mere not bountr to habe oherjetf the titrations which (Soil ff^imself ttelweretr unto them bg |^is prophets; notwithstan&ing that 45 now anh then some of them mere of the tribe of ICefai, anil con- seciuentlg in other causes were subject unto them ; or that tfie examples of the true prophets were ang lawful Warrant, either ° Pro, flattering themselves with them, the temple, &c. Auth. Correc- ting words, the temple of the Lord, tion. The MS. A. reads, ' flattering &c, lege, flattering themselves with themselves and the people with lying lying words, as appeareth by the peo- words, the temple,' &c. pie's speeches, taught most likely by 40 overall's convocation book. b o o k f 0r ang {a j ge p r0 p5£t8, or for ang orfier person or persons fofjat : — soeber, to gabe ratleti, IibelleU, threaten^*, or denounce* tfie Judgments of ffiotr against ang of tfie safir priests, according to rfieir ofon malicious Rumours (€5o» himself gabing itebet giben tfjem ang such warrant or forefenofole&ge to pronounce of surf) particular fufcgments to come;) or tgat because tfte f^«gfi= priest arA tfie rest of the priests criU amiss in tfie malicious prosecution of ©oil's true prophets, tfjeg migfit not therefore lafofullg tafee orfcer for tfie punisfjmcnt of false propfiets, fie Uotfi greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XXV. It is apparent likewise in the Scriptures, that as the godly prophets in the Old Testament dealt with the priests, so did they in like manner deal with their kings : although other- wise they were their subjects, and owed them as much duty as any other. Nathan the prophet, by God's particular 2 Sam. 12. direction, spared not king David to tell him of his offences. iKi 14 No more did Abhijah Jeroboam, nor Elias king Ahab; they [7.J denounced God's judgments boldly against them, and accord- Ij^ 1 ^ 18 ' ingly they came to pass. Also the Lord, being not bound to * 6 those laws which He prescribeth others to observe, com- 1 Kings 19. manded Jehu, a subject, to be anointed king over Israel, of purpose to punish the sins of Ahab and Jezabel : and accord- ingly Elizeus the prophet caused Jehu to be anointed, and 2 Kings 9. (Joel's message to be delivered unto bim ; who presently, upon the knowledge of God's will, and the submission of the ver. 13. princes and captains of Israel unto him, as to their lawful ver. 24. king, did put in execution the said message by killing Joram (before his p sovereign, but then his subject) and by destroy- ing and rooting out the whole posterity, sons, familiars, and priests of Ahab. In like manner Samuel (a prophet, but the p ' Before that time his.' D. overall's convocation book. 41 subject of king Saul) did not refuse', when God directly, book and in express terms, bade him both to tell his master the king, that ' the Lord hath rent the kingdom of Israel from l Sam. 15. him,' and to anoint king David to succeed him. We say to j Sam 16 succeed him, because we think that God's purpose only was ['•] to cut off Saul's posterity from reigning after him ; and not actually whilst he lived to deprive him of his kingdom, but principally to provide that David might succeed him. Certain it is that David bed not, when, notwithstanding that he him- self was anointed to succeed king Saul, yet he called him his master, and the Lord's anointed : also he prayed that l Sam. 24. God would keep him from laying his hands upon king Saul, for that he was the Lord's anointed. Likewise when one of the captains would have slain king Saul, he said, ' Destroy l Sam. 26. him not, for who can lay his hands on the Lord's anointed, ' and be guiltless ?' Furthermore, when the messenger brought him news of Saul's death, 'Wast thou not afraid' (quoth he) 'to put forth thy hand to destroy the anointed of the Lord?' 2 Sam. l. and commanding the said messenger to be killed for his offence therein, f Thy blood' (saith David) 'be upon thine [ver. 16.] own head, for thine own mouth hath witnessed against thee, saying, I have slain the Lord's anointed.' Besides, it is 47 manifest that the tribes of Israel accounted Saul to be their i Sam. 23. lawful ldng during his life. And also that they construed ^ * C ' ' Samuel's words to be meant only of David's interest to succeed him after his death : and Samuel himself (notwith- standing all that he had done by r God's commandment) left the success thereof to the disposition of His heavenly provi- dence ; and afterwards both honoured Saul before the people l Sam. 15. as his king, and likewise continued whilst he lived a dutiful ' subject unto him. pXacet eis. CANON XXV. M arts man therefore sj&all affirm ritfier tfiat tfte propfiets inext to blame for totaling so sfiarplg foiti) kings anU princes, i Pro, Samuel a prophet, but the Overall, and adopted in the text subject of Jung Saul, was not afraid of MS. A. when, lege, did not refuse when. r ' Done was by.' D. Auth. Correction in the hand of 42 overall's convocation book. book being their sobereigns, as tfiougfi Gotf's express commandments — '- — fiaU not been sufficient to fiabe autfiort?etr them so to habe fcealt ; or that the example of CBfotr's prophets in this befialf foere a sufficient foarrant for ang false prophets, or other lento persons, to habe railetf anil libelled against their feings, or to fiabe tfenouncelf sucfi ju&gments against tfiem, as tfieg in malice ettfier Besireti or batnlg imagineft ; or tfiat ang prophets, priests, or otfier persons, fiabtng no tfirect antr express com= mantrment from CSoU, migfit lafofullg imitate tfie sattf facts, either of Samuel or of 1EIt?eus, in anointing anif tn'sstgning successors to fcittgs, fofitcfi otfierfoise fiatr no fust interest, title anl> claim to tfietr feingiioms; or tfiat it is lawful for ang 48 captain or subject, fiigfi or lofco fofiosoeber, to bear arms against tfietr soberetgn, or to lag biolent fian&s upon fit's sacretr person, tg tfie example of gfefiu, (notfottfistantfing tfiat ang propfiet or priest sfiouto incite tfiem tfiereunto, bg unction, or ang otfier means fofiatsoeber, except first it migfit 8 plainlg appear, tfiat tfiere are now ang sucfi propfiets sent extraorUinartlg from Gob himself, with sufficient antr special autfiorftg in tfiat befialf; anti tfiat eberg sucfi captain, or subject*, so tncitetr, migfit be assured tfiat ffioif himself hatr, fn express foor&s, anti bg name, require*! antf commantfc& fiim so to iro,) fie tiotfi greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XXVI. Furthermore, that nothing may be omitted concerning the authority and dignity of God's prophets in the Old Testa- ment, the words of the Lord to Jeremy in that behalf, are Jer. 1. 10. with due care and diligence to be observed; 'Behold/ saith the Lord, 'I have set thee over the nations, and over the » ' That it might.' D. the alteration heing made hy the first ' ' Captain and.' D., and such was scribe, originally the reading of the MS. A., 43 kingdoms, that thou mayest pluck up, and root out, and BOOK destroy, and throw down, and build, and plant/ Now for- - — asmuch as it doth not appear in the Scriptures, that the pro- 49 phet Jeremy did at any time, as a warrior and great emperor, dispose of nations and kingdoms, or plucked up, rooted out, destroyed, or threw down kings : or that he built, or chose, or set up kings, in the places of those that he had deposed or thrown down; the ancient writers do deliver the true sense and meaning of the said words, when they expound them in sort and effect, as followeth : ' I have set thee over nations and kingdoms/ that is, I have imposed upon thee the office of prophesying, not only against the people and kingdom of Juda, but likewise against the nations and empires, viz. the Ammonites, the Moabites, the Egyptians, and the Babylo- [Jer.27.3; nians, &c, 'that thou mayest pluck up, root out, destroy, ' 'J and throw down •' that is, that thou mayest pronounce that [id. 46. wicked nations shall be pulled, or carried away, out of their 13 1 own provinces; and that thou mayest prophesy that they shall be destroyed, or killed, and dispersed in divers places, or consumed. ' That thou mayest build and plant ;' that is, that thou mayest declare that both the Jews and other nations shall, after a just and due castigation, be repaired and restored to their own proper countries. So that the prophet Jeremy, and the rest of the prophets in like manner, although they were chosen of God, to denounce to wicked persons, countries, kingdoms and nations, His deserved judg- ment for their sins ; yet were they neither the workers nor the authors of those judgments. Noah denounced the flood, Gen. 7. 1. but it cannot therefore be truly affirmed that Noah drowned the world. Daniel denounced Nebuchadnezzar's fall, but it Dan. 4. 22. was not Daniel that took his heart and understanding from him, nor that made him to eat grass like an ox. Samuel [ver. 33.] denounced the judgments of God against king Saul, but [iSam.13. Samuel did not thrust him out of his kingdom. And even ' J so, although the prophet Jeremy denounced the bondage of Babylon, and many other judgments of God against the said 50 nations, yet it cannot be either truly said that Jeremy delivered the whole kingdom of Juda into captivity, or that he overthrew or destroyed any of the rest; only he pro- phesied as God did command him, and left the executions of 44 overall's convocation book. book such judgments to the times and persons which the Lord '- — had designed and appointed for that purpose. PLACET EIS. CANON XXVI. If ann man therefore shall affirm that the prophet 3)eremg half ang authoritg to Irepose Sings from their feing&oms, for ang cause fohatsoeber, anir to bestom them upon others, as he thought fit ; or that, albeit the sato mortis mere spofeen hi? the ILorti to 3f ewm 8> an & ftat 5*> & £ t n 8 othermise an inferior priest, had no authority, Itteralln, so to cast tfofon anti set up kings, get the |^igh=^priests, men of greater power anil tfipitg, might then habe usetf feings in that manner anil sort, accortf* ing to their oxserts (the benefit anU preserbation of the ©hurch so requiring) : or that ang of the ^igh^riests (as tieribing their authoritg either from the saf& mor&s spofeen to gjeremg, or from ant thing else that is written in the Scriptures) either might, or eber &ftf, tafee upon them, to gibe this neighbour feing* &om to one man, anil that remoter feing&om to another man ; or to irepribe ann u of their own feings, either of ^futra, or of 51 Israel, from their feing&oms, though mann of them (as else= where me habe sat&) were excee&ing great i&olaters, anil sun&rg mans stainetr with lamentable blots, he both greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XXVII. The history of Jehu * before mentioned, doth put us in 1 Ehud mind what is written of Ahud l , one of the judges of Israel. We have elsewhere shewed that from Joshua's death to the time of Saul *, God Himself, when His people were oppressed " 'Deprive any,' D. reads, 'depose " [See Can. 25. p. 42.] any.' Y [See # Chap. 13. p. 16.] overall's convocation book. 45 by their bordering neighbours, did still raise up unto them BOOK governors and leaders, called judges, without respect either '■ — of any tribe, more one than another, or of the dignity of any person, or of the people's pleasure, choice and consent first required; but simply according to His own choice and wisdom : in which number the said Ahud was one ; the manner of whose entrance into that charge, we could not (our course considered) pretermit with silence. The Israelites had been eighteen years in subjection to the Moabites; as they had been a little before, eight years to the Aramites. They knew that it was not lawful for them of themselves, and by their own authority, to take arms against the kings, whose subjects they were, though indeed they were tyrants : and therefore they f cried unto the Lord for succour.' Who, [Judg. 3. . . . . 15 1 in compassion of their servitude and miseries, appointed Othoniel to deliver them from the Aramites ; and afterward Judg. s. 9. Ahud from the Moabites. In the choice of which two ver - ls - 52 judges it is to be observed that the Scriptures do tell us that 'God raised them up' (and therefore it is most certain He did [Judg. 3. 9 151 so) and also, that in such raising of them to their places H e ' made them 'saviours to His people/ (as the Scriptures speak) [Judg. 3. giving them thereby authority to save and redeem the readkS/f Israelites from the tyrants that oppressed them : without both which prerogatives it had been altogether unlawful for them to have done as they did. Besides, it appeareth in the Scriptures, that when the Lord did thus choose out, and authorize the said deliverers and rulers, He did not only give them, by His Holy Spirit, full assurance of their lawful call- [ Jud g- 3. ings, but likewise did furnish them with such wisdom and 11,'29'i 13! courage as was necessary for them in those kinds of services. ?*• * c- ] So as Ahud (at whom we principally aim) being thus both 9, &c] called and instructed from God, how he should begin his people's deliverance from the Moabites, by killing of Eglon their king, he framed his course accordingly ; and preparing for himself a meet weapon, took a fit opportunity, and there- upon (as God had directed him) he, wholly resting upon the Lord's assistance, executed that judgment upon the said king ; and afterward so vanquished the Moabites, and [Judg. 3. subdued them under the hand of Israel, as the whole land ' °~* was at rest from the oppression of their enemies four score [ver. 30.] 46 overall's convocation book. book years. Besides, it is to be observed, that as God's appoint- '- — ing by name and election of Moses, Joshua, and Saul, and after that the kingdom of Juda was held 1 by succession; the very being of the king's son, and the true heir apparent after his father's death, gave unto them all the actual interest, right and possession (as possession in those cases is to be ex- pounded) of their several governments, to do any act or acts, as well before as after any subsequent formalities and cere- monies : even so the said form of calling the judges by God Himself immediately, made them also judges actually, and did give unto them a full and absolute authority (independent upon any but upon Him that gave it them) to undertake any 53 thing that by God's direction appertained to their places. Again, there is one other example of Jehu amongst the kings of Israel, which we have before touched a , like unto this of Ahud : wherein it appeareth, that he, the said Jehu, was of a subject first made the king of Israel, before it was lawful for him to have killed Joram ; as Ahud, a subject, was first made the judge, prince and ruler of the people, before he might have lawfully killed king Eglon. Both which examples (being but in number two throughout the histories of all the princes, judges and kings, either of Juda or Israel) do make it known unto us, that although the Lord both may, and is able to overthrow any kings or emperors, notwithstanding any claim, right, title, or interest, which they can challenge to their countries, kingdoms or empires ; yet foreseeing in His heavenly wisdom, and Divine Providence, what mischief private men, under colour of these examples, might otherwise have pretended, or attempted against their sovereigns (as being either discontented of themselves, or set into some fury by other malicious persons) He did so order and dispose of all things in the execution of these such His extraordinary judgments, as that thereby it might plainly appear to any (that should not wilfully hoodwink himself) never to be law- ful for any person whatsoever, upon pretence of any revela- tion, inspiration, or commandment from His Divine Majesty, either to touch the person of his sovereign, or to bear arms against him; except God should first advance the said person from his private estate, and make him a king, or an ' ' The kingdom was held.' D. - [See Can. 25. p. 42.] overall's convocation book. 47 absolute prince, to succeed bis late master in his kingdom, BOOK or principality. PLACET EIS. 54 CANON XXVII. I. Ef ang man therefore sball affirm eitber tbat ang goblg anb b butiful subject in tbe ©IK Testament, trftr eber (bg the birectton of ©ob's spirit) account this fact of &bub to be a lawful warrant for fttm to babe nturbereb tbe fting unber whose subjection be libeb, for ang cause wbatsocber ; though be sboulb babe batr neber so mang motions tn bts fieart tbere= unto ; or, tbat tbe ?f?igb^rtest himself, or all the rest of tbe priests (who then libeb) joineb together foith him, coulb babe gtben autborttg to ang person, born a subject, to babe so bealt with bts sobeteign, tbougb be hab »«n neber so foiefceb, anb tbat sucb bts beatb might babe abaileb tbe ©butch (tn tbeir opinions) neber so greatlg ; or, tbat eitber tbe saib ?^tgb= priest, anb all ^i% consistorg of priests, migbt Iafofullg babe encouragebang, who heing born subjects, sboulb babe pretenbeb in tbetr ?eal towarb religion, neber so mang illuminations, birecttons, or rommanbments from CBfob, to babe laib btolent banbs upon their fetng, tbe Itorb's anointeb, for tbetr proceed- ing in tbat course ; or, tbat ang person, born a subject, anb ss affirming bg all tbe arguments fobiih wit or learning coulb bebtse, tbat ffiob bab calleb btm to murber tbe feing, de facto, unber Whom be libeb ; gea tbougb be sboulb first babe procureb bimself to be proclaimeb anb anointeb king, as &bontab ifiS, anb sboulb afteriuarbs babe laib btolent banbs upon bts master; ougbt therefore to babe been beliebeb of ang tbat feareb €Efob; except (which is impossible) he sboulb first probe bts crebt't, in so affirming, to be equal With tbe Scrip- tures, anb tbat men foere bounb as strictlg to beltebe btm, in saging tbat ©ob calleb anb stirreb btm up to tbe perpetrat- ing of tbat fact, as toe are bounb to beliebe tbe f^olg ©host b ' Godly and ' ' godly or.' D. 48 overall's convocation book. book (bg fo&ose instinct the Scriptures foere foritten) foften ?^e teller!) us that ffioti rats* up &fiu& for a sabtour to f^ts people, be fcotfi greatly err. PLACET EIS. I. CHAPTER XXVIII. Hitherto in the whole course of that mild and temperate monarchical government which it pleased God to establish amongst His own people, the duty of inferior persons and subjects, of all sorts, was ever obedience. They neither took upon them to choose their governors, nor to bear arms against them. Howbeit it happened otherwise amongst some other nations. Nimrod, not contenting himself with the 56 portion which, by Noah his general direction, appertained unto him, could never have erected his tyrannical govern- [Gen. 10. ment, if a number of rebellious and discontented persons r Judg 9 ^ad n0 * ; c l eave d unto him (as the factious Sichemites did to l. &c] Abimelech) and made him their king. The Romans, having kings, rebelled against them, and took the government into their own hands ; the execution whereof did trouble them exceedingly. Sometimes they committed it to many, and sometimes to fewer : their two annual consuls pleased them long, but at the last they thought it fit to have a dictator; till, in the end, Julius Caesar and Augustus reduced their government again into a monarchy. And as the Romans dealt with their kings, so did the people, in some other countries, with their governors. Whereupon divers other kinds of governments, termed, according to their temper, aristocratical, political, tyrannical, oligarchical or demo- cratical, &c. were afterwards settled in many places. The inconveniences of which forms of government being found (upon many occasions" oftsoons) to be very great, the people have been driven, of necessity, in sundry countries, to frame them again, as near as they could, to the monarchical government, either by electing to themselves kings, upon c ' Occasions oftentimes.' D. overall's convocation book. 49 certain conditions, to reign over them ; or by appointment BOOK of dukes or princes to be the managers of their chief affairs, — L according as they themselves should direct them. Besides, as the said rebellious humours of the people, declining from their obedience, did, in many countries, alter that temperate and fatherly government which Noah had prescribed unto his offspring, and which God Himself established afterwards amongst His own people ; so did the ambitious and insatiable dispositions of sundry, no less elsewhere impeach the same ; as by the beginning and progress of the four monarchies it 57 is most apparent. In all which aberrations from the said mild and temperate government, before specified, Almighty God (Who, for the sins of any nation or country, altereth their governments and governors, transferreth, setteth up Dan. 2. and bestoweth kingdoms, as it seemeth best to His heavenly ^ 3 9 c ' 1] f s c '-' wisdom) did ever, by His foresight and providence, so dispose 10. [4.] both the rebellion of subjects, and the malice and greediness of encroaching kings upon their neighbours, as albeit such their attempts of all sorts, were, in themselves, very wicked and detestable in His sight ; yet He, having the skill to bring light out of darkness, and to use wicked instruments and actions for a good purpose, did always frame and apply them to execute His own just judgments, when the sins of a nation, but principally of His own people, were of that nature, height and ripeness, as His justice could not fitly be put in execution by any other, but by the wicked. For example, in the overthrowing of Hierusalem, God's own city, in burning of the temple, that was the place of His glory, and of carrying His own people into captivity, though never so much by them deserved, no godly king could well have been employed ; but such a one only as the king of Babylon was. In respect of which their employment, such wicked instruments to execute God's just judgments are called sometimes His servants, and the rods of His wrath ; or, as Jer. 2". Attila termed himself, the scourge of God d . And when, i s 'J_ 10 having attained their ungodly desires, whether ambitious L 5 -] kings, by bringing any country into their subjection, or disloyal subjects, by rebellious rising against their natural sovereigns, they have established any of the said degene- d [See note D.] OVERALL. E 50 overall's convocation book. book rate forms of government amongst their people ; the — - authority either so unjustly gotten or wrung, by force, from the true and lawful possessor, being always God's authority (and therefore receiving no impeachment by the wickedness of those that have it), is ever, when any such alterations are 58 throughly settled, to be reverenced and obeyed, and the people of all sorts, as well of the clergy as of the laity, are to be subject unto it, not only for fear, but likewise for e • Rom. 13. conscience sake. The Israelites in Egypt, after Joseph his death, being oppressed very tyrannically, many ways, did never rebel against any of those kings, but submitted them- selves to their authority, though their burthens were very intolerable, both in respect of the impossible works imposed upon them, and because also they might not offer sacrifices unto the Lord, a special part of God's worship, without apparent danger of stoning to death. Besides, it may not be omitted, when God Himself sent Moses to deliver them from that servitude, He would not suffer him to carry them thence, till Pharaoh, their king, gave them licence to depart. Afterwards also, when the Jews, being brought into sub- jection under the f kings of Babylon, did, by the instigation of false prophets, rebel against them, they were in that Jer.28. 16; respect greatly condemned by the prophet Jeremy: and in their captivity, which shortly after followed, they lived by the direction of the said prophet, in great subjection and obedience j they prayed not only for their kings and for their children, that they might live long, and prosper, but likewise for the state of their government ; the good success whereof they were bound to seek and regard, as well as any other of the king's dutiful subjects. And thus they lived in Babylon, and other places of that dominion, till the king gave them leave to depart ; notwithstanding, in the mean time, they endured many calamities, and were destitute, for many years, of the public service and worship of God, which was tied to the temple, and might not elsewhere be practised or attempted. PLACET EIS. e ' Also for.' D. ' ' To !he kings.' D. 59 overall's convocation book. 5l BOOK CANON XXVIII. —- 1 - — Iff ang man tberefore sball affirm eitber tbat tbe subjects, foben tbeg sbake off tbe goke of tbeir obebience to tbeir sobe= reigns, anil set up a form of government amongst tbemselbes, after tbeir ofon bumours, tro not tberein berg fotckeblg : or, tbat ft is lawful for ang borotrtng kings, tfirougfi ambition an& malice, to inbaiie tbeir neigbbours : or, tftat tbe probftrence anlr gootmess of (Sotf, in using of rebellions anir oppressions to execute f^is justice against ang lung or countrg, irotfi mitigate or qualifg tbe offences of ang sucb rebels or oppressing kings : or tbat, foben ang sucb new forms of gobemment, begun bg rebellion, are after tfirougblg settled, tbe autboritg in tbem is not of (Son : or, tbat ang fobo libe foitbin tbe territories of ang g sucb new gobernments, are not hounij to be subject to (Soli's autboritg, fobtcb is tbere execute*!, but mag rebel against tbe same : or, tbat tbe 3Jefos, eitber in lEggpt or JSabglon, migbt lafofullg, for ang cause, babe taken arms against ang of tbose kings, or babe offeretf ang biolence to tbeir persons, be Uotb greatlg err. PLACET EIS. so CHAPTER XXIX. Although the Jews, upon their deliverance out of captivity and restitution to their own country, received many favours from the Persian kings, and had liberty given them to live in a sort according to their own laws; yet they never recovered their former estate, but lived in great subjection Neh. 9. and servitude under them, whilst that monarchy endured. ' The temple and city of Hierusalem were again built, hut not •with the magnificence which they had before. Zorobabel first, and then Nehemiah, were made successively by the said kings, the rulers and governors of the Jews so restored, but with divers restraints. It was not forgotten, what * ' Of such new.' D. e2 52 overall's convocation book. book mighty kings had ruled in Hierusalem, and therefore the — - — said rulers were not permitted to govern any more in that regal sort. They were still subject to the direction of Ezra 4. 20. those kings, and paid unto them very large tribute and customs ; insomuch, as when the priests gave public thanks unto God, for His restoring unto them of the state which they had, they said thus withal unto Him, as bewailing their Neh. 9. condition ; Behold, we are servants this day in the land which [36,37-] rpkou gavest our fathers; it yieldeth much fruit unto the kings whom Thou hast set over us, because of our sins ; and they have dominion over our bodies, and over our cattle at their pleasure, and we are in great affliction. The extra- ordinary favour which was shewed to any, was principally extended towards the priests, over whom the said kings had not so jealous an eye as they had over the princes and the rest of the people. Howbeit, the same notwithstanding, they, the said priests, were subject to their own immediate princes, both in temporal and ecclesiastical causes ; as formerly the priests had been to the kings of Juda before Ezra2.36. the captivity. Their governors forbad certain, who said they were priests, from eating of the most holy things. 61 Neh. 5. 12. Nehemiah ministered an oath unto the priests : he reformed the abuses of the Sabbath, and prescribed orders for the Neh.13.15. better observing thereof. He appointed certain of the priests Neh.13.13. to oversee the tithes in the treasury. He commanded the Levites to cleanse themselves, and to keep the gates, and to [ver. 22.] sanctify the Sabbath. Eliasib, the High-Priest, having defiled the temple, by letting h unto Tobias, a stranger, a chamber in the court of the house of God, (where in aforetimes the offer- ings, the incense, the vessels, and such other things, used in God's service, had been kept), Nehemiah, the governor, was greatly offended with it ; and displacing the said Tobias, cast forth all his stuff out of his sai'd chamber, and brought thither [ver. 4— again the vessels of the house of God, with the meat-offerings '-' and incense. PLACET EIS. ' Letting Tobias.' D. OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. 53 BOOK CANON XXIX. L__ If ang man tfierefore sball affirm ejtijer tbat &lmigbtg ©oil ftept not ffiin promise to tbe ^jefos ma&e in ?^is name bg tbe propfiet ^jeremg, as toucbing tbetr btliberance bg ©grus out of tfietr captfot'tg ; because tbeg mere not rcstowtr to ang surf) perfect libertg an& government as tbeg bafc before : or, tbat tbe gaftt fct'ngs of Persia, continuing still bg ffio&'s appointment a supreme autftorttg ober tfte gjetns so restored, mt'gfit bg tfjem for ang cause, or unfcer ang colour, babe been 62ftefrauUcir of tfietr tributes, or resisted bg force of arms, or otherwise impeacbefc, eitber tn tbeir states or persons : or, tbat SSorobabel anir STebemiab mere not lawful princes ober tfie 3jefos, because tbeg mere placetr in tbat gobernment butbout tbe people's election : or, tbat tbeg, tbe saffl princes, bg Healing tn cases ecclesiastical, as is aforesatir, &Qj tafce more upon tbem, tban bg ©oil's appointment appertained to tbeir cbarge : or, tbat tbe priests, botb bt'gb anij loto, bail not griebouslg sinneK, if tbeg bai< not submitted tbemselbes in tbe saitr ecclesiastical causes, to tbe Direction of tbose tbeir cibtl gobernors, fie irotb greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XXX. The High-Priest, as before we have ' said, in that mild and temperate government which God Himself had ordained, was the second person in the kingdom. Whereupon the same, after the captivity, being turned, as it were, into a dukedom, and, for ought that appeareth, the princes after Nehemiah his time growing poor, by reason of their pay- ments to those kings unto whom they were tributary : and receiving small assistance or countenance from them, because they were still jealous of them, whereas the priests, it 1 [Seep. 31.] 54 overall's convocation book. book seemeth, being freed from all tributes and impositions, grew - — rich, and were no way suspected : it came to pass, the sins of the people so requiring, that the High-Priest did easily 63 oversway both their* princes and their people, and thereby attained very great authority in that principality. Only they stood in awe, for the time, of the kings of Persia, to whose obedience they were bound by an oath, when they were made High-Priests : but otherwise, for ought we find, they had no great regard of any other authority : which so advanced the dignity of the priesthood, as afterwards the practices of the High-Priest's children, to succeed their father in that high dignity, grew as troublesome to the people as 1 Jeshua was their servitude to the Persians. For Jesus 1 , the younger brother of John, the second High-Priest after Eliasib, men- [Neh. 12. tioned by Nehemiah, procured by corruption the favour of °-' the chief governor of the Persians in those countries adjoin- ing, for his assistance, to deprive his brother, that he himself might enjoy the high-priesthood ; whereof his elder brother having some notice, did kill him in the temple : which the said governor took in so evil part, as he spoiled the said temple, being, as he said, profaned with blood ; and laid an exceeding great tribute in that respect upon the people, to indure for seven years. But John the High-Priest continued in his place k . After whose death, his two sons, Jaddus and Manasses, fell at great variance 1 : the younger, to make himself strong against his elder brother, married contrary to Neh.13.28. the law of God, with a daughter of Sanballat, another chief ruler in Samaria, under the king of Persia. For which offence Jaddus, notwithstanding the authority of Sanballat, removed him from the dignity of priesthood : and thereupon, he, the said Manasses m , procured by Sanballafs means, a temple to be built in mount Garizin, near Samaria, in form and magnificence like to that in Hierusalem, where he flourished ; and whither all the lewd persons of Juda had daily recourse n . Upon which occasion much trouble arose afterwards betwixt the Samaritans and the Jews. The said Jaddus lived till the monarchy of the Grecians began ; who, 64 k |"Jos. Antiq. Jud. xi. 7. § I.] ■ [Id. § i ; and ii. § 6. and 1 [Id. §2.] viii. § 7.] » Id. xi. 8. [See note E.] overall's convocation book. 55 • when Alexander °, having overthrown Darius the king of the BOOK Persians, sent unto him, that he should assist him in his — wars, and become tributary to the Macedonians, as he had been to the Persians ; returned for his answer, that he might not yield thereunto, because he had taken an oath for his true allegiance unto Darius, which he might not lawfully violate whilst Darius lived, being by flight escaped, when his army was discomfited. We have here cited, and shall hereafter cite some things out of the books of the Maccabees, and other ancient historio- graphers, of purpose' to continue the manner of the govern- ment of the Jews, in what case they stood from time to time, after the days of Nehemiah ; not meaning thereby to attribute any canonical authority unto them, nor to establish any point of doctrine out of them, but only to proportion and measure the regiment and actions of that people, by the rules and analogy of the sacred Scriptures p . PLACET EIS. CANON XXX. If ang man therefore shall affirm, contrarg to the grounds antf truth of the sai& f^olg Scriptures, either that, albeit tings of Persia hatf autbori?eb some succeeding princes, as theg bib 5Sorobabel anfi Nebemiah, anir whether theg bib so or no, it is not certain, net the f^igfi=^riests might afterwarbs babe lawfullg borne the swag, that theg bib, an& not been subfect unto them, as their predecessors hair been to 5Sorobabel anb 65 Nehemiah: or, that if Nehemiah continued alibe in that government till gjabbus's time, as it is probable he Uib, he might not lawfully, being authorise** as before, though he were olB, habe reformed ang abuse in the priests, both high anU low : or, that then were not bounU in conscience to babe obegeb him therein : or, that the %tto% might lawfully babe rebelled for ang cause against the Persians, buring their gobernntent ober them : or, that ^jaobus the ^igh^riest bib amiss in ° Id. [See note F.] ' ' Holy' Scriptures.' D. 56 OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. book bin&ing fit's allegiance to feing Itarius bg an oatfi : or, tfiat fie — : — fia& not stnnetr, if fie fiatf refused, being tfiereunto requires, go to fiabe sfoom : or, tfiat fiabing so sfoorn, fie tntgfit lafofullg either fiabei borne arms fitmself against Barius, or fiabe soli- citeir otfiers, fofietfier aliens or 3Jefos, tfiereunto, fie botfi greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTEB XXXI. Alexander, by God's providence, having vanquished the Persians, the Jews, amongst many other nations, became his subjects. He dealt favourably with them r , released them of some payments, granted them liberty to live according to their own laws, and left their government, in every point, as he found it s ; their duties, ordinary tributes, and some of their royal prerogatives, always reserved to the Macedonians, as they had been before to the Persians : but this their 66 tolerable estate endured not long. For, upon Alexander's death, his chief captains conspiring together, made such a scambling division of the empire, amongst themselves, as they could * : every one almost, notwithstanding, seeking how he might suppress the rest, and attain the whole alone to himself. So as, thereupon, the Jews were as free from the Macedonians, as any other of their bordering neighbours; none of the said captains having any lawful interest, or title, to Juda. But that which turned to the benefit of some others, brought a great detriment (for want of ability) unto them : for one of the said captains, having gotten to himself a very strong kingdom in Syria, and another of them in Egypt, the Jews dwelling betwixt them both, were miserable, on every side vexed by them u . Sometimes the Egyptians, i ' Lawfully have.' D. * [Jos. Antiq. Jud. xi. 8. § 5.] * * The word ' placet' isTiere acciden- ' [Id. § 7.] tilly omitted by the copyist of MS. " [Id. xii. 1. § I.] J. overall's convocation book. 57 by oppression and force, brought them under their subjection, book and imposed great tributes upon them x : and sometimes the L Syrians, growing mightier than the Egyptians, did likewise very greatly afflict them ; especially in the reign of Antiochus Epiphanes y , whose invasion and government was most unjust and tyrannical.] He shed innocent blood] on every side of 1 Mac. i. the sanctuary, spoiled the temple, erecting in it the abomin- 34- ations of the Gentiles, and caused it to be named the temple of Jupiter Olympius. The books of the law, by his com- 2 Mac. 6. mandment, were cut in pieces and burnt ; and they with 2 ' 4 ' - whom they were found, were put to death. A general com- mandment was, by him, published, that they should offer no more sacrifices, nor circumcise their children, nor execute any other parts of their own law in the service of God ; but wholly to conform themselves therein to the manner of the Gentiles. Whereupon the people, by heaps forsook the Lord, and offered sacrifices to idols ; and such as refused so to do, choosing rather to obey God than man, were most 67 cruelly slain and murthered, by thousands z ; until Mattathias, moved with the monstrous cruelty and tyranny of the said Antiochus, made open resistance a ; the government of that tyrant being not then, either generally received by submis- sion, or settled by continuance. It is not pertinent to our purpose, to intermeddle with sundry questions which might here arise. Only we observe^that Mattathias undertook that charge; that he commanded b the same afterwards to his sons c , and that it continued in them, and their posterity, until both they and that whole d country were vanquished by the Romans. PLACET EIS. CANON XXXI. If ang man therefore shall affirm either that the gjems, generallg, hoth priests an& people, mere not the sufafects of aiexantrer, after his authoritg mas settleir amongst them, as * ["Jos. Antiq. Jud.'xii. 1. § 1.] b 'Commended.' D. y [Id. iii. § 3.] * [ Id - § 3 -l , „ * [Id. v. and vi.] " ' Their whole. D. > [Id. vi. § 2.] 58 overall's convocation book. book tbeg bab been before tbe subjects of tbe flings of Uabglon an& — - — Persia : or, tbat tbeg mtgbt lafofullg babe borne arms against btm: or, tfjat tbeg foere not all bounb to prag for tbe long life an& prosperitg, botb of aiexanber anil of b«s empire, as tbeg bail been bounb before, to prag for tj&e life an& prosperitg of tbe ortjer saftf flings anb tbeir ftingboms, fobilst tbeg libetf unber tbeir subjection : or, consequently, tbat tfjep. migbt lafo- fullg, upon e [ang] occasion fobatsoeber, babe offeree! biolence antf destruction, eitber to tbeir persons or to tbeir feingboms, for tbe long continuance aniJ prosperitg fobereof tbeg foere 68 bounb to prag f : or tbat, after tbe 3Jefos bw* bdibereb from tbeir serbitutre unber tbe flings of Scgria, anb tbe gobernment ober tbem foas scttlcb in JWattatbias bis posterity, it foas Iafoful for tbe people, upon ang occasion, to babe rebelled against tbem, or to babe offereb biolence unto tbeir persons, be botb greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XXXII. The afflictions which, the Jews endured, whilst the govern- ment of the Grecians lasted, were much the more grievous unto them, by reason of the great disorders which were then amongst their priests. For whereas they should have been a stay and a comfort unto them in their greater miseries; their negligence one way, and their ambition another way, in striving about the high-priesthood, did so distract them into parts taking, as that thereby great effusion of blood did oftentimes ensue. Shortly after Jaddus his time, this was the general report, which, for their wickedness, was given out of 2 Mac. 4. them, the priests were now no more diligent about the 14 - service of the altar e , but despised the temple, and regarded not the sacrifices. They did not set by the honour of their e 'Upon occasion whatsoever.' the bottom of p. 67. MS. A. 5 ' About the altar.' D. ' The 'placet' h omitted in A. at overall's convocation book. 59 fathers, but liked of the glory of the Gentiles most of all. book The temple was full of dissoluteness and gluttony of the '- — Gentiles; which dallied with harlots, and had to do with women within the circuit of holy places ; and brought in 2 Mac. 6. such things as were not lawful. The altar also was full of such things as were abominable, and forbidden by the law ; 69 and two or three of the High-Priests applauded thereunto. Simon b , the High-Priest, leaving three sons behind him, Onias, Jason, and Menelaus, was not long dead, but Jason for three hundred and sixty talents of silver, procured such assistance of Antiochus king of Syria, as he thrust his elder brother Onias out of the high -priesthood; and not long after had the same measure repaid unto him again by his younger brother Menelaus ; who, upon some cunning inform- ation, and for six hundred and sixty talents, got that place himself. Whereupon Jason assembled forces, drave Mene- 2 Mac. 5. laus into a castle, slew the citizens without mercy, and in 5 ' the end being repulsed, died abroad as an exile. Menelaus afterwards caused his eldest brother, Onias, to be murthered, 2 Mac. 4. because he blamed him for stealing certain vessels of gold out of the temple. Next Menelaus succeeded Alcimus, whereas Onias, the son of Onias before mentioned, should in right have had that dignity'. Of all which four persons, eminent in their time, these things are left for records to posterity. Jason to get Antiochus his good will for the high-priesthood, promised him, besides his great" bribe, to set up a school of gentilism ; likewise to build a brothel- house by the temple ; and that the people of Hierusalem should be named Antiochians, after the king's name. He drew his kinsmen to the custom of the Gentiles, and sent to Tyrus three hundred drachms of silver for a sacrifice to Hercules k . Menelaus also took the like course, or rather a worse ; for besides that he conformed himself wholly in effect to the manners of the Grecians, it is further thus written of him ; Antiochus went into the most holy temple, 2 Mac. s. having Menelaus, that traitor to the laws, and to his own 2 j tfac 13 country, to be his guide. He thrust himself into the king's 3- army against Judas Maccabeus, and the city of Hierusalem ; "Jos. Autiq. Jud. xii. 6. [See ' [Id. xii. 5. § 1, and 8. § 5.] noteG.] " [Id.] 60 overall's convocation book. book hoping thereupon to have attained that government. But '- Lysias the king's lieutenant, crossed his purpose therein, and informed the king that he, the said Menelaus 1 , had been 70 1 followed the cause of all the mischiefs which had ensued ' the wars with the Jews ; as being the man who persuaded his father Antiocbus Epiphanes, to compel them to forsake the laws of their fathers ; adding thereunto, that whilst Menelaus lived, the Jews would never be quiet. "Whereupon the king com- manding him to be put to death, he was smothered in ashes ; 2 Mac. 13. because he had committed many sins by the altar, whose fire and ashes were holy™. Alcimus the High-Priest, next succeeding, was no sooner in his place, but he took upon 1 Mac. 7. him to be the captain of all the ungodly men of Israel, and solicited king Demetrius to make war against Judas Macca- beus, complaining that he had killed all the king's friends. The king thus instigated, sent an army against Hierusalem, with one Bacchides and Alcimus ; who, pretending that they came in peace, and being thereupon trusted by the Maccabees themselves (because he was a priest of the seed of Aaron), did traiterously notwithstanding, and treacherously, murther sundry of the Jews, and held the government of 1 Mac 9. that country, till Judas Maccabeus put him to flight n . Howbeit, accusing the Maccabees again of wicked things, he urged afterwards the said king to send a new army against them, and was himself, as it seemeth, in the host, when Judas Maccabeus was slain "- Besides, it is also reported of him, how he commanded that the walls of the inner court of ver. 54. the sanctuary should be destroyed, and how he pulled down the monuments of the prophets, and how in that his so wicked and profane an attempt, he was stricken with the palsy, and died with great torment p . Xow concerning Onias, (who if he had been of lawful age, and might have had his right, ought to have been High-Priest before both his uncles, Jason and Menelaus,) when he perceived that Alcimus had gotten that place, and saw no probability how he might get it from him, he fled into Egypt, and there procured a temple to be built, like unto that in Hierusalem ; 71 1 Tos.Antiq.Jud.xii. 15. [SeenoteH.] • [Id. 11. § 2.] - Id. [See note G.] ' [Id. 10. § 6.] ■ [Id. 10. § 5.] overall's convocation book. 61 whereof he was made the principal ruler q . So greedy was book he of the high-priesthood, that seeing he might not be : High-Priest in Hierusalem, he would needs be a High- Priest in Egypt, against God's commandment. But perhaps the high-priesthood amongst the Jews was better bestowed afterwards. Indeed now it came into the hands of the Maccabees ; but how they used it there is little mention. It is probable., that being so distracted as they were, and so continually in a manner vexed with wars, they had no time to execute that office in such sort as otherwise divers of them no doubt would have done. But it cannot be denied that some of that rank were greatly puffed up with that authority, and did thereby much forget themselves, and the holy duties appertaining to the high-priesthood. Else would not Aristobulus have so unnaturally famished his own mother to death r , nor have suffered the cruel murther of his innocent brother, Antigonus 5 ; nor would Alexander, suc- ceeding Aristobulus, have committed the like murther upon his younger brother ' ; or would afterwards the two sons of the said Alexander (viz. Hircanus and Aristobulus) have grown through their ambitious desires to such mortal hatred. For Aristobulus thrusting his eldest brother Hircanus from the high-priesthood, and he the said Hircanus continuing still his claim, they never ceased their hostility u , till Pompey having subdued them both, brought both them and the whole country under the subjection of the Romans i . "We omit what great sums of money they bestowed on either side, to procure Pompey's favour y : to whom they had committed the deciding of their causes z ; and also how Hircanus assisted Pompey in his attempt against Hieru- salem a , partly in hope thereby to get the high-priesthood, and partly in malice against his brother ; who, as long as he could, defended that city : the issue of all which strife was 72 this; Pompey subdued the city ; slew twelve thousand men b ; Aristobulus is put from the high-priesthood ; the civil i [Jos. Antiq. Jud. xii. 8. § 5.] * [Id. iv. § 1, 2, &c] r ' Own mother, nor have.' D. » [Id. iii. § 1, 2.J s [Jos. Antiq. Jud. xiii. 11. § 1.] * [Id. § 2.] ' [Id. xiv. § 2.] • [Id. iv. § 2.] u [Id. xvi. § 1, &c. ; xiv. 1. § 2, &c] b Id. xiv. 8. [See note K.] 62 OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. book government is separated again from the priesthood c ; the : — high-priesthood is bestowed upon Hircanus for his ser- vice, and the civil government thenceforth translated to strangers ; the temple was spoiled, and Hierusalem was made tributary to the people of Rome d . Of all which calamities falling in this sort upon the Jews, the dissention betwixt Hircanus and Aristobulus was held in those days to have been the cause e ; to the great blemish of their credits, professing themselves to be God's High-Priests. Besides, whilst Jason, Menelaus, Alcimus, and the Maccabees were busied in the said un-priestly contentions andGreekish profan- ations, divers sects of religion arose and increased amongst the Jews ; especially that of the Pharisees, a crafty and an arrogant kind of men, seditiously bent against kings f , and impugners without fear of their authority e . In which course they were the rather animated, because they found through their hypocrisy, that women were generally addicted unto them, and that the people did so admire them, as they believed in effect whatsoever they told them against any, although it were never so false, or maliciously devised by them h . And thus religion went in those days, when the priests had gotten the reins into their own hands, although we doubt not but that there were some few, notwithstanding, both of the priests and of the people, who disliking of all their said hypocritical, ambitious, profane, and wicked practices (covered sometimes with a pretence of zeal, and sometimes with the glorious name of the high-priesthood) did truly from their hearts, both fear and serve the Lord. PLACET EIS. CANON XXXII. 73 If ann man therefore (because in ffie lafo of (Sob ffiere foas great obeoience to tfie l^igfi-^riest, prescribed anir requtreb; [Mai.2.7.] or, tfiat it is saflj bn tbe propbet, STbat tbe priest's lips sfioufo c • Again from the high-priest- ' ' Against their kings." D. hood.' D. * Jos. Antiq. Jud. xvii. 13. [See d [Jos. Antiq. Jud. xiv. 4. § 4.] note L.] ' [Id. § 5.] » Id. xiii. 23. [See note M.] overall's convocation book. 63 preserve ftnofoletige, antr tfiat tfie people sfiouto seefe tfie lato of book fit's moutfi : fofiereas tfie meaning of tfie f^olg C&fiost in ffiose — - — antr sucfi Itfec places, onlgis, tfiat tfie ?^igfi=:prlests were to be obegeir fofien tfieg commanfteiJ tfiat wfiicfi was not repugnant to tfie laW of ffioir ; antf tfiat tfie 1 lips of tfie priests ougfit to preserbe fmowletrgc) sfiall affirm either tfiat it was not Wicfte&lg tone bg tfie priests, to tfirust tfie people into mang imminent dangers, for tfie maintenance of tfieir lefotf quarrels an& factions: or, tfiat tfieg ftftj not griebouslg offentr effotf, wfieu tfieg forsoolt |^is true foorsfiip, anb brougfit fieatfienisfi antr profane sacrifices into |^is temple: or, tfiat tfie people were bountfto often, wfien tfieg required tfiem to conform tfiemselbes to tfie idolatrous foorsfiip of tfie fieatfien : or, tfiat it Was lawful for ang of tfie saftr ?^igfi=$riests, eg infurg, briberg, or crueltg, to seeft tfie fiigfi=priestfiooir: or, tfiat tfie priests ani> people, tfiat |oinelr 74foitfi tfiem, irfo not wicftetrlg, fofio assisted ^ompeg to inbatre f^ierusalem, anil to bring tfieir own countrg in bondage to tfie Romans : or tfiat ang sucfi pfiarisaical sects (neber or&aineb bg ffiolJ) were lawfullg tfien permittee", to seiruce tfie simpler sort of tfie people, lea&ing tfiem into factions an& tiislifee of tfieir superiors, fie fcotfi greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XXXIII. The Jews being subdued by the Romans, and brought under their subjection, about sixty years before the coming of Christ, were used by them very kindly, and with great respect. They had liberty granted unto them to live according to their own laws ; so as they paid their tributes, and framed their behaviour to quietness and obedience. Hircanus, the High-Priest, placed by Pompey, lived long after in great authority k . But nothing would satisfy them ; 1 The 'placet' is omitted at the " Jos. de Bell. Jud. vi. 11. [See bottom of this page. note N.] 64 overall's convocation book. book till in the end, it came to pass, that as the ambition and '- — strife betwixt Hircanus and Aristobulus, brought Pompey upon them ; so now their own wickedness, and rebellious hearts, were the cause of their greater servitude, afflictions and miseries. The remnant of the Maccabees (Aristobulus and his two sons, Alexander and Antigonus) would never desist from their rebellious attempts, until they were all cut off. Antipater, their first governor, or procurator, appointed by the Romans, was poisoned by one Malicus 1 , hoping thereby, that Hircanus, the High- Priest, might have gotten a more absolute authority, and have been their chief governor. Alexander" 1 the son of Aristobulus, had been 75 before very troublesome, and carried many after him to their destruction ; but Antigonus, his brother, did far exceed him • who, by the help of the Parthians, rose up against Herod, the successor of Antipater, and taking that government upon him, cut off Hircanus, his uncle's ears, that thereby he might be unable afterwards to bear any more, to his pre- judice, the office of the Highest-Priest n . But shortly after he was subdued, and put to death " ; and his father before him was poisoned by Pompey's followers p . Howbeit, no sooner were these Maccabees thus suppressed, but divers other rebellious persons thrust forward the people into arms, under pretence of the love they bare to their country, and to the ancient liberties thereof. In which their wicked fury, sometimes they were content to follow this man, as their king, and sometimes that man; such as were one Simon, one Athroges q , r and one Manahemus s ; all of them very lewd and base companions : and at some other time every rebellious rout or company would needs have a king of their own ; whereby, in every corner of that commonwealth, there was a petty king, who still led the people, by heaps, to the slaughter, and perished themselves with them'. Also there were some amongst them, who finding no good success, 1 Jos. Antiq. Jud. xiv. 18, 19. ' 'AthroDges.' D. [See note O.] r Jos. Antiq. Jud. xvii. 12. [See ■" Id. 10. [See note P.] note R.] ° Id. 13. [See note Q.] « Jos. deBell. Ju&ii. 17. [SeenoteS.] ° [Id. xv. 1. § 2.] ' Jos. Ant Jud. xviii. 1, 2. TSee note ' [Id. xiv. 7. § 4.] T.] overall's convocation book. 65 by having of such kings, did run into a contrary course, BOOK affirming it to be unlawful for the Jews to acknowledge any — - — man, but God Himself, to be their king; and that they ought rather to suffer death, than to call any man lord u . The sum is, that notwithstanding any distractions x , dissen- sions, or bloody combats amongst themselves, which were very many and strange, their hearts were so hardened in rebellion against the Romans and their governors, as they refused either to pay them any more tribute, or to pray for them ; but standing upon their walls, when they were 76 besieged, Ceesari, et patri ejus rnaledicebant y . There was never, we think, so obstinate and desperate a people ; for, in their greatest extremities, and when they saw nothing but imminent death, destruction of the temple, and the extirpa- tion of their whole nation, no reasonable conditions or per- suasions could move them. Titus himself made a notable oration unto them z , and commanded Josephus to deliver his mind at another time more amply, if it had been possible to have reclaimed them ; which duty, so imposed upon him, Josephus performed very eloquently. He told them, ' that although the Romans had dealt sometimes very hardly with them, yet their rebellion was ever the cause of it : that albeit men might lawfully fight in defence of their country, when it was invaded by any ; yet being subdued, and a new government settled amongst them, it was not lawful, by rebellion, under pretence of liberty, to cast off that yoke ; that their forefathers being in bondage, under the kings of Egypt and Babylon, and divers times in many other dis- tresses, did never of themselves, by force of arms, seek their liberty, or deliverance ; but ever expected the Lord's leisure, Who always, in due time, had compassion upon them ; and that although they were then in the greatest distress that ever people were, and could expect nothing but utter ruin and desolation, yet if then they would submit themselves, they might be received to mercy. For, saith he, the Romans ask but their ordinary tribute, which your forefathers paid unto their predecessors : and if yet they might obtain a the X ( Jos. deBell. Jud. ii. 7. [See noteU.] ' [Id. v. 9. § 2.] ' Any great distractions.' D. * ' May obtain.' D. Jos. deBell. Jud. vi. 12. [SeenoteV.] 66 overall's convocation book. BOOK same, they will neither destroy your city, nor touch your — - — sanctuary; hut grant unto you freely your families, your possessions, and the practice of your sacred laws/ But all these offers they refused b . Howheit the compassion of Titus towards them still continuing, he again, when they saw their destruction more apparently, required the said Josephus to deliver his mind to the same effect, to their 77 chief captain, that he had done before to the people : which he accomplished, but in the hearing again of the people, very thoroughly ; and in the end, finding them obstinate, ' I my- self deserve blame/ saith he, quia fuse, adversus fata, suadeo ; Deigue sententid condemnatos servare contendo c - Whereupon, shortly after, Titus, protesting how loath he was thereunto d , assailed them with all his forces, which slew an infinite number of them, burnt the temple, and destroyed the city "- Since which time, they that then escaped, and the rest of all the race of the Jews, have been dispersed far and near, and lived like a cursed generation, in all slavery and servitude. So that, although we doubt not but that this heavy judg- ment of God fell upon them principally for the hardness of their hearts, in that they did not only refuse to hear the voice of our Saviour Christ, but likewise most maliciously, unjustly, and shamefully put Him to death, yet the imme- diate and apparent cause of it was their never-before-heard- of-like obstinate rebellion. [placet eis.] CANON XXXIII. If ang man therefore shall affirm either that &ristobultts, the father, or either of his tfoo sons, &lexan&er or &ntigonus, habing all of them submitted themselbes to the gobernment of the Homans, oft not sin, rohen afterfoartis then rebelled against them : or, that JWatfcus Ufir not berg fottfee&lg In poisoning of gntipater, because he thought therebg the hetter to strengthen ^irtanus in his high--priesthooi> : or, that the people ought b [Jos. de Bell. Jud. v. 9. § 3, &c] § 5, &c] c [See note W.] ° [Id. vi. 4.] " [Jos. de Bell. Jud. vi. 2. § 1. 4. 3. overall's convocation book. 67 78 not to fcetest all sue!) sebttious persons, as un&er pretence of book libertg an& religion, sball solicit tbem to rebellion : or, tbat — - — tbe gjefos mere not bountf, botfi to babe pafir tbelr tribute, an& to babe pragetr for ©eesar tottfiout Uissimulatfon, sincerelg antf trulg, notfoitbstantfing ang pretence of tgranng, fobicb tbeg ba& foilfullg btafon upon tbefr ofon beabs, or of ang cause fobatsoeber: or, tjbat sucb as curseU ©sesar, tbetr cbief gobemor, irttf not tberebg beserbe ang corporal punishment, fobicb (s true to be tnfltcteJj upon sucb traitors: or, tbat tbe rebellion against ang Sing, absolute prince, or ctbil magistrate, for ang cause fobatsoeber, is not a sin berg Intestable in tbe sigbt of C&otJ, antr tberefore bg all tbat fear tbe Hortf to be escbefoeif, because it eber tenbetb to miscbief, anb sometimes to tbe obertbrofo of tbe kingdom, principalitg, an& countrg f , fobere it is raisetJ, be ftotb greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XXXIV. We have spoken in the former chapter g of the rebellion of the Jews against h their civil governors, and the success thereof. We made no' mention, either of the priests, or of 79 any of those sects of religion which then bare sway amongst them. Indeed it is likely that if they had done their duties, the people upon their repentance might have regained God's favour, and prevented that utter desolation : but it happened otherwise, two factious persons, Judas and Matthias, the best learned men of the Jews, and the most skilful interpreters of the laws of their country, growing into great favour with the people, because of their said skill, and for that they took great pains in teaching of their children, professing that they would refuse none that had any desire to be virtuously brought up, did thereupon draw unto them many disciples ; and the rather, for that they ' The MS. A. here faultily reads •> ' Amongst.' MS. A. ' contrary.' ' The word ' no ' is added above the 8 [Chap, xxxiii.] line in the MS. A. in red chalk. r2 68 overall's convocation book. book pretended themselves to be propugnatores pietatis. The '■ issue of which godly pretence was, that having thereby got a number to follow them, they stirred them up to sedition against the civil magistrate, under colour, that in contempt of their laws he had made some innovation. But they were presently vanquished ; Matthias and divers others were pxxt to death ; and the High-Priest himself, as having his part in that sedition, was deprived from that dignity k . When Herod upon occasion caused his subjects to bind themselves by an oath, quod non decessuri essent a fide, et officio, the Pharisees refused to take that oath : whom he forbare at that time, because he favoured greatly one Pollio, a chief man of that sect 1 . But about fifteen years after, when it was again thought fit to have the like oath ministered, and that all the whole nation of the Jews did accordingly take the same, and thereby bound their faith and allegiance, both to Herod and unto Caesar, saving the Pharisees, being then in number six thousand, who would not yet be induced to take it ; they were censured and fined for their offence ; and divers of them thereupon entering into some traiterous courses and conspiracies, with sundry courtiers, against their prince, they were, as they deserved, put in like manner to death m . Not long after, another sect sprung up; whereof the chief 80 heads were Judas Gaulonites, Saduc a Pharisee, Judas Galilaeus, and one Simon of Galilee, who professed them- selves to be propugnatores libertatis publica n . These men were so far from moving the people to obedience, as they stirred them up, as much as they could possibly, to rebellion ; telling them, that to undergo any impositions or taxes, was manifest acknowledgment of their servitude, and that it was a shame for them to pay tribute to the Romans, or dominos post Deum ferre mortales : by which means they perturbed the whole nation, and filled every place with their robberies and slaughters ; under pretence indeed of defending their countries, sed revera privatorum lucrorum studio. Also it was k Jos. Ant. Jud. xvii. 18. [See note " Id. xviii. 1, 2; de Bell. Jud. ii. 7; X.J Antiq. Jud. xviii. 1 ; de Bell. Jud. ii. 7. ■ Id. xv. 13. [See note Y.] [See note AA] ■» Id. xvii. 13. [See note Z.] .overall's convocation book. 69 Eleazarus, the son of Ananias, the High-Priest, who would book not suffer the inferior priests to offer sacrifices, and prayers, i ,- as formerly had been accustomed °, for the long life and prosperity of the emperor ; nor could be drawn by any persuasion from his obstinacy therein, but proceeded from evil to worse; and so excited the people to arms, as his .rebellious course therein was held to be the seminary and matter of those Roman wars which overthrew that nation p .. It is true that the High-Priests were not themselves so busy as the inferior priests that lived under them. For the Romans suspecting, of likelihood, that if the priesthood should have been held by succession, and for term of life, by the chief persons of Aaron's posterity, the same might have grown dangerous unto their government, did thereupon take order, that the princes and presidents which ruled in that country should have the appointing of such as should be High-Priests, to be chosen by them out of Aaron's kindred ; and that they should also have authority to alter and change them from time to time, as they found occasion. Whereby the high-priesthood became to be but an annual dignity; 81 and sometimes it was not held so long q , which caused them for the most part to keep themselves from entering into any actual rebellion against their governors; though otherwise they were in effect as hollow-hearted unto them as any other of the priests. For albeit in their hatred and malice against Christ, they could say, ' We have no king but Caesar ; ' and tell Pilate flatly, that if he delivered Christ, 'he was not Joh 19 Caesar's friend :' yet what their private opinions were, doth is, 12. plainly appear, by their sending of the Pharisees unto Christ with their entangling questions ; to know of Him whether it were lawful to give tribute unto Caesar or not : supposing Mat. 22. if He were not a dissembler, as they themselves were, that j^' i^ 1 * He would deny it to be lawful, and so should incur the Lu. 20. 22. danger thereunto appertaining; or if He answered that it was lawful, He might thereby bring upon Him the hatred of the people ; whom they suffered, for aught that we find to the contrary, to be brought up in the rebellious doctrine of Jos. Antiq. Jud. xii. 1. [See note noteCC] BB.] q Id. Antiq. Jud. xviii. 3 ; and xx. 8. '■ Id. de Bell.- Jud. ii. 17. [See [See note DD.] 70 overall's convocation book. BOOK some of the Pharisees, and to hold it unlawful to pay tribute — ' - unto Csesar. Besides, what a false, ignorant, and wicked generation they were, is manifest by the whole course which they held with our Saviour Christ. It being most agreeable 1 " to the just judgment of God, that the most impious hypocrites, who then lived, should be the chief actors in the crucifying of Christ ; which was the most horrible fact that ever was committed. [placet eis.] CANON XXXIV. If ang man therefore shall affirm, either that because the cibil magistrate hall mabe some innobation, fohich then libra not, or for ang other respect, the saflj gjufcas anb JWatthias might lawfullg mobe the people to rebellion, though otherwise 82 then taught men's chilbren neber so biligentlg : or, that the Pharisees in refusing to binb their allegiance anb faith to Caesar, hg an oath, bib not therebg shew fhemselbes to he tratterouslg affecteb towarbs htm : or, that it mas not a sebi= tious doctrine, to he betesteb of all gootr subjects, which 3Jubas ffiaulonites, anb his fellows, belibereb to the people, in teach= ing them to refuse all taxations imposeb hg the IRomans, their lawful magistrates ; anb rather to rebel than to pag ang tribute unto them : or, that theg irftr not berg griebouslg sin, both the f^igfi^riest's son anb the rest, Who either refuseb to offer sacrifice, or to prag for Caesar : or, that the ^igh-^riests then were not a wiefceb broob, begenerateb far from their first institution ; or, that theg &ih not greatlg offenfc ©fob, in per= mitting the people to be infecteb hg their inferior priests, anb other religious persons, With ang of the sad false positions, anb traiterous conceits : or, that theg, the saib f^igh=$riests, bib not most grosslg err in all those points, anb particulars, wherein theg opposeb themselbes against the person anb boctrine of our £>abiour Christ, he both greatlg err. PLACET eis. * ' Being agreeable.' D. overall's convocation book. 71 83 CHAPTER XXXV. E °i° K "We have followed thus far that mild and moderate form of civil government, which God Himself established, and pre- served in the lines of Seth and Sem, until, through the obstinate rebellion, from time to time, of the Jews, the fame and the authority thereof were first greatly diminished, and afterwards taken wholly away from them. But it is further to be considered, that as in the first chapter we have shewed the creation of all the world to be ascribed to the Son of God, the second person in the Trinity, so is the government of it, in the same sense, attributed unto Him. ' The earth is the Lord's, and all that therein is ; the round world, and all that dwell therein.' Whereupon He was called ordinarily, Ps. 2*. 1. in the Old Testament, Dominator, Dominus, the ' Lord of Hosts/ the God and possessor of heaven and earth. So as Isa. 3. 1. He being the universal lord and ruler over all the world, 3 "' Ez j a the whole world was His universal kingdom ; in the govern- *■ 5 - [ ? 2.] ment whereof He ever used the ministry of civil magistrates, as well in other countries as amongst His own peculiar people of Israel, without any desert of theirs, but as in His heavenly providence He thought it most convenient. ' I have made,' saith He, ' the earth, the man, and the beasts that are upon the ground, and have given it to whom it pleaseth Me : ' and again, the prophet Daniel telleth us that Jer. 27. 5. 'God changeth the times and seasons, that He hath power, j 4 an j 2 ' and beareth rule over the kingdoms of men ;' that c He taketh [? 2. 21.J away kings, and setteth up kings :' and that it was the God of heaven, Who gave unto Nebuchadnezzar so great a kingdom, power, strength and glory, as then he had, to rule, Dan. 2. 37. with majesty and honour, a very great empire. In respect \ s j whereof, although kings and princes might have been satisfied with the titles of lieutenants or vicegerents in earth 84 to the Son of God, yet He did communicate and impart so much of His power, authority, and dignity unto them, as He was content to style them with His own name : ' I have said, [Ps.82.6.] you are gods, and the children of the Most High.' Howbeit, for all their said dignity and greatness, He did not leave them at liberty to do what they list, but held Himself the helm of every kingdom, and used their services 72 overall's convocation book. book in such sort, as were they good or bad, and their design- — ments holy or wicked, He ever made them the executioners of His own just judgments, will and good pleasure ; accord- ing as He was minded, either to bless or to punish any kingdom, people or country. In regard of which His might, providence, and wisdom, whereby He ruleth them Ps. 124. after that sort, He is called the Lord of lords, the King of 10 ] ^ 24 ' glory, and the God of gods ; that is, of the kings, princes, Id. 50. 1. judges and rulers of the earth. And it may not here be omitted, which indeed ariseth of the premises, that the Son of God, in disposing of the government, under Him, of the earth, did not appoint any one man to be the sole monarch of the world ; as from whom all other kingdoms, governments, kings and princes should receive their directions, and unto whom they should be subject. It is true, that Adam, whilst he lived, was the chief governor under the Son of God, over all his own offspring ; and that Noah likewise, during his life, had the like authority. But when, after the flood, the issue of Sem, Cham, and Japhet grew to a great people, their father, Noah, did not commit to any one. of them the government of the rest, and of all of their posterity, but divided the whole world amongst them three s : and from them, no one sole monarch or monarchy, but mauy kings, principalities, kingdoms and governments, by God's providence have descended. It is more than probable, that if the Son of God had been pleased to have committed to any one man, a government of so large an extent, He would have trusted His servant kiug 8;> David with it, being a man according to His own heart. [lSam.13. But the kingdom of Israel, wherein David reigned, was 13 2^ T bounded within the strait limits assigned to the twelve tribes. And such other kings as swerved, after that time, from David's mild and temperate government, and took upon them the titles of monarchies, having enlarged their king- doms by injury and oppression of their neighbours, were, in their pride and greediness, but the scourges and rods of God's indignation, and had their fatal ends accordingly. So as where the prophet Daniel, speaking of the kingdom of s [See chap, vi.] .overall's convocation book. 73 Nebuchadnezzar, calleth him 'king of kings/ and saith ' that book he was the ruler over all places wherein the children of men h dwelt;' and Cyrus, the king of Persia, affirmeth that the 37,3V 'Lord God of heaven had given him all the kingdoms of the Ezra '- 2 - earth:' forasmuch as it is apparent, both by the Scriptures and other histories, that neither of them both had the tenth part of the world under their jurisdiction; and that there were very many kings, who had absolute government in their kingdoms, and were no ways subject unto them ; the said places of necessity must receive this exposition, that either they are to be understood hyperbolically, whereby, to express the greatness of a thing, it is said to be bigger than it was ; or by a synecdoche, which useth the whole some- times for a part; or according to the usual phrase of the Scriptures, where all are often taken for many : or else both [Phil. 2. Daniel and Cyrus spake after the manner of the Chaldeans 2 5 -| C s and Persians, who, to extol the greatness of their kings, and the better to please them, did, peradventure, so enlarge and amplify the style. PLACET EIS. 86 CANON XXXV. If ang man therefore shall affirm either that the §bon of Cfrotf, accor&ing to the tioctrine of the ©liy Testament, foas not the gobernor of all the foorftf : or, that fi^e JjOj not appoint untier f^im tfibers fcings, princes an& ctbil magistrates, to rule anlf gobem in the fcingtfoms anti places assignee* unto them : or, that habing so appointed them, p?e ifitf not himself tftrect, uphoIU, anti rule them hg $^is omnipotence, according to ?^ts iribine toisirom ; anir might not, in that respect, he trulg called the Hortr of lorijs, anil the ffioir of gofcs : or, that all the toorlir, anU the particular fcingtfoms antf cibil fein&s of gobernment in the tnorlir foere not. in respect of the £>on of CEfotf, as f^e is the gobernor of the toorltf, ant( the Uortf of lor&s, antf Coir of goirs, one feing&om, principalitg or gobernment, therebg to impeach the mitoantc temperate gobernment fohirh |^e hair ' ' Temporal regal,' MS. A. t erroneously. 74 overall's convocation book. book establisfietf amongst tfie 3Jefos u : or, tfiat f^e eber committeti — - — tfie gobernment of all tfie wotto, after mam anil Noafi's times, to ang one man, to be tfie sole anil bisible monarcfi of it : or, tfiat tfie safe feingiiom of ©firist, as |^e bias tfie Horii of Iorirs, anil ©oil of go&s, anil so gobemeti tfie fofiole foorI&,87 was otfierfoise bisible upon tfie eartfi, tfian per partes, bt?. bg tfie particular fcing&oms antf feiniis of cibil gobernment, or perfiaps fig *"ne representation, fie irorfi greatlg err. PLACET EIS. CHAPTER XXXVI. As there hath been from the beginning one universal kingdom throughout all the world, whereof the Son of God was ever the sole, though invisible, monarch, as we have shewed in the former chapter % : so it is generally agreed upon amongst all Christians, that from the creation of man- kind during the times aforesaid, there hath always been one Universal or Catholic Church ; which began in Adam, and afterward, as his posterity multiplied, both before and after the flood, was dispersed over the face of the whole earth; and whereof the Son of God likewise was always the head and sole, though invisible, monarch. The foundation of which Church was ever one and the same rock, to wit, Jesus Christ, the promised ' seed of the woman, that should break [Gen. 3. the serpent's head :' and as many persons, families, societies, ■* and companies, as truly believed in that blessed Seed, without exception of any sort, or distinction of people, were the true members and parts of the Catholic Church. For the death of our Saviour Christ, which long after did actually ensue, was virtually, through faith, as effectual to all believers before His passion, as it hath been since. In respect whereof [Heb. 13. the Holy Ghost did not only affirm that 'Jesus Christ was the same/ that is, the ' wisdom, righteousness, sanctification, and f redemption/ of those that believed in Him, 'yesterday,' that is, " The MS. A. incorrectly omits the * [Chap, xxsv.] worJ 'or.' overall's convocation book. 75 before and after the law, as f to-day,' that is, now in the time BOOK of the New Testament : but likewise, that He was the ' Lamb — — — slain from the beginning of the world :' because His death 8.] V and passion, being ever as present in the view and sight of God the Father, before whom ' a thousand years are but as one day/ the same was typically represented by sacrifices [2 Pet. 3. and effectual Sacraments ; and the merits thereof have from '■* the beginning been communicated to all believers. So that although in imitation of the Scriptures, we have spoken hitherto but of one particular Church, and of the succession of it in the lines of Seth and Sem; yet have there been other particular Churches in all ages, which were built upon the said rock and promised Seed. Cain offered his sacrifice to God as well as Abel; though it was not for his sins accepted : and it is not to be doubted but that every chief [Gen. i. s, family of his posterity had their priests and public worship of God, albeit mingled with some such superstition and idolatry as offended God, and made them less acceptable in His sight. For as of the posterity of Seth many perished, so we are to judge on the other side, that many of Cain's line died in God's favour : except we should think, against the rules of charity, that the curse which fell upon Cain, killing his brother Abel, did cause his offspring to become as brute beasts : whereas having Adam their grandfather, it is more than probable that he did better instruct them, and prevailed at least with some of them. Likewise after the flood, all Noah's offspring, being one Church under him, and grounded upon Christ the true foundation of it, although afterwards, when they were settled in their several countries allotted unto them, they swerved greatly from that purity in religion which Noah had taught them, yet they had still their priests, their sacrifices, and some outward worship of God amongst them. 89 Besides, hitherto all the world being as one people, if there were then any visible Churches at all upon the earth, it cannot be truly said that the calling of Abraham out of Chaldsea, and the erecting of the true worship of God in his family, did make them to be in worse case than they were before. If Churches before, they so continued after, though superstitious and idolatrous Churches. Again, it is generally 76 overall's convocation book. BOOK held that God did not therefore distinguish the Jews from — - other nations and people, and settle His public worship amongst them, as purposing thereby that His Catholic Church, in their times, should only consist of them and of their nations, and such other proselytes as would be circum- cised and join themselves unto them : but much more because by that means the truth and certainty of all the promises and prophecies concerning the coming of the Messias, might be faithfully and diligently observed, and kept in one nation, and visible known place and people. For it is plain in the Scriptures, that after the said distinction, many of the Gentiles served God, and believed in Christ, and were thereby made the true members of the Catholic Church, though they were not circumcised, nor had any meddling with, or dependency upon the Jews. Some are [Job 2. particularly named ; as Job, Jethro, Rahab, the Ninevites, rkxod. 18. ^e widow of Sarepta, Naaman, Cornelius, and some others : 12 -] by whom we are not only to judge of their families and [Mat. 12. governments, that they were so many particular Churches, TL"' 4 26 1 ^ ut hkewise, that in every country and people, many such [Lu.4.27.] godly men from time to time might have been found, who Jj -i c b ' with their families, and peradventure subjects, were so to be held and esteemed of. We will not enter into the discussing of these places, how far they may be extended. Without faith it is impossible to please God ; for he that cometh to God, must beheve that Heb. n.6. God is, and that He is a rewarder of them that seek Him. " ' " In the Word was life, and the life was the light of men. Is go God the God only of the Jews, and not of the Gentiles also ? Rom. 3. Yes, of the Gentiles also : for it is one God, Who doth jus- jo^q 16 tify circumcision by faith, and [the] uncircumcised through faith. I have other sheep, which are not of this fold. Only we do further observe, that it was lawful for any of the Gentiles to come into the outward court of the temple, to l Kings 8. bring their sacrifices unto the Lord, and there to offer Acts 8.27. U P tneir Payers likewise unto Him: that accordingly, they did often resort to the temple for devotion's sake, there to worship God : as by the examples of the eunuch of Ethiopia, Joh. 12.20. and of certain Grecians, it is? mentioned in the Scriptures : ' ' That are mentioned.' D, overall's convocation book. 77 and that many of them were so addicted to the true service BOOK of God, as the prophet Haggai calleth our Saviour Christ, — — '—-r- Desiderium Gentium. So that the Catholic Church, con- 7.] " sisting from the beginning till Abraham's time, of such only as 'were afterwards for distinction's sake called Gentiles ; although God was then pleased to bestow His mercies more plentifully upon that one particular Church of the Jews, deduced from Abraham, than upon any other, or indeed upon all the rest, for the principal causes before specified; yet they were not utterly so rejected, or cast out of God's favour, but that many of them did continue as dutiful children in the lap and bosom of the said Catholic Church. Of which Catholic Church, it is true that Adam and Noah, for their times, were, under Christ, the chief governors. Howbeit afterward the posterity of Noah being mightily increased, when thereupon he distributed the whole world among his three sons, and their issue, he did not appoint any one of them to be the ruler of the said Catholic Church, but left the government of every particular family or Church unto their chief heads, princes and priests, and of the whole to the Son of God, and sole monarch of it, Who only was able to undertake such a charge. Neither do we read that 91 Aaron, or any of the High-Priests, took upon them at any time to extend their jurisdiction beyond the bounds and limits of the twelve tribes ; or so much as once dream that the whole world was their diocese : that which they had being more than indeed z they well ordered. PLACET EIS. CANON XXXVI. M ang man therefore shall affirm either that inuring the continuance of the <2M& Testament, the merits of (JChtist's &eath actuallg to come, mere not sufficient to sabe all true fceltebers : or, that there foas then no ffiatholic CDhurch : or, that at ang time there foas ang other rock but %z%w ©hrist, the hlesseti gjeetf, upon fohom the ©atholic ©hurch foas then ' ' Indeed more than.' D. 78 overall's convocation book. book butlt : or, tfjat mang of tfje ©entiles foere not alfoags, for : — auojjt tfjat is fenofon to tfje tontrarg, true members of tfje CTatfjolic ffiburrfj : or, tfjat ©fjrist f^tmself foas not tfje sole bead or monarcb all tfjat Mjilt of tfje fofjole ©atfjolit ©burtfj: or, tfjat tfje safb CCatfjoltc ©burtfj, after tfje members of ft forrc dispersed into all tfje plates of tfje fioovltr, foas otfjerfoise bisible tfjan per partes .- or, tfjat Noafj did appoint ang man to be tfje bisible fjeaU of tfje said ©atfjolt'c ©burrfj : a or, tfjat tfje $^igb=$riest among tfje gjefos ba& ang more autfjoritg ober tfje ©atfjolic ©burrfj of ©oil tfjan king Dab id bad obrr tfje universal kingdom of ffiod : or, tfjat tfje saftr f^igb^riest 92 bad not greatlg sinncij, if be bad taken upon bint, or usurped ang sutfj infinite autfjoritg, f)t dotfj greatlg err b . PLACET EIS. * The ' Placet" is omitted at the by the Barlow MS. which are given in bottom of this page of MS. A. the Appendix. * See the various readings supplied CONCERNING THE GOVERNMENT OF GOD'S CATHOLIC CHURCH, KINGDOMS OF THE WHOLE WORLD. 93 BOOK SECOND. 3 CHAPTER FIRST. In pursuing our intended course through the Old Testa- BOOK ment, and until the destruction of Jerusalem, we over-slipped : — - and passed by the fulness of that time wherein the Son of God, the maker and governor of all the world, our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, was conceived by the Holy Ghost, and born of the Virgin Mary. So as now we are to return back, and prosecute our said course, as the b true grounds thereof are laid down, confirmed and practised in the New Testa- ment. At the entrance whereinto, we confess ourselves to be greatly amazed , considering the strange impediments, and mighty stumbling-blocks, which, through long practice and incredible ambition, are cast in our way, in that we find the estate of that Church, which would rule over all, to be degenerated in our days, as far, in effect, from her primary and apostolical institution and rules, as we have shewed before, the estate of the Jewish Church to have swerved, through the like pride and ambition, from that excellent condition wherein she was first established, and afterward preserved and beautified by Moses, and king David, with the rest of his most worthy and godly successors d - For except * In the MS. A. a new series of astonished.' D. pagination commences. A new scribe d The passage with the words, ' in has also been employed. that we find the estate,' and ending b ' As we find the true.' D. with the sentence, are in the MS. A. c ' At our entrance into which course, enclosed in brackets, we confess ourselves to be greatly 80 overall's convocation book. book we should condemn the Old Testament, as many ancient e '■ — heretics f have done, and thereupon overthrow all which hitherto we have built; and not that only, but should furthermore, either approve of their gross impiety who read the Scriptures of the New Testament as if they were falsified 94 and corrupted, and by receiving and rejecting as much of them as they list, do prefer before them, as not containing in them all necessary truth for man's salvation, certain obscure and apocryphal writings ; or, should ourselves im- piously imagine that the New Testament, as now we have it, was but a rough draught, and a fit project compiled for the time, by the Apostles, to be afterwards better ordered, polished, and supplied with certain human traditions and doctrine, by some of their successors : we can find g no authentical ground, nor sufficient warrant, in those writings, which ought to be the true rule of every Christian man's conscience, as not being there to be found, for any apostolical priest or bishop either to pretend that all the particular Churches in the world are under his government, or to tell the subjects of any Christian king, opposite in some points unto him, that they are no longer bound to obey him their said king, but until they shall be able, by force of arms, or by some secret practice, to subdue him; or to challenge to himself an absolute and universal authority and power over all kings and kingdoms in the world, to bestow them, in some cases, under pretence of religion, when he shall think the same to be most available, for the strengthening and upholding of such his pretended universal power and dominion. To the proof whereof, before we address ourselves, because the same doth much depend upon the admirable humiliation of the Son of God, in taking our nature upon Him, and perform- ing the work of our salvation, in such a manner as He did, we have thought it our duties, lest otherwise we might be mistaken, either through weakness, simplicity, or malice, first, briefly to observe, notwithstanding our Saviour His said humiliation, the most wonderful dignity, pre-eminency and royalty of His person. e Aug. de Haeres. cap. xlvi. [This stood in the copy, but has been struck reference is not in the MS. A. See out note A.] * ' We can see.' D. ' ' Formerly ' has here originally overall's convocation book. 81 95 It is many ways apparent that the mean estate and book condition of our Saviour Christ here upon earth, was one — — — especial motive, both to the Jews and Gentiles, why, in their carnal judgments, He was to the one sort a scandal and to the other a scorn, as if He had been a man out of his wits, [l Cor. 1. and preached He knew not what. In which respect, partly '■* not only the people of the Jews, the priests of all sorts, the Scribes and Pharisees, with the rest of their hypocritical orders ; but likewise the civil governors, as well Romans as Jews, did utterly despise Him, hate Him, deride Him, beat Him, and put Him to death. Since which time sundry sorts [Mat. 26. of heretics have stumbled at the same stone, labouring, by all ^ 21 &c 1 the means they could, to impeach and dishonour the person of Christ, in regard of the mean show of His human nature 11 , notwithstanding the many arguments which they might have found in the Scriptures, had not their hearts been hardened, of His divinity. On the other side also, we are not ignorant how the bishop of Rome and his adherents, — supposing it would too much impeach their credits and worldly reputations, if they should be too much pressed to deduce the principal strength of their estates and callings from the said mean condition of our Saviour Christ, whilst He lived in this world,-r-do thereupon attribute sundry virtues, powers and branches of authority unto His human nature, which do not, in truth, belong properly unto it, but are rather appertaining to His person, being both God and man ' ; as hoping thereby to get some fair pretences and colours for the upholding of their usurped greatness and pretended uncontroulable sovereignty. For the avoiding therefore of these extremities, and because such as deny the pope's supremacy are most falsely charged by sundry passionate and inconsiderate persons to be men that believe no one article of the Christian faith k , we have thought it 96 meet to make it known to all the Christian world, how detestable to the Church of England all such false doctrine is, as doth any way not only impeach the sacred person of our Saviour Christ, but likewise the other two persons of the blessed Trinity, God the Father, and God the Holy Ghost, in h [See note B.] ' [See note C] k [See note D.] OVERALL. G 82 book that the dishonouring of one of them is the dishonouring of :— them all three. We do therefore for ourselves, and in the name of all the rest of the Church of England, acknowledge and profess, from the hottom of our hearts, the truth of all that is written in the sacred Scriptures; and consequently, and in more particular manner, whatsoever is written in the same that doth appertain to the most holy and hlessed Trinity. Out of the doctrine of which sacred writings, because the Apostles and Churches of God, moved there- unto by sundry sorts of heretics, have, long since, most faithfully and learnedly deduced into certain summaries, rightly termed Creeds, all those points of true doctrine which do concern God the Father, God the Son, and God the Holy Ghost, and are necessarily to be believed, under pain of condemnation ; we do resolutely embrace and stead- fastly believe all and every one the articles of the Apostles' Creed, and all and every one the articles of the ' other Creeds, made by sundry councils for the further declaration of the Christian faith and Apostolic Creed, as of the Nicene Creed, made by the council of Nice against Arms, who denied the divinity of the Son of God ; and of the next Creed, made in the first council of Constantinople, ratifying and further declaring the Nicene Creed against Eudoxius the Arian, and Macedonius, who denied the Holy Ghost to be God ; -and of the Creed made in the first council of Ephesus™ against Nestorius, who taught that the two natures in Christ were not united together personally, but that the Word, which did take our nature upon Him for our redemption, did only 97 assist Christ our Saviour, as one friend may assist another ; and of the Creed made in the council of Chalcedon against Eutyches, who did confound the two natures of Christ. Against any of which articles whosoever doth oppose himself, and doth wilfully continue in such his opposition, we hold and judge them to be worthily subject to all those censures 1 The passage beginning, ' other the Holy Ghost to be God, and to be Creeds,' and ending ' as of the,' is a person proceeding from the Father in the margin of A. and the Son, and all and every one the m The passage has originally stood articles of the Creed,' &c. The words thus in A. ' And all and every one ' certifying and further declaring the the articles of the Creed made in the Nicene Creed against Eudoxius the first council of Constantinople, and Arian,' stand in the margin. Macedonius and Eudoxius, who denied overall's convocation book. 83 and anathematisms, which the several constitutions and BOOK canons of the said councils have justly laid upon them. Also, with the same resolution and faith before mentioned, we receive and believe all and every one the several points and articles of Athanasius' Creed, made a little after the council of Nice, against such blasphemous opinions as in those times were either directly, or indirectly, published in corners and spread here and there to the seducing of many. According to some articles of the which Creed that do more nearly concern our course, we steadfastly believe and confess, 'that our Lord Jesus Christ, the Son of God, is both God and man ; God, of the substance of the Father, begotten before all worlds ; and man, of the substance of His Mother, born in the world; perfect God, and perfect man, of a reasonable soul and human flesh subsisting; equal to the Father as touching His Godhead, and inferior to the Father, [as] touching His manhood ; Who although He be both God and man, yet He is not two, but one Christ ; one, not by conversion of the Godhead into flesh, but by taking [of] the manhood into God ; one altogether, not by confusion of substance, but by unity of person.' In respect of which personal union of the two natures of our Saviour Christ, without confusion or mixture of either of them, thus de- scribed by Athanasius ", whatsoever is affirmed in the Scrip- tures, as well of the one nature as of the other, the same is 98 also truly to be affirmed de toto composito, that is, of His most sacred person being both God and man ; the essential proprieties ° of them both remaining, notwithstanding, dis- tinguished. For, as the said personal or hypostatical union of the said two natures doth not make the one nature to be the other, the divine nature to be the human nature, or the human nature to be the divine nature; so doth it not make the essential proprieties of the one nature to be the essential proprieties of the other nature; but as well the proprieties and actions as the natures themselves do remain distinguished, though united in one person; both of them concurring together, the Deity in working that which appertaineth to the Deity, and the humanity executing those essential pro- " 'Described in the said Creed.' D. ° ' Properties.' D. g2 84 overall's convocation book. book prieties and actions which do belong unto the humanity. : — For example, the divine nature appeared in Christ by miracles, when His human nature was subject to many opprobries and injuries. In that our Saviour Christ did Mat. 14. 17. satisfy five thousand persons with five loaves, did give water Mat. 14.25. of life to the woman of Samaria, did walk upon the sea with Mat. 8. 26. dry foot, did by His commandment calm the winds, — He shewed thereby some effects and works of His divine nature, because they were, as one well saith, Verbi propria, non carnis, the proprieties of the Word, and not of the flesh. Mat. 14. 19. Again, in that Christ brake bread, this was an office of His human nature; but in that He multiplied it, the same did appertain to His divine nature. In that He cried out Joh.ll.43. 'Lazarus, come forth/ that was the office of His human nature ; but in that He quickened him and raised him from death, that did belong unto His divine nature. In that He Mat. 9. 2. said, ' Thy sins are forgiven thee,' that was an office of His human nature ; but in that such sins were indeed remitted, the same did appertain to His divine nature. In that our Joh. 19. Saviour Christ died, the same did proceed from the flesh ; on He'b. 2 . 14 but in that by His death He did expiate our sins, that did 1S - proceed from the Spirit. In that He was buried, did proceed 99 4. from the flesh; but in that He did raise Himself from the Joh. 2. 19. dead, that was the office of His divinity. In that He gave bread to His Apostles in His last supper, He did it as man ; but in that He made them partakers of His blessed body, Mat 26. He did the same as He was God. In that now being in 10 16 heaven, He doth possess that kingdom in the name and Lu. 22. 30. behalf of His elect, that doth appertain unto His human nature ; but that He doth now remain with us and dwell in Joh. 15.4. our hearts, that is an office of His divine nature. In that Heb.7.25! He maketh intercession for us, that doth belong to His Rom. 5. 9. human nature ; but in that He doth justify us, regenerate Phil. 2. 13. us, work in us both to will and to perform, in that He ruleth PsUS 85 us an< ^ l ea( leth us in the way of His commandments, all these offices do appertain unto His divinity. Lastly, in that He shall come in the clouds, and say unto one sort of Mat25.34. persons, ' Come, ye blessed,' and unto the other sort, ' Depart, ye cursed,' He shall do the same according to His human nature ; but in that He shall judge every man according to overall's convocation book. 85 His knowledge of all men's hearts, their cogitations, desires BOOK and works, that He shall do as God. -— -— — Nevertheless, any thing thus by us affirmed notwithstand- ing, Christ Himself is not divided, though the proprieties and actions of His two natures are in this sort to be distin- guished: as God Himself is not divided, although the three persons in Trinity are rightly held to be indeed distinguished; and yet all the said actions and proprieties of the two natures of Christ, distinguished, as we have expressed, they are, not- withstanding, very truly to be affirmed of His sacred person. The reason whereof hath been before touched, and it is this ; p- 98. because seeing that both the natures are joined together in the person of the Son by an hypostatical, and consequently by a true and essential union, so as Christ is thereby both true God, in regard of His divine nature, and true man, in 100 respect of His human nature; whatsoever is the propriety of the divine nature and of the human nature, the same is wholly and altogether in Christ, and is necessarily therefore to be affirmed of Him, both essentially and properly. In respect whereof, we say that Christ was dead, and that He could not die ; that He is both finite and infinite ; eternal, and temporal ; in every place, and yet circumscribed in one place. For, of necessity, whatsoever are the properties of the human nature, the same are truly and properly to be affirmed de vero homine ; and whatsoever are the proprieties of the divine nature, the same are likewise to be affirmed de vero Deo ; Christ being, out of all controversy amongst the children of God, et verus homo, et verus Deus. And thus we have, after a sort, both briefly and truly set down the force and efficacy of the hypostatical union of the two natures of Christ, being distinguished, but no ways confounded; as the same, together with the true doctrine of all other necessary articles concerning the blessed Trinity, doth, by the Scrip- tures, most truly expounded in the Creeds above mentioned, many ways very notably appear. To this purpose much more might here have been added by us ; if, our course considered, we had thought it necessary. Only we have thought it fit, furthermore -to profess and make it thereby known to all men, that there are some other Creeds made by other councils and particular bishops, like 86 overall's convocation book. BOOK to Athanasius', and other worthy persons ; as Irenseus' g— !jt — Creed, Tertullian's Creed, as we may so term it, Damasus his ham,jc.4. Creed, the Creed ascribed to St. Ambrose and St. Augustine, 1—18. , Te £ )eum i au da mus > fy c , the Creed of the first council of Toledo, St. Jerome's Creed, the Creed ascribed to Leo, which was approved by the council of Chalcedon, and the Creed of the sixth council of Constantinople, against the Monothelites, holding that in Christ, both God and man, there was but one will ; all of them tending to the setting forth the orthodoxal 101 and true doctrine of ' One God in Trinity and Trinity in Unity, not confounding the Persons, nor dividing the sub- stance p ; and of one Christ, true God, and true man, not confounding His natures, nor dividing His Person.' Which Creeds we do receive, embrace, and reverence in such sort as they have been received, embraced and reverenced hitherto by all the particular Churches of the Christian world ; inas- much as they agree, both with the Scriptures, with the Apostles' Creed, with the four Creeds mentioned of the first four general councils, and with Athanasius' Creed; which contain in them that faith which was then, and so still ought to be accounted the true, Catholic faith; nothing, in effect, being contained in all the Creeds before by us specified, which may not be deduced by necessary consequences out of the Creed which Athanasius madei; the conclusion of which Creed is in these words expressed; — 'This is the Catholic faith, which except a man believe faithfully he cannot be saved.' To which conclusion that, in sense, is very consonant wherewith Damasus doth end his Creed r , in these words; ' Read these things, believe them, retain them ; to this faith submit thy soul, and thou shalt obtain life and reward from Christ.' In which Creeds, containing the Catholic faith in those days, or in any of the rest, we have thought it good here to remember, that there is not any one article to warrant or prove those new articles which were coined long after the making of any the said Creeds s by the bishops of Rome, and * From here to the end of the ' [See note E.] sentence stands in the margin of A., » The passage beginning ' by the added by the same hand. bishops of Rome,' and ending with fl The D. reads, ' out of the said the word ' supremacy,' is written in Athanasian Creed.' the margin of A. by the same hand. overall's convocation book. 87 are added to the Nicene Creed by Pius the Fourth, in the book profession of the Roman faith, specially that new article of - — the pope's supremacy, which is still so stiffly maintained and urged upon many under pain of the loss of their souls, viz. that it is altogether necessary for them, if they will be saved, to be obedient to the bishop of Rome*. Which new article, 102 being but an extravagant conclusion made by a very strange man and built upon as strange collections out of the Scrip- tures, we leave it for a novelty unto all the articles of the ancient Catholic faith; and will now address ourselves to prosecute the same course and points in the New Testament which we held in the Old. [placet eis.J CHAPTER II. It is a certain rule in divinity, that grace doth not destroy nature u . The doctrine of the Seed of the woman, that was foretold should break the serpent's head, did not abolish the moral law. The ceremonies in the Old Testament, which shadowed and signified the mercies of God in Christ, had no power to extinguish the laws first imprinted in men's hearts, and afterwards engraven in tables of stone by the finger of God. The prophets foretelling the coming of Christ, and the merits of His passion, did likewise reprove all sins and offences committed against the Ten Commandments. Christ testifieth of Himself, that He ' came not to destroy the law and the prophets, but to fulfil them.' By His death He hath Mat. 5. 17. delivered us from the curse of the law, but not from the obedience of it. And St. Paul saith that the Apostles did not 'make the law of none effect through faith, but that Jtom.3.13. they did thereby establish the law.' For that faith doth only apprehend Christ truly to salvation, which worketh by charity; that is, which purgeth the conscience from dead works to serve the living God, and* bringeth forth by the Spirit, obedience to the precepts and laws of God. ' [See Note F.] ' God and,' inclusive, are in the margin » [See Note G.J oi A, 1 The words from ' purgeth,' to 88 overall's convocation book. book. It y hath been shewed by us at large in the former book, — — — that although the Son of God, having made the world, did by l^Jf&c.] His mighty power and divine providence, retain, as it were, in His own hands, the general rule and government of it ; yet for a more visible benefit and comfort to mankind, He 103 did divide and distribute the same into divers countries, principalities and kingdoms ; and ordaining civil magistracy, did not only appoint sovereign princes and kings as His deputies and lieutenants upon earth to rule and govern under Him such countries and kingdoms as He had allotted unto them ; but did likewise tie mankind by one of the moral laws engraven in their hearts, that they should honour them, serve them, and be obedient unto them. "Which particular com- mandment was no more abolished by the Incarnation of our Saviour Christ, than were all the rest. Nay it was in truth of such force and public note, as that our Saviour, having most willingly subjected Himself to the obedience of the whole law, did very carefully, upon every occasion, shew Himself most observant of this one law amongst the rest. For in the whole course of His life here upon earth, we find not any alteration that He made in the civil state where He was conversant ; which He must of necessity have done, if His coming into the world had any way impeached the authority of the civil magistrates. It is expressly recorded Lu.2.51. of Him that He lived in subjection to His parents; therein fulfilling the said fifth commandment, which containeth as well the subjection due to authority civil as paternal. He Rom. l. 3. wa s 'made of the seed of David according to the flesh/ as the Apostle speaketh ; and so had, no doubt, according to His manhood, great natural compassion of those miseries and afflictions which the Jews at that very time endured under the Romans. Howbeit, as knowing the duties of their allegiance, He neither moved nor any way encouraged them to take arms against the emperor; nor filled their heads with shifts and distinctions how subjects in this case and that case were superior to their sovereigns ; nor did any way approve of those rebellious courses in them whereunto they were, of their own dispositions, very greatly addicted. 101 ' Here in the margin of A. is not a new Capitular.' (?) written in red chalk, ' Begin here ; overall's convocation book. 89 He was so far from those exorbitant and bad humours, as BOOK still He shewed, when there was cause, His great detestation , — _ — of them. He did Himself very willingly pay tribute when it [Mat. 17. was demanded; and upon fit occasion, gave all the Jews this '■-! general 2 rule, that they, living under Cassar, were bound to pay unto him those things that were his; meaning such obedi- [Mat. 22. ence, custom, tributes, tolls, taxations and payments, as by '- 1 the laws, both divine and imperial, were due unto Caesar. And certainly if ever it had, and might have been lawful for private men, in respect of their own zeal, to have used force against authority, it seemeth unto us that it might have been borne with in the Apostles, upon some such accidents as then fell out. Judas had betrayed their master, and thereupon a multitude was sent, with a public officer, to apprehend Him. Which the Apostles perceiving, conferred together, as it seemeth, how to make resistance, and said in their zeal, 'Master, shall we smite them with the sword?' Lu. 22. 49. But Peter seeing, of likelihood, the haste, violence, and fury that was used by the said multitude, did upon the sudden, pluck out his sword, and without any expectation ' what ' waiting Christ would answer to the said question, smiting one of the company, did cut off his ear. Now if we shall consult with flesh and blood, who would not approve this fact of St. Peter ? But our Saviour Christ, being void of any heat or passion, and only respecting the will of God and the due observation of the said particular law, did utterly condemn in St. Peter that violent and unlawful attempt ; because he being but a private man, had nothing to do with the tem- poral sword, which belonged to the civil magistrate; and much less should have used it against authority. And there- fore, as well to let St. Peter see his offence, as also to leave a caution for the bridling thenceforward a of all future rash 105 zeal in such a case, He justified the law of God, and did leave the same for a rule to all posterity, saying, ' All that [Mat. 26. take the sword, shall perish with the sword ; ' meaning all 52 '^ private persons that shall at any time abuse, after that sort, the civil sword, which doth in no wise appertain unto them. Besides, it is manifest that our Saviour Christ, if, as He ' ' Following.' D. * ' Bridling from thenceforwards.' D. 90 overall's convocation book. book was God, He had been disposed, was able to have defended '- — Himself against all the world. Nay, as He was man, He might, by prayer to His Father, have procured sufficient assistance against the force of all His enemies, had He not well known that course to have been repugnant to the obedience which He had undertaken, of the said command- ment, and no way agreeable to the vocation and work which He had in hand ; and therefore persisting in His reproof of [Mat. 26. St. Peter, ' Thinkest thou.' saith He unto him, 'that I cannot now pray to My Father, and He will give Me more than twelve legions of Angels?' but it is ever b apparent in all the proceedings of our Saviour Christ whilst He lived in this world, that He never liked, in any, the resistance of civil authority by force; or approved of any inconsiderate and rash zeal, bent against magistrates or any other persons; but was always ready to blame and check the same, as He did when He found it in two other of His Apostles who to revenge an injury offered to their master, sought to have had it punished from heaven. For when the Samaritans refused, — upon conference and direction, we doubt not, of those that were in authority over them, — to give Christ i.u. 9. 51, entertainment and lodging in one of their cities, James and John were so moved therewith as they would needs have licence of Him to command that fire should come down from [2 Kings heaven, as Elias did ; shewing thereby, that in their heat, if '- 1 they had been able, they would have had them all destroyed. But our Saviour Christ, disliking such fiery and rash zeal, 106 rebuked them and said, ' You know not of what spirit you are ;' that is, in effect, as if He should have said, You may pretend Elias his fact, but you are far from Elias his spirit. He only executed the judgment of God, as, by the Spirit, He was extraordinarily directed : whereas you have received no such direction, but are only in your passion and heat stirred up to revenge. The conclusion hereof is, that Christ our Lord all the time He remained here upon the earth, did not only in His own person shew Himself obedient to civil authority, according to the said fifth commandment, but did likewise utterly b In A. the word ' very' is written in red chalk above 'ever.' overall's convocation book. 91 condemn, in others, upon every occasion offered unto Him, book throughout the four Evangelists, all inconsiderate zeal and n - opposition against temporal magistracy. Insomuch, as con- cerning His own said obedience, when He was apprehended, notwithstanding Peter's sword, He submitted Himself to the public officer that was then sent for Him ; and likewise being afterwards carried to Pilate, the civil magistrate at that time, under the emperor, and before him falsely charged by His malicious adversaries with treason, He behaved Himself in such dutiful manner as was fit and convenient for Him that truly had professed subjection "", and did in no sort seek to decline his power and authority, either by alleging that He was not the emperor's subject, or that Pilate was not His competent judge, or by using any other tergiversation or evasion ; but acknowledged very freely, his said authority to be lawful, and yielding Himself thereunto, did confess that it ' was given him from above.' Joh. 19.11. 107 CANON I. &nb therefore if ang man shall affirm, unber colour of ang thing that is t'rt the scriptures, either that the Uoctrine of grace t'n the Nefo Testament both more abolish the rules of nature or moral law of QSoii than ft tfttf fit the ©lb ; or, that through faith the saftf lafo foas not rather established than in ang sort impeached ; or, that because as mang as beliebe are rebeemeb anb mabe free from the curse of the lain, theg are therefore exempted an& free from the obebience of the lafo; or, that hg the incarnation of our ^abiour Christ, obebience to the fifth commanbment, touching honour bue to parents antr princes, foas in ang sort impeachetr, the rest of the lafo being established ; or, that our gbabiour Christ, habing unbertafcen the fulfilling of the fohole lafo, as far forth, at the least, as eber manfcinb foas bounti to habe ful- filled it, came short in this one lafo, bg exempting ^imself from ang obebience bue to the cibil magistrate ; or, that f^e, c The.passage from ' that' to ' subjection' inclusive, is in the margin of A. 92 overall's convocation book. book fiabing tiett himself accor&ing to tfie saiii commantmtent, as '- — well to tfie obebience of tfie cibil magistrate as tfie obedience wfiicfi was touc to f^is parents, ifiif not, wfiilst f^e libetf in ios tfie worlii, fulfil tfie lata wfiollg concerning tfiem botfi ; or, tfiat f^e iiiif ang wag or at ang time encourage tfie 3|ews, or ang otfier, irirectlg or iniiirectlg, to rebel for ang cause wfiat= soeber against tfie -Roman emperor or ang of fits subordinate magistrates ; or, tfiat $^e iiiii not berg toilliuglg, botfi f^im= self pag tribute to ©eesar, anU also a&bise tfie %tto% so to tio; or, tfiat wfien f^e willeir tfie ^jews to pag tribute to GPaesar, inclu&ing tfieretn tfieir irutg of obe&ience unto fiim, f^e iiiir not tfiereiu Ileal plainlg anil sincerelg, but meant secretlg tfiat tfieg sfioulK be bounty no longer to be obedient unto fiim, but until bg force tfieg sfioulif be able to resist fiim; or, tfiat f^e &i& not utterlg anil trulg conUemu all iiebices, conferences antr resolutions wfiatsoeber, eitfier in f^is ofon Apostles, or in ang otfier persons, for tfie using of force against cibil autfioritg ; or, tfiat it is or can be more lawful for ang pribate persons, eitfier of &t. Jeter's calling, or of ang otfier profession, to iirafo tfieir sfoor&s against autfioritg, tfiottgfi in tfieir rasfi ?eal tfieg sfioulif fioltr it lawful so to Bo for tfie preserbation of religion, tfian it toas for &t. peter for tfie preserbation of fit's master's life ; or, tfiat bg ©firfst's 109 foorirs abobe mentioned, all subjects of Wfiat sort soeber witfi= out exception, ougfit not bg tfie lam of ©oil to perisfi wftfi tfie sworii, tfiat tafte anir use tfie sworii for ang cause against feings an& sobereip princes un&er wfiom tfieg were born, or un&er rofiose jurisdiction tfieg bo infiabft ; or, tfiat seeing our Ibabiour QDfirist wottlii not fiabe tfie Samaritans to be UestrogetJ wftfi fire from fieaben; altfiougfi tfieg mere at tfiat time Uibfotfj in religion from tfie gjews aniJ refused to receibe f^im in person, it is not to be ascribe* to tfie spirit of Satan for ang pribate men to attempt bg gunpowiier anil fire from fiell to blow up anil iiestrog tfieir sobereigns, anil tfie wfiole state of tfie countrg wfiere tfieg were born anil breiJ, because in tfieir conceits tfieg refuseii some parts of GCfi list's iioctrine anil gobevnment ; or, tfiat ©firist iiiii not well anii as tfie saiij fiftfi 93 comman&ment oft require, in submitting himself as f^e tifo book to autfioritg, altfiougfi |^c foas first sent for fottfi sfoortfs anU — LL — stabes, as if $^e ftati been a tfiief, anir tficn afterfoar&s carrieif to dilate anir bg fiim, albeit fie founfc no ebil fa ^im, con= Uemne& to tfeatfi ; or, tfiat bg ang tfoctrine or example, fofiicfi n°©firist eber taugfit or fiatfi left upon gootr recortr, it tan be probetr latoful to ang subjects for ang cause of tofiat nature soeber to decline either tfie autfioritg an& jurisdiction of tfietr soberetp princes, or of ang tfietr latoful deputies antr inferior magistrates ruling un&er tfiem, fie tfotfi greatlg err. CHAPTER III. It is many ways very plain and evident that the Jews did expound all those places of the prophets which do notably set forth the spiritual kingdom of our Saviour Christ, to be meant of a temporal kingdom which He should erect upon the earth. And upon that false ground they did imagine that when their expected Messiah should come into the world. He was to advance them unto a glorious estate here upon earth, and to reign in the midst of them as a most mighty and temporal monarch. Which erroneous conceit, when Herod heard of the birth of Christ, made him to fear lest the new-born babe should deprive him of his kingdom, and induced him thereupon to seek His destruction. Thence also it did proceed, that when the people were so much moved with admiration of one of Christ's miracles, as that they used these words, ' This is of a truth the Prophet that joh. 6. 14, should come into the world/ they presently devised how 15- they might make Him their king. But Christ perceiving their drift, prevented their purpose by departing from them ; as well observing and knowing that their erroneous imagin- ation of Him. Nay, the better sort of those that followed in Christ were not free from this erroneous cogitation; as it Mat. 20. appeareth by the petition that the mother of Zebedee's ^ rk 10 children made unto Christ, saying, ' Grant that these my 35, 41, &c. 94 overall's convocation book. book two sons may sit, the one at Thy right hand, and the other — ^— at Thy left hand, in Thy kingdom.' It seemeth, hy St. Mark, that her said two sons, James and John, did join with their mother and made likewise the same petition themselves, unto Christ, in their own names. And it is plain that the rest of the Apostles, having aspiring minds to have heen great men in the world, as dreaming of a temporal kingdom, that Christ was in time to establish amongst them, when they heard this suit, did hegin, as the Evangelists testify, to disdain at James and John for seeking, in that sort, to prefer themselves before them; some of them perhaps thinking themselves more worthy of those two great dignities than either of them were. But our Saviour Christ, finding these carnal imaginations amongst them, did throughly reprove them for those their vain conceits ; and did make it well known unto them how far they overshot themselves when they supposed that He should become a temporal king ; or that they themselves should be honoured hy Him with temporal principalities. Which course also our Saviour Lu.22. 24. Christ held, when as St. Luke saith, 'there arose a strife amongst the Apostles, which of them should be the greatest.' For then, they persisting in their former error, He did again renew His reproof, if this were a several contention from the former, saying unto them, ' The kings of the Gentiles reign over them, and they that bear rule over them are called benefactors,' as using to reward their servants with great and extraordinary worldly preferments ; — or, as St. Matthew Mat. 20. recordeth Christ's words, whether upon this or the former 25 ' 26 " occasion mentioned it is not greatly material, because they are all one in sense, ' Ye know that the lords of the Gentiles have dominion over them, and they that are great, exercise authority over them ; hut,' saith Christ, f it shall not be so 112 among you. But whosoever will he great among you, let him be your servant ; even as the Son of man came, not to he served, but to serve ; ' or, as St. Luke hath Christ's words, [Lu. 22. ' Ye shall not be so ;' that is, You shall not live as kings J upon the earth, nor have such worldly estates as that thereby ye might have occasion to vaunt in the world what great benefactors you have been in advancing your followers to this or that dukedom, according as great kings and monarchs OVERALL'S CONVOCATION BOOK. 95 are accustomed to deal with their servants and principal BOOK subjects; but let the greatest among you be as the least, — ~: and the chiefest as he that serveth. ' For who is greater ? he that sitteth at the table, or he that serveth? Is not he that sitteth at the table ? and I am among you as he that serveth.' By which words of our Saviour, it is very manifest how far He was from challenging to Himself any worldly kingdom; and how much His Apostles were deceived in apprehending what great men they should become d in the world by being His followers and disciples. To this purpose much more might be here alleged by us ; as also it would not be forgotten what we have before observed in the former chapter, tending to the same effect ; [p. 88.] inasmuch as Christ, having made Himself subject to the obedience of the fifth commandment, which tied Him as well to be a subject unto the emperor under whom He was born, as to the obedience of His parents, did thereby shew Him- self to be no temporal monarch. Howbeit, all this notwith- standing, there are some so much addicted in these days unto the said erroneous opinion of the Jews, as for the advancement of the glory of the bishop of Rome, they will needs have Christ to have been here upon the earth a temporal king ; affirming that upon His nativity all the kings in the world lost their regal power and authority, all their kingdoms being devolved unto Him; and that they 113 could no longer possess them by any right, interest, or title, until they had again resumed them from Him as He was man, and forsaken their ancient tenures, whereby they had held them of Him as He was God. Insomuch, as some of them say in effect, that neither Augustus Caesar, nor Tiberius his successor, were lawful emperors, from the time of Christ's birth for above the space of thirty years, until He our Saviour had required the Jews to pay tribute to Csesar; as if in so doing Tiberius had again received thereby his former right to the empire, and that thereupon he was from that time forward to hold it of Christ, as He was man. In which erroneous conceits these men proceed further than ever the Jews, or the Apostles in their weakness, did; for the Jews never imagined of their Messiah, that when He came into d ' Become by being.' D. 96 overall's convocation book. book the world He should abolish all civil government amongst : — the "Gentiles and be a temporal king to rule all nations, or that as many sovereign kings and princes as should from that time forward desire to rule their subjects by any lawful power and authority, must receive and hold the same from their, the said Jews', temporal king e ; but did restrain their conceits within more narrow bounds, thinking that their Messiah should not have such intermeddling with the Gentiles, but only restore the kingdom of Israel which had for a long time been miserably shaken and rent in pieces, and live in that country amongst them in a much more glorious form and state than ever any f of their kings before Him had done. And yet notwithstanding, these the said persons, having inconsiderately so far overrun the Jews in their follies, are possessed nevertheless with some imaginations, no doubt, that because the pope doth either applaud or wink at their proceedings, they may in time make it probable to the simpler sort, — who, when force is to be used, do bear the greatest sway, — that as all emperors and kings, forsooth, held their kingdoms from Christ, as He then was, and still is 114 man, so ought they now in these days to hold them of the pope, in that, if men might safely believe them, our Saviour Christ did, as they say, after His ascension bestow all such His worldly dominions upon St. Peter, and consequently upon his successors, the bishops of Rome ; and that now all worldly principalities are theirs, and must be held of them as they were before of Christ after His incarnation, by as many kings and princes as desire to hold their kingdoms by any right title. But these are men not to be feared ; for, to say the truth of them, they are all of them in effect either but gross and unlearned canonists, or else but new upstart and sottish Nerians ? , and of great affinity with the canonists: who meaning, as it seemeth, to outstrip the Jesuits, do labour as much to make the pope a temporal monarch as the Jesuits have done for his pretended spiritual sovereignty ; whose en- deavours are altogether, we suppose h , to be contemned, in e 'From (the said Jews) their tem- * [See note H.] poral kings.' D. h ' As we suppose.' D. ' • Than any.' D. oveuall's convocation book. 97 that both the sorts of them, as well canonists as Nerians, are BOOK more voluminous in their writings, than substantial : filling — — — them principally with very idle and ridiculous canons and decrees of the pope's own making; and having no true feeling or sense of divinity, do handle the Scriptures, when they have leisure to come unto them, with so foul and un- washed hands, as that their master either is, or ought to be, ashamed of them, in that he permitteth their so absurd books to come abroad into the world. Besides, it will not a little hinder their credit, if it make them not a scorn to all posterity, even amongst such men as have otherwise made themselves vassals to the see of Rome ; because the said Jesuits, and some others not to have been despised for their learning, whilst they have strived to advance the pope's supremacy in causes ecclesiastical, have themselves, in a manner, broken the neck of his fondly-conceited temporal 1 1 5 monarchy. Some of the chiefest amongst them affirming very peremptorily, that our Saviour Christ, as man, was never a temporal king upon earth ; nor ever had any such temporal authority, or government, as doth appertain unto kings and sovereign princes. We will set down some words of one that Beliarm. is of especial authority amongst them; not because we in- p ntif.i'.5. tend to ground any thing upon them, but for that they are [ See note true, and may perhaps be of more force than ours are like to be with some kind of people, the rectifying of whose hearts in the truth we tender as much as we do our own. ' Christ,' saith he, ' did not take kingdoms from them whose they were ; for Christ came not to destroy those things which were well settled, but to make them better. Therefore when a king is become a Christian, he doth not lose his earthly kingdom, but procureth a new interest to a kingdom that is eternal. Otherwise the benefit of Christ should be hurtful to kings, and grace should destroy nature.' And again ; ' Christ, as He was man, whilst He lived upon the earth, neither did nor would receive any temporal dominion.' And again ; ' I say, that Christ was always, as the Son of God, a king and lord of all creatures, in such sort as His Father is ; but this eternal and divine kingdom doth not abolish the dominions of men.' Again; ' I affirm',' saith he, 'that Christ, as He was man, could ' ' I affirm not.' D. 98 overall's convocation book. book not, though He would, and had thought it expedient for Him, : — have received regal authority ; hut yet I say that He would not, and therefore that He did not, receive, nor had, not only the execution of any lordship and regality, but neither the au- thority or power of any temporal kingdom.' Again, 'Christ, as He was man, had no temporal kingdom, neither by inherit- ance, nor by election, nor by conquest, nor by any especial gift of God k . And therefore he concludeth that Christ had no temporal kingdom at all, because every such kingdom is 116 gotten by one of the four said means.' Again, saith he, 'Christ [Mat. 20. never used, in this world, any regal power; He came to f J h 12 nrinister, and not to be ministered unto; to be judged, and -17.] not to judge.' And again; 'regal authority was neither necessary nor profitable to Christ, but plainly idle and un- profitable. For the end of His coming into the world was the redemption of mankind; but to this end temporal power was not necessary, but only spiritual. Lastly ; all the places of Scripture almost,' saith he, ' where is any 1 treaty of the kingdom of Christ, ought necessarily to be understood of His spiritual and eternal kingdom; and therefore it cannot be deduced out of the Scriptures that Christ had any temporal kingdom.' So as, in this man's judgment, neither St. Peter, for his time, nor since, any of his successors, did ever receive any temporal kingdoms from Christ, He Himself being never possessed of any, as He was man, either to retain in their own hands, or to commit the execution of them, as in their right, unto other kings and temporal monarchs. But to omit the further prosecution of this Loyolist his said positions, delivered truly in this point more at large, and proved by sundry arguments in his book quoted by us ; because he is a man, though he be a cardinal, and of great estimation with his own society, whose credit seemeth to decay, especially with the said canonists and others of that like crew. For if the rest shall hereafter proceed with him, as one of them hath already done, by perverting the whole drift of his disputation in that behalf, very childishly and grossly, he will be driven, ere it be long, to range himself in the troops of some who are falsely supposed heretics ; in that the k The passage beginning ' And there- the margin of A. fore,' and ending with ' means,' is in ' ' A treaty.' D. overall's convocation book. 99 said grave canonist is so courageous as he dareth to adventure book the pronouncing of a curse of the greatest nature against n - 117 him, by name, even Anathema sit ; and therefore we will clear our hands of him, and drawing to an end in this matter, leave the conclusion of it unto Christ Himself, Who knew His own estate, when He lived here in the world, as well as any canonists, either by birth of Padua, Naples, or Rome, or of any other city or country whatsoever. It is true that our Saviour Christ, as soon as He was born, was a spiritual king, not only over the Jews, but also over all nations. And therefore, when at the time of His arraign- ment before Pilate, though in scorn the Jews termed Him king, and that He could not indeed truly have denied it ; yet He did not equivocate therein, but confessed unto them, what manner of king He was. For Pilate saying unto Him, ' Art Thou the king of the Jews ?' and telling Him that Joh. 18. f the Jews and the High-Priests had delivered Him into his ' hands/ Jesus answered thus, ' My kingdom is not of this world : if My kingdom were of this world, My servants would surely fight, that I should not be delivered to the Jews ; but now is My kingdom not from hence.' As if He should have said, ' I am no temporal king, nor have any temporal king- dom in this world ; for if I had, my subjects, no doubt, would never have suffered Me to come to this distress ; or if it had been My hap so to have been dishonoured, as now I am, they would, out of all doubt, have fought on My behalf, as all dutiful subjects are bound to do when the persons of their sovereigns shall be in any danger. But My kingdom is of another nature ; it is no temporal kingdom, either of this world, that is, such a kingdom as those who are temporal kings do possess; or from hence, that is, My kingdom re- quireth no worldly assistance, the world hath given Me no subjects, neither have I any worldly estate or possessions ; so as it might be affirmed truly either of Me or of My kingdom, 118 that either for the dignity of My person, or the strengthening of My government, I have any thing hence, that is, from the world/ h 2 100 BOOK II. CANON II. &n& therefore if ang man sfiall affirm, un&er colour of ang tfiing tftat is in tfie Scriptures, eitfier tfiat tfie gjems irttr not err in conceding tfiat tfieir JWcssiafi, fofieu f^e came into tfie foorto, sfioulir as a temporal monarch reip amongst tfiem ; or, tfiat tfie Apostles tfiemsclbes were not somewhat tainted witfi sucfi lifee imaginations ; or, that ©prist's answers unto f^is satlj Apostles iifiJ not sufficientlg sfiem unto tfiem tfiat |^e came not into tfie morlti to erect for f^imself a temporal fcing= trom, anil tfiat therefore tfieg were not to expect from |^im sucfi foorMg preferments as tj&cg fiafc Ureametr of ; or, tfiat the Son of ffioO, in tfiat f^c Was ma&e man, trttir bg f^is blessefc natibttg &epribe all the cibfl magistrates in tfje luovtti of tljnt power anti autfioritg fofiicfi f^e fiaii formerlg giben unto them as |^e mas ffio& ; or, that ©hrist, as f^e was man, mas bg ?^is birtfi ma&e a temporal fcing ober all tfie worliJ ; or, tfiat all temporal princes aniJ sobereign feings foere tfiencefortfi bouncf 119 to fioltf tfieir seberal countries anil feingfcoms no more unirer ©firist, as f^e was ffioti, but as being man, ?©e was become a temporal monarch ober all nations; or, tfiat tfie emperor Tiberius, who tfien reipefc, Irflj gobern tfie empire for tfie space of abobc fifteen gears witfiout ang lawful autfioritg, until our Sbabiour ©firist willed tfie gjews to gibe unto ©eesar tfiose tfiings tfiat are ©aesar's ; or, tfiat ©firist, fiabing foillinglg undertaken for our saftes tfie fulfilling of all tfie lab), an& con= sequentlg of tfie fiftfi commandment, tffo not fioto it to be a part of |^is office to obeg tfie emperor, upon fofiom m , as ?^e was ffiocf, ffie fiatr bestowetr sucfi lafoful autfioritg as oft appertain unto ?^is gobernment; or, tfiat eitfier ©firist |^is fact in paging of tribute, or ffii% mortis in bulling tfie 3(ews to gibe unto ©a>sar tfiose tfiings tfiat were ©tesar's, tffo tfien import tfiat neitfier obe&ierice, tribute, custom, nor ang otfier irutg of subjection, bt&, until tfiat time, belong to tfie emperor, as being tfiitfierto fig ©firist's birtfi fccpribetf of all fits regal autfioritg ; ™ ' He had, as He was God, bestowed.' D. II. overall's convocation book. 101 120 or, tfiat ft is not a great impietg m anrj political respect foliat- book soeber, (or ang man to maintain, fo&en ©j&rist saitfi f^is fcing&om is not of tljis foorftf, tf)at it foas a foortolg an& tem- poral fcingftom ; or, fojjen CMjrist saitfi f^is feinglrom foas not from ijence, that it foas notfoitljstan&ing, as a foortolrj kingdom, from hence, as habing all otljer feings anif princes here in the toorlU, as bassals in that respect, antf subject unto it, he tooth greatlg err. 121 CHAPTER IV. THE SUM OP THE CHAPTER FOLLOWING. That our Saviour Christ in working our salvation, ivhilst He lived upon the earth, conformed Himself wholly and His obedience unto the ecclesiastical government and laws of the Church then in force ; inveighed not with any bitterness against the High-Priests, though they were His enemies and in many points faulty, but had ever a great respect of them, in regard of their authority; made no new laws when He expounded the old ; erected no particular congregations or Churches apart from the congregations and particular Churches of the Jews ; but did, together with His Apostles and disciples, join with the Church of the Jews in their public worship and service of God; omitting no one circum- stance, ceremony, or duty, undertaken voluntarily by Him, which He did not very throughly perform, even with the loss of His life. , As our Saviour Christ, whilst He lived in the world, did no way disturb the civil state, but upon every fit occasion did submit Himself unto it ; so may it be truly said of Him con- cerning the state ecclesiastical, formerly by God Himself established, and remaining still amongst the Jews, though in a very corrupt manner, that He did in every thing thereunto by the law of God appertaining, conform Himself unto it, whilst it lasted; we say", whilst it lasted; because upon His n ' I say, while.' D. 102 overall's convocation book. book death there was a great alteration. According to the : ecclesiastical laws, then, whilst He lived, in force, He was first circumcised, and so made Himself subject to the ful- Lev. 12.3. filling of the whole law. Then, as the law did likewise require, He was brought by His Mother to Jerusalem, to be presented to the Lord and to have an oblation, suitable to 122 Ex. 13. 13. their poor estate, of a pair of turtle doves, or two pigeons, Num. 18. offered to God with the price of redemption for Him, in that He was a man-child and the first-born. There were no kind Dent 16. of solemn feasts appointed by the law, which He honoured & c '-i 16 ' not with His presence according to the law. Nay, He was Joli. 10. pleased to be present at the feast of the Dedication of the 23 - Temple, which was instituted by Judas Maccabseus and his brethren; as well to teach all posterity, by His example, what godly magistrates may ordain in such kind of causes, as also how things so ordained ought to be observed. And as He was circumcised, so did He celebrate and observe the chief feasts of the Passover ; omitting nothing which either on the behalf of the Jews, or for our sakes, He had under- taken to perform. And although the priests in those days were very far out of square, and that our Saviour Christ had very just cause in that respect to have reproved them sharply, as other prophets had oftentimes dealt with their predecessors; yet He did so much regard them by reason of their authority, and lest He should otherwise have seemed to have con- temned both them and it, as He did rather choose to let Mat.2i. them understand their offences by parables than by any 28. ; r? Lu. rou g a reprehension ; still upholding them in their credits 20. 19.] a nd authority, as by the law of God in that behalf it was provided. When amongst many other His wonderful Mat. 8. 4. great miracles. He had healed certain lepers. He bade them Marki.44. go shew themselves to the priests, because they were appointed judges by the law to discern the curing of that disease, before the parties, though indeed healed of it, might Lu. 5. H; intermingle themselves with the rest of the people ; and did further require them to offer for their cleansing those things which Moses had commanded in testimonium Mis ; that is, that so the said priests might plainly see both that He was a keeper of the law, and also that He had healed them, and so be driven to repent them of their incredulity, or at the 123 overall's convocation book. 103 least be prevented thereby from slandering either Him as a book breaker of the law, or that which He had done for them as if IL He had not throughly healed them. Neither is it any way repugnant hereunto, that when our Saviour Christ found chopping and changing by buying and selling in the temple, Joh. 2.15. He made a scourge of small cords and drave them thence with their sheep, oxen, doves and money bags ; forbidding them to make His Father's house an house of merchandise. For He did not thereby, in any sort, prejudice the authority of the priests, who should chiefly have prevented such gross abuses and traffic in the temple, as if He had done the same either as a chief priest, or a temporal king, according to some men's fond imaginations, by any pontifical or regal authority ; but His fact therein, howsoever it might shew the negligence of the said priests, did only proceed from His divine zeal, as He was a prophet and could not endure such an abominable pro- fanation of God's house ; many prophets before Him having done matters very lawfully of greater moment through the like divine and extraordinary zeal in them, without any im- peachment of any power, either regal or pontifical. Howbeit, that our Saviour Christ was oftentimes very vehement against the Scribes and Pharisees, it is plain and manifest, when joining them both together, He termed them ' serpents/ the Mat. 23. 'generation of vipers/ and denounceth against them in one *■ ' °'J chapter eight woes, concluding thus, ' How should you escape the damnation of hell?' The reason that these curses and hard censures were jointly laid upon them, was because they themselves were joined together in all kinds of impiety and malice against Christ ; and were neither of them, especially the Pharisees, any plants of God's plantation. For whilst not only the High-Priests were still in faction and fury one against another, as well for the getting as the keeping that 124 high preferment, and that many of the inferior priests were either siding amongst themselves for one party or other, or else more idle and negligent in discharging of their duties than they ought to have been ; these two sects thrust them- selves into the Church, and through their hypocrisy so pre- vailed with the people in short time, as the priests afterwards either could not, or would not be rid of them; because on the one side they thought it in vain to strive with them they 104 overall's convocation book. book were so backed, and on the other side they found them so : — diligent in discharging of those duties which did appertain to themselves, and withal so careful to uphold the state and authority of the priesthood. By means whereof they grew very shortly into so great estimation, that, as one writeth of Jos.Antiq. the Pharisees, whatsoever did appertain to public and solemn Jud. xvm. p rayers an a to tne W orship of God, it was done according to their interpretations and as they prescribed. And the Scribes, being likewise doctors and expounders of the law, and con- curring still with the interpretations and prescriptions of the Pharisees, came not, by that policy, in their credits and re- putation had of them, far short behind them. The distinc- tion between them may well be expressed by comparing the Pharisees unto the divines amongst our adversaries, who take upon them to search out more throughly the mysteries of the Scriptures ; and the Scribes to their canonists, who in respect of their said divines are but novices in God's Word and applauders to the pope's decrees, as the Scribes were being compared to the Pharisees, in that they held it for a principal part of their office to uphold and maintain, as much as they could, the traditions of the Pharisees, and did only take upon them to deal with the bark and literal sense of Moses' laws, leaving the more profound knowledge and mystical interpretation of them unto the said Pharisees. But the issue of the labours of both these hypocritical sects was such, as being blinded with their own devices, they became 125 to be the specialest enemies that Christ found upon the earth, and opposed themselves most against Him. And yet not- withstanding, because He found them in so great authority, and perceived how the knowledge of the law, which ought to [MaL2.7.] have been received from the lips of the priests, did then de- pend upon the lips of the Scribes and Pharisees, He did neither blame them for it nor impugn the said authority. Insomuch as the multitude being many ways factious, and, though very ignorant, were become great questionists touching the points of the law. He referred them, with a very good caution, to the Scribes and Pharisees, to be in- [Mat. 23. structed by them, saying, ' The Scribes and Pharisees sit in 2 ' 3 -' Moses' seat; all therefore whatsoever they bid you observe and do, that observe and do ; but after their works do not, overall's convocation book. 105 for they say, and do not.' Whereby it appeareth how re- BOOK spectful our Saviour Christ was for the free passage and ~ observation of Moses' law, in that He was content that the Scribes and Pharisees, notwithstanding He knew their hypo- crisy and corruption, and how they had come by that authority which they then enjoyed, should yet instruct the people under them; so as the people did beware of their wicked conversation, and approved no resolutions that they might receive from them, which were not 'first proved unto them out of the laws of Moses and were fit to proceed from his seat. Touching which last point of Moses' law, and how nothing ought to have been taught out of Moses' seat but that which Moses, by the direction of the Holy Ghost, had prescribed ; forasmuch as our Saviour Christ did well see and understand how the Scribes and Pharisees had by their false interpreta- tions and glosses perverted and corrupted the true sense and meaning of divers of Moses' laws, He was greatly moved therewith, and did take great pains to refute the said false 126 glosses and interpretations, and to restore to the laws men- tioned their true sense and original meaning. Wherein, although by His strict exposition of those laws He might seem, to some not well advised, to have so extended and enlarged the meaning of them, as if He had thereby pre- scribed some new points or laws of greater perfection than were originally contained in the true meaning of the old ; yet we cannot find how either the said points may otherwise be termed new than as gold first purified and fined, after it hath either in time grown rusty, or been by false mixtures cunningly corrupted, may be called new gold, when it is again purged from the said false mixtures, and refined ; or how the observation of them can bring with it to men any greater perfection in the New Testament, than God Himself did expect of His servants in the Old Testament, by their observing of the said laws so expounded by Christ, in their ancient sense and meaning, which they first had, when by His appointment Moses did give them unto them. For if in proper speech He had made any new laws, coming only to fulfil the old, as Himself in a true sense affirmed, the Jews might have had some good colour to have blamed Him, in that, 106 overall's convocation book. book during the continuance of their ecclesiastical government, if '■ — any new laws had been then to have been made touching the worship of God, the authority in that behalf was limited by God Himself unto their own Church-governors. Again, con- sidering that the Son of God, in taking our nature upon Him, did so make Himself of no reputation, as being, of His own goodness towards mankind, a servant to His Father, He be- [Phil. 2. came, to do His will, obedient unto the death, even the death 8 1 of the cross ; it cannot well be imagined by any that have any true understanding of the Scriptures, that the Son of God, having so debased Himself, as is aforesaid, did ever think in that His so admirable humiliation, of any rules or new laws of greater perfection than He had before required 127 and prescribed unto His true servants and children, as He was God in majesty and glory, without any such exinanition as the Apostle speaketh of. The obedience and duty which Almighty God ever did, or ever will require of His servants, was and is always to proceed as well from their hearts as from any other external actions. Insomuch, as if it fell out, as it may at some times, that they cannot perform their said duties in respect of some impediments that will hold them from Christ ; in that case, be it riches, they are to leave them ; their eyes, their hands, or their feet, they are to cut [Mat. 5. them off; nay, be it their blood, their hearts, and lives, they '- 1 are rather, than to forsake their God and His Christ, to yield them all in this world with what ignominy soever, to the end they may receive them again with glory in the king- dom of heaven ; than which great obedience and perfection, what can be imagined greater ? or who is there in the world that truly professeth religion who in that case is exempted from it ? Certainly, we think, none, of what estate and con- dition soever they be ; but do rather hold, that as they who shall yield up their lives under pretence of any extraordinary perfection, saving in the case above expressed, are far from that which they make show of, but are rather to be accounted desperate ; so are they, in our judgments, to be reckoned men of very extraordinary humours and most ignorant persons, if not such counterfeit hypocrites, — as were the Scribes and Pharisees in professing extraordinary austerity of life that they might be the better esteemed amongst men — who shall with- overall's convocation book. 107 out any necessity, either pull out their eyes, or cut off their BOOK feet and hands, or forsake their riches and worldly estates, as IL blessings of God not compatible but repugnant to that per- fection which God doth require at any man's hands. 128 It is not our purpose to prosecute all those particulars mentioned in the Evangelists wherein our Saviour Christ shewed His obedience ; there being in effect nothing that He did which was not either figured in the law, or foretold by the prophets, that He should perform. The time of His incarnation, with the manner of it. His entertainment in the world, His diligence in preaching, His whipping, blows, and scorns offered unto Him, the wounds of His hands, feet and side, the beginning and progress of His spiritual kingdom, the several duties appertaining to Him, as He was a prophet, and likewise as He was our High-Priest, the institution of Baptism and of Christ's last Supper, His righteousness and mercy. His death, with the manner of it, His resurrection and ascension, with a number of other points, they were all foreseen, figured, and described by the Holy Ghost in the Scriptures ; and were accordingly, with admirable patience, humility, obedience, courage, zeal and alacrity executed, undergone, and accomplished by Him, in such manner and sort, with the observation of all necessary circumstances, and by such degrees, as from the beginning were limited and thought fit for so great a work. For all things could not be done by Him together, and at once. Although after His baptism He preached most diligently, wrought strange wonders, and did choose to assist Him, His twelve Apostles and seventy disciples, who did likewise preach, baptize, and wrought miracles in His name ; yet neither He nor they did collect any particular Church or Churches apart from the synagogues of the Jews; but held society and communion with them in all things that did belong to the outward service and worship of God ; because, until His passion, as well the ceremonies of the law, as the Aaronical priesthood, together with the authority thereunto appertaining, were all of them in force; and therefore it was not lawful, whilst the old Church 129 did stand, to have erected a new. Moreover it is not to be doubted, but that as before Christ's incarnation there were many faithful and godly persons that believed in Christ, to 108 overall's convocation book. BOOK come, and by that their faith were saved ; so there were many : — such believers, after His incarnation, who were likewise the children of God, though they were ignorant, for a time, that Christ, when He was come, was the Messiah, Whom they expected ; none of the Jews so believing, being in state of damnation, until after they had seen Christ, heard Him preach, been present at His miracles, or at the least had received full instruction of them all from His Apostles and disciples, they did notwithstanding reject Him. In which respect the true believers amongst the Jews, in those days, might not well have been distinguished into several and different congregations, or particular Churches, without many great and apparent inconveniences; but this point is yet plainer, in that the Jews, who believed, at that time, that Christ, Whom they saw, and heard, was their true" Messiah, were, notwithstanding, subject to the obedience of those ceremonial and levitical laws, which did concern them every one in his calling, which doth appear by the examples of Christ Himself and His Apostles ; who, although they were baptized, did not sever themselves from the manner of the worshipping 1 " of God in those times. Insomuch as first they did celebrate together the feast of the passover, before our Saviour Christ made them partakers of His last Supper. Neither is it to be questioned, but that many, who did believe in Christ, their and our Saviour, then amongst them, had new born children, before His passion, which were as well circum- cised as baptized. For then, as circumcision was not repug- nant to baptism, no more was baptism any impediment to circumcision, being both of them so united together and qualified, as they could not well be severed during the con- tinuance of the levitical law and priesthood. We grant, that upon our Saviour Christ His birth and 1 30 further proceedings in the execution of His office, not only the Jewish ceremonies, but in like sort their priesthood, began both of them to shake, and did, after a sort, draw near to their end; but until our Saviour Christ said upon Joh. 19.30. the cross, ' It is finished/ and that the vail was rent in Mat 27. t waulj fi. 0Trl the top to the bottom, they neither of them had utterly lost their levitical natures, power and authority. ° ' The true.' D. p ' Of worshipping.' D. overall's convocation book. 109 And therefore it must be held, that although, by the preach- BOOK ing of our Saviour and of His Apostles, many men's hearts — — — were drawn to believe that Christ was the Messiah Whom they expected, and that they were thereby made actually partakers of many of those mercies which by figures and sacrifices had been formerly set out unto them ; as also, that in regard thereof they might be termed, in a right good sense, the beginning of a new Church ; yet did they neither in respect of their faith and baptism make any separation, but were only the better part of the old Church ; nor might they, in regard of either of them, have lawfully exempted themselves from the government of it. Which is further manifest by the words of our Saviour Christ Himself, when He saith thus ; ' If thy brother trespass against thee, go, and Mat. 18. tell him his fault between thee and him alone. If he hear 15 ' thee, thou hast won thy brother, but if he hear thee not, take yet with thee one or two, that, by the mouth of two or three witnesses, every word may be confirmed. And if he will not vouchsafe to hear them, tell it unto the Church.' For by the Church, in this place, the ecclesiastical courts established amongst the Jews, at that time, must, as we think, be understood ; there being then no other courts of that nature amongst them which had any authority to punish q such obstinate persons as Christ there speaketh of. So as our Saviour Christ did here refer the parties, offended by some of their brethren, to the said ecclesiastical courts, in 131 the same respect and sense, and no otherwise, than He sent the lepers, whom He had healed, to the priests, according to the law ; or when He referred the multitude to the Scribes and Pharisees, to be instructed by them because they sat in Moses' chair. Besides, whatsoever is spoken by the Evan- gelists of the Church that should be built upon a rock so strongly as that the gates of bell should not be able to prevail against it, or of the power and authority to bind and loose, by censures or otherwise ; that is no way to be applied to the said Church or Sanhedrim mentioned by St. Matthew, or to any particular assembly of Christians, either before the passion of Christ or afterwards ; but was only spoken and delivered, by way of prophecy, of the Catholic Church, which i ' Any such.' D. 110 OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. BOOK after the resurrection and ascension of our Saviour Christ : — should be established in the world in a more conspicuous and universal sort than formerly it had been. And yet we do not deny but that Christ, in the said words, ' Tell the Church/ meaning the Jews' courts or Sanhedrims, might very well insinuate, in that He called not those courts by their own names, but termed them the Church, that, in such cases as there are by Him mentioned, the Christians, in time to come, should accordingly repair unto their ecclesiastical courts, to be established amongst them throughout the Christian world for reformation of offenders and satisfaction in points of religion ; as the Jews of all sorts, whether believers or not, Mere bound, until the death of Christ, to repair to their priests and Sanhedrims, if either they meant to be truly in- structed in the laws or to have such manner of offences law- fully punished by those kind of censures that Christ, in the said place, speaketh of. But what should we insist so much upon this point to prove that all the Jews, that either believed in Christ or did reject Him, were bound, before the passion of our Saviour Christ, to be obedient to the ecclesiastical governors esta-132 blished by God Himself in that visible Church ; considering how careful our Saviour Christ was, upon every occasion offered, for the preservation of their authority whilst it was to endure, and with what humility He did submit Himself unto it? For being sent for by them, He was content, at that time, to go unto them, and to be examined by them, when He had found them many ways before to be His mortal enemies, and knew how at that present they were plotting to take away His life, by corrupting of Judas to betray Him into their hands and by suborning of false witnesses to accuse Him ; as also how, after they had examined Him, they would use Him most despitefully and scornfully, spit in His face and buffet Him, beat Him with rods, carry Him bound as a malefactor and deliver Him to Pilate the civil magistrate; likewise how they themselves would be His accusers, how they would practise with the people to prefer Barabbas his liberty, being a murderer, before His, and to cry out with them, to Pilate, 'Let Him be [Lu. 23. crucified, let Him be crucified; crucify Him, crucify Him ;' 21.] overall's convocation boor. Ill their outrage and fury being so bent against Him as that BOOK they themselves would have put Him to death, if by the — laws of the Romans, whereunto they were then subject, they might have been permitted so to have done. CANON III. gtnlj therefore if ang man shall affirm, un&er tolour of ang thing that is in the Scriptures, either that our gbabiour Christ fobilst 3^ ifoe& U p on the earth was not obeiiient to the state ecclesiastical, as ?^e was to the temporal ; or, that all 133 Christians fcg ^fs example are. not hounii to he as well obe&ient to their Church=gobernors, as theg are to their cibil magistrates ; or, that Christian feings habe not now as full authotitg to appoint some festival iiags of puhlic thanfesgibing to Croii, fa remembrance of some great aniJ extraoriiinarg mercies of |^ts, sheweii unto them upon those Hags, as gjuifas JWaccaha>us haft to oritain the feast of the Metrication of the temple to he gearlg celehrateU; or that, where ang such festibal Kags are appointed, the subjects of eberg such flings, ought not bg Christ f^ts example in celebrating the saftr feast, to obserbe anil fceep them ; or, that all the true members of the Church are not taught bg Christ |^is example, in |^is ohserbing of the ceremonial law, being then in force, that theg liftefoise are bouniJ to obserbe all such constitutions anil ceremonies as for orfcer anil Kecencg are With all ifue cautions established in ang particular Church, bg the chief gobernors of it, until it shall please them the saftr gobernors to abrogate them ; or, that all Christians are not bounif bg Christ's example to refrain all bitterness of calumniation anil infraction, anil to ileal temperatelg aniJ miliilg with their ecclesiastical 134 gobernors, in respect of their authoritg, that it be not brought into contempt, though theg unii some imperfections either in their persons, or in their proceedings, as f^e, our saiii blesseii £>abiour, in the same respect, tfealt with the priests of the gjews, though theg hatf mang wags transgressed, antf were 112 overall's convocation book. book f&is mortal enemies ; or, tbat GMmst, bg fobipping bugers '■ — anb sellers out of tbe temple, ttiti ettfier impeacb tj»e autboritg of tbe priests or practise tfierein ang pontifical or temporal power, as if ?^e ftab been a temporal lung, or flits tfte same bg ang otber autboritg tban as f^e mas a propbet ; or, tbat Christians are not now as stronglg bounb in boubts of religion to repair unto tbe cbief ministers anb ecclesiastical gobernors, altbougb tbeg are not alfoags tieb to bo as tbeg So, as foere tfte ^jefos in sucb lifee cases bounb to repair to tbem tbat sat in Jttoses' seat; or, tbat eberg true ©bristian, foben for tbe safla cause be repairetb to tbe cbief ministers ana gobernors of tbe CTburcb to be resolbeb bg tbem, is ang furtber noto bounb to bepenb upon sucb tbeir resolutions tban tbeg are able to sbew tbem unto bim out of tbe worb of C&ob; or, tban tbe 3Jews toere bounb to beliebe tbe Scribes anb ^barisees, tbougb tbeg sat in JWoses' cbair, roben tbeg taugbt 135 tbem ang tbing fobicb was not agreeable to tbat robicb jftfloses bab commanbeb; or,tbat ©brist $^is example in conbemningtbe false interpretations arils glosses of tbe Scribes anb ^barisees, anb in restoring to tbe law tbe true sense anb original meau= ing of it, batb not eber since warranteb learneb anb goblg men, wben tbeg founb tbe Scriptures perbcrteb bg tbose tbat gobern tbe ©burcb, of purpose to mafee tbeir own gain tbercof anb to maintain tbeir great usurpations, to free tbe same bg searcbing tbe saib Scriptures from all sucb false interpret- ations anb glosses, anb to mafee plain, as mucb as in tbem bib lie, tbe true sense anb meaning of tbem ; or, tbat our Sabiour ©btist, roben $^e purgeb btbers parts of tbe lam from tbe gross anb erroneous expositions of tbe Scribes anb ^barisees, bib gibe ang otber sense anb meaning of tbem, or infer upon it ang nibs rules of greater perfection, eitber as |^e mas man or as |^e was a propbet, tban tbeg bab anb con= tatneb ortginallg, wben |^e first gabe tbem to tbe Israelites, as |^e was ffiob ; or, tbat it is not an erroneous anb fonb conceit, lite unto tbat of tbe sectaries amongst tbe 3Jews, especiallg of tbe ^pbarisees, for ang sort of persons, no foag 136 able to perform tbeir buties to (Sob in sucb manner anb sort OVERALLS CONVOCATION BOOK. 113 as tfteg ougftt, once so mucft as to imagine tftat bg tj>t obserba= book tion of tfteir ofon rules tfteg are able to attain to greater per — — fection tftan bg tfte obserbation of ffiotr's rules ; or, tftat it is not as bain anti fonfc an imagination as tfte former for ang eCftristian man to tftinft tftat tfte enfoging of sucft possessions anti ricftes as ffioti ftatft blessed ftim foitft is repugnant to tftat perfection fofticft ffiotr ftatft require* at ftis ftantrs ; or, tftat tfte same are otfterfoise incompatible foitft tfte saitf perfection tftan in sucft cases onlg toften eitfter tfteg must leabe tfteir foortolg estates, or ©ftrist tfteir Sbabiour ; or, tftat our gjabiour ©ftrist, bg laging of some grounds for tfte future estate of tfte ©fturcft after f^is passion, tfitf tfterebg erect ang nefo ©fturcftes apart from tftat ©fturcft boWb was to continue until f^is tfeatft ; or, tftat tfte example of ©ftrist antf f^ts Apostles, in Soloing societg antf communion foitft tfte 3lefos in tfte outfoartf foorsfttp antr serbice of ffiotf, trotft not contremn all sucft sectaries as tfo separate tftemselbes from tfte ©fturcftes of ©ftrist foftereof tfteg foere once members, tfte same being true 137 ©fturcftes bg lafoful autftoritg establisftett, untrer pretence of tfteg fenofo not foftat nefo ©ftristianitg ; or, tftat tftere ougftt not to be nofo amongst CDftristians, ecclesiastical courts for ecclesiastical causes, as foell as tftere foere sucft courts amongst tfte 3Jefos for sucft feint* of causes; or, tftat all ©ftristians are not nofo bounU to repair, as foell to ecclesias= tical courts antr gobernors for reformation of sucft offences as are of ecclesiastical conusance, as tfte ^fefos foere bountr to cogni- repair to tfteir Sbanfte&rims to ftabe tftose ebils retrresseir tftat zance foere to be reformed bg tftose courts ; or, tftat as mang as tro profess tftemselbes to be true imitators of ©ftrist in tfteir libes antr conbersation, are not bountr to sucft obetrience unto tfteir princes antr rulers, ftofo ebil tiisposetr soeber tfteg be, gea tftougft tfteg seefe tfteir libes, as ©ftrist sftefoetr antf performed botft to tfte ecclesiastical antr temporal state of tfte gjefos at foftat time ?§e ftnefo tfteg foere plotting |^is treatft, fte trotft greatlg err. 114 overall's convocation book. BOOK n. CHAPTER V. 138 THE SUM OF THE CHAPTER FOLLOWING. That our Saviour Christ, after His resurrection and ascension, did not alter the form of temporal government established by Himself long before His incarnation; and that therefore emperors, kings, and sovereign princes, though they were then infidels, were nevertheless to be obeyed by the subjects, as formerly from the beginning they had been. It hath been before observed by us that our Saviour Christ whilst He lived in this world was no temporal king, nor had any temporal dominion, court, possession, regal state, dukes, earls, lords, or any other subjects, as other temporal kings had, to obey and serve Him. But perhaps after His resurrection it was far otherwise with Him. Indeed so it was ; for whereas the Son of God, God Himself, equal to the Father, by being made man, did cease to put in practice the glory and majesty of His deity in His human nature, other- wise than by doing such miracles as He thought necessary for the conversion of those who were to believe in Him ; now after His resurrection and ascension, the state of His human nature was become, as it may well be said, much more glorious; because His divine nature did communicate unto His human nature so many divine dignities and opera- tions of His deity, in respect of the hypostatical union betwixt them, as the same was capable of, without turning of His divine nature into His human nature ; it being always to be understood that the said hypostatical and real union, notwithstanding there was never any confusion betwixt thenso two natures in Christ r , both of them always retaining their distinct and essential proprieties. Which ground observed, we may truly say that the attributes are admirable, which in regard of the said union are and may be ascribed unto our Saviour Christ, as He is man ; especially after His resurrec- tion and ascension : for some short proof hereof these places following may suffice. Before our Saviour Christ commanded ' 'Of Christ.' D. overall's convocation book. 115 His Apostles ' to go and teach all nations, baptizing them in BOOK the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost/ He — — — told them, lest they should have doubted whether He had any authority to make them so large a commission, ' that all Mat. 28. power was given unto Him in heaven and in earth/ He also 18 ' E 19 '] was before, as the Holy Ghost testifieth of Him, 'made heir of Heb. 1. 2. all things/ and so had a true interest in them ; and after His resurrection had the full possession of them. ' We see Heb. 2. 9. Jesus/ saith the Apostle, ' crowned with glory and honour/ And again, ' When God raised up Jesus Christ from the dead, Eph. 1 20, He set Him at His right hand, in heavenly places, far above 21, 22 ' all principality and power, and might and domination, and every name that is named, not in this world only, but also in that which is to come; and hath made all things subject under His feet.' And again, ' The kingdoms of this world are our Lord's and His Christ's.' And again, ' The Lamb is Rev.n.15,- Lord of lords, and King of kings.' And to conclude, ' He \ s ' \$ ' hath upon His garment, [and] upon His thigh, a name written, The King of kings, and Lord of lords.' Howbeit, all that we have hitherto said notwithstanding, though all the world doth actually appertain unto our Saviour Christ, now in glory, as He is man, in respect of the said unition or hypostatical union ; yet did He not alter, after His resurrection and ascension, the manner of temporal government which He had ordained throughout the world s , before His incarnation, as He was God, (His human nature being invested by the power of His divinity, in manner 140 before expressed, with all His said glory and authority;) but doth still continue the sole monarch over all, distribut- ing that His universal kingdom, as formerly He had done, into divers principalities and kingdoms, and appointing temporal kings and sovereign princes as His substitutes and vicegerents to rule them all by the rules and laws of nature if they be ethnics ; or if Christians, then not only by those rules, but also as well by the equity of the judicial laws which He gave to the Jews, as by the doctrine of the Gospel more thoroughly opened and delivered with all the parts of it by Himself and His Apostles, than in former time it had been. Of Christian kings we shall have fitter place to speak * ' Throughout the world before His incarnation, as He was God.' D. i2 116 overall's convocation book. BOOK hereafter. Now we will prosecute this point concerning the lh regal authority of princes that are infidels, and consider more particularly, whether they did not, and so consequently do not still, as lawfully enjoy their kingdoms and regal sovereignties L under our Saviour Christ after His resurrection and ascension, as they did before either of them, and like- wise as they did before His incarnation, according to that which we have delivered in the former chapter. And the especial reason that moveth us so to do is the audacious temerity of the before-named ignorant Canonists and of their adherents, the new sectaries of the Oratory Congrega- tion ; who, with the like ignorance and folly that they told us how all kings lost their interest and authority over their kingdoms by the birth of our Saviour Christ, do further- more endeavour very wickedly and sottishly to pervert such especial places in the Apostle's writings, as are most apparently repugnant to their said fancy, or rather frenzy. To make their dealing with one place apparent, is sufficient for our Rom 13 purpose. "Whereas St. Paul, writing to the Romans, willeth I 1 -] them to be subject to the higher powers, or teacheth them, as a late absurd 11 Canonist abridgeth the place, obediendum esse principibus, ' that princes are to be obeyed :' he speaketh not, saith he, de Ethnicis, as that place is corruptly alleged, hi sed quatenus de illis intelleocit, that is, ' in such a sense as he meant it.' And what the Apostle meant he is not ashamed to tell us in this sort, saying, (1.) ' the Apostle speaketh of the Roman empire, which Christ had approved when He bade the Jews pay tribute to Caesar, (2.) the text doth ex- pound itself, for he writeth to Christians, whom he coun- selled to be obedient to princes, lest they should sin; for princes are not to be feared for good works, but for evil ; therefore he doth not simply command obedience to ethnic princes, &c. (3.) The like manner of writing St. Paul used in l Tim. 6. exhorting servants to honour their lords, etiam infideles, [1.2.] though they were infidels, for the reasons by him there mentioned. (4.) By those monitions, meaning the said commandments of the Apostle concerning obedience of subjects to their princes and of servants to their masters, ' ' Legal sovereignties.' D. Par. i. cap. 24. n. 38. [See note K.] " Dr. Marta. Tract, de Jurisdic. 117 just dominion is not founded in the persons of ethnics, nam book Paulus, qui hoc elicit, non erat summits pontifex ; for Paul — — — who said so, was not a chief Bishop, &c. (5.) Furthermore, in that time of the primitive Church, the Church could not de facto, punish infidels and transfer their kingdoms, &c. Thus far this audacious and unlearned Canonist ; the very citation of whose words we hold sufficient to refute them; although he allegeth for himself to support them very grave authors, the Distinctions, forsooth, the Gloss, Hostiensis, and Propositus ; adding that some other Canonists do concur with him. Only we will oppose against him and all his said fellows x , to shew their follies by a proof of this nature, the testimony of the pope's chief champion, the only Jesuit without comparison, now a principal cardinal, who maintaineth in express terms, that infidel princes are true and supreme princes of their kingdoms, and writeth thus against the said assertion of the Canonist directly ; saying, God doth approve the kingdoms of the gentiles in both the Testaments, ' Thou art king of kings, and the God of Heaven hath given thee thy kingdom and empire/ &c. Dan. 2. 1*2 'Restore those things unto Caesar that are Caesar's.' Note [? 7 ^„„ ° , Mat. 22. that He saith not ' give/ but, ' Restore those things that are [21.] Caesar's •' that is, those things which in right are owing unto him. ' Give unto all men that which is due unto them; R 0m . 13, tribute to whom you owe tribute, and custom to whom you t 7 -] owe custom,' &c. Et jubet ibidem etiam propter conscientiam obedire principibus ethnicis ; at certe non tenemur in conscien~ tia obedire illi, qui non est verus princeps ; that is, 'and we are commanded in the same place, even for conscience to obey princes that are ethnics ; but assuredly we are not bound in conscience to obey him who is no true, lawful, or right prince.' Hitherto the Cardinal ?. We would not have cited this man's testimony thus at large were not all that he hath said therein thoroughly sup- ported by all the learned men, as we suppose, of his society ; and sufficient to refel the vanity of the Canonists and their fellows in that folly. For if we should insist herein upon the authority of men, all the ancient Fathers do fully concur with us ; that through the whole course of the Scriptures * • All his fellows.' D. > [See note L.] 118 overall's convocation book. book obedience was and is as well prescribed in the Old Testa- — — '- — ment to ethnic princes as unto the tings of Judah ; and so likewise in the New Testament, as well to infidel princes as Christian ; the precepts of the Apostles in that behalf being general, and so to be applied as well to the one sort as to the other, in that they hold their kingdoms of Christ equally, as is aforesaid, and therefore ought to be equally obeyed by their subjects, with that general caution which was ever \mderstood, viz. in those things which they commanded them and were not repugnant to the commandments of God. And therefore the judgments of the ancient Fathers being in this sort only remembered by us, we will not much insist upon them j but give that honour which is due, especially in a matter so apparent, unto the sole authority of holy Apo- stles ; who writing by the direction of the Holy Ghost those 143 things which Christ Himself before had taught them, do give unto all Christians and subjects to what manner of kings soever these precepts following. Rom. 13. ' Let every sonl be subject to the higher powers ; for there L ' c '-* is no power but of God ; for the powers that be are ordained of God. Whosoever therefore resisteth the power, resisteth the ordinance of God ; and they that resist shall receive to themselves judgment. For princes are not to be feared for good works, but for evil. Wilt thou then be without fear ? do well ; so shalt thou have praise of the same ; for he is the minister of God for thy wealth. But if thou do evil, fear; for he beareth not the sword for nought : for he is the minister of God to take vengeance of him that doth evil. Wherefore he must be subject, not because of wrath only, but also for conscience sake. For this cause ye pay also tribute; for they are God's ministers, applying themselves for the same thing.' In which words of the Apostle, in saying that princes have their power from God, and that he is God's minister, there is no repugnancy to that which we have above said concern- ing the great honour and dignity of the humanity of our Saviour Christ after His resurrection and ascension, to prove that kings do hold their kingdoms under Christ, as He is man, the Lamb of God and Heir of all the world. For we were very careful to have it still remembered that all the overall's convocation book. 119 said power and dignity which He hath, as He is man, doth BOOK proceed from His divinity ; and likewise, that by reason of — — the real union of the two natures in our Saviour Christ, that which doth properly belong to the one nature may very truly be affirmed of the other. So as it may in that respect be very well said and truly, that all kings and princes receive their authority from Christ, as He is man ; and likewise, that 144 they receive their authority from Christ, as He is God; and that they are the ministers of Christ being man, and the ministers of God without any limitation. But it is plain that the said words of the Apostle do very thoroughly refute the vanity mentioned of the Canonists and their new com- panions ; in that by the said words it appeareth very mani- festly, that kings do not otherwise hold their kingdoms of the humanity of Christ than they did before of His divine nature. They have their authority, saith the Apostle, from God, and they are God's ministers. And there is nothing [Rom. 13. Written, either by St. Paul or by any other of the Apostles, -■ which swerveth in any point from this doctrine, where they write of the obedience due unto all kings and sovereign princes ; whose testimonies in that behalf we are, as we promised, a little further to pursue. 'I exhort,' saith St. Paul, 'that first of all, supplications, 1 Tim. 2. prayers, intercessions and giving of thanks, be made for all ' c ' men; for kings and for all that are in authority; that we may lead a quiet and a peaceable life, in all godliness and honesty.' And again, ' Put them,' — that is, both old and young, Titus 3. l. and all sorts of persons that are purged to be a peculiar people unto Christ, — 'in remembrance, that they be subject to the principalities and powers, and that they be obedient and ready to every good work.' Also St. Peter saith to the same l Pet. 2. effect, ' Submit yourselves unto all manner of ordinance of ' man for the Lord's sake ; whether it be unto the king, as unto the superior ; or unto governors, as unto them that are sent of Him for the punishment of evil doers and for the praise of them that do well. For so is the will of God, that by well doing ye may put to silence the ignorance of foolish men; as free and not as having the liberty for a cloak of maliciousness, but as the servants of God. Honour all men, 145 love brotherly fellowship, fear God, honour the king.' And 120 overall's convocation book. book the same Apostle, describing the nature of false teachers, — which in times to come would thrust themselves into the 10, &c. Church, and by feigned words make a merchandize of their followers, amongst other impieties, he noteth them with these, that commonly they are despisers of government, pre- sumptuous persons, and such as stand in their own conceits, men that fear not to speak evil of them that are in dignity ; but as brute beasts, led with sensuality and made to be taken and destroyed, speak evil of those things which they Judeis, know not. And with St. Peter in this point the Apostle St. Jude doth concur ; where, speaking of those who in future times should be makers of sects, He termeth them mockers, and men that had not the Spirit of God. And speaking also of such like wicked persons as were crept into the Church in the Apostles' days, he saith, they did despise government and spake evil of them that were in authority. In all which places thus by us noted, concerning as well the dignity and authority of sovereign kings and princes, as the fear, duty and obedience which all their subjects were truly and sincerely, without murmuring or repining, to yield and perform unto them, though they were then ethnics ; when we consider the manner of their delivery of that evangelical doctrine and their grounds thereof, as also how vehemently they have written against all such persons as either did then, or should afterward, oppose themselves unto it by despising of civil magistrates, speaking evil of them, or in any other sort whatsoever) we are fully persuaded that they neither commanded, taught, or writ any thing therein but what they knew to be the will of God, and did accordingly believe to be true. For we hold it resolutely, that whatsoever the Apostles did either write, teach, or command, they writ, taught, and commanded it as they were inspired and directed 2 Tim. 3. by the Holy Ghost ; because when our Saviour Christ was to 1 i« 2 p' etl2] leave the world, He promised to send unto them the Holy Joh. 13 Ghost, the Comforter and Spirit of truth; which should V 16. 7, lead them, not into any by-ways or shifting conceits, but into the direct and plain paths of all truth : and did very shortly after perform that His promise, when upon the day of Pentecost they were all filled with the Holy Ghost, as Acts 2. 4. St. Luke witnesseth, Besides, the Apostle St. Paul himself OVERALl/s CONVOCATION BOOK. 121 doth profess, both in his own name and in the behalf of the BOOK rest of the Apostles, his fellows, that their Master, being the : — Truth itself, after He had so mercifully and liberally per- formed His said promise unto them, they did not deal with the Word of God as vintners, regraters, or merchants do with their mixed wines and adulterated wares ; that is, mingle z it with any untruths or superstitious conceits, or vent it out otherwise than the truth did therein warrant them, or did apply it with fraud either to serve their own or any other men's designments, or delivered it with any such inward reservations and mental evasions, as when they did most seem to their hearers to speak one thing directly, they had such another meaning as when time should serve they might make use of; but whatsoever they said, they spake it sin- cerely, sicut ex Deo, as God did guide them by the Holy 2 Cor. 2. Ghost, coram Deo, as in the sight of God, unto Whom they were one day to give an account of their said sincerity ; et in Christo, as their blessed Saviour Himself had preached, taught them, and had commanded them. 147 CANON IV. therefore it ang man shall affirm, untrer colour of ang thfng that fs fit the Scriptures, either that the Beitg of our Sbabfour ©hrfst&oth not sfncef^is resurrection anir ascension otherwise execute the majestg anir glorg thereof in |^is humanitg than ft &tft before f^is passion ; or, that CChrfst note fn glorg is not actually the heir of all things, as f^e is man so highlg exalteir, anU both Itfng of fttngs anb Horb of lore's ; or, that f^e, nofo sitting at the right hanfc of ffioo" fn glorg anU majestg, as |^e is man, hath ma&e an alteration fn the manner of temporal government orimfneii eg f^fmself long before, as ffit is ffiolr ; or, that nofo all the fcfng&oms fn the foorfo befng but one ftingtrom in respect of himself, He troth not allow the Distributing of that f^is one universal fetng&om into Uibers principalities anil feingtfoms, to be rulelr bg so mang Icings antr absolute prfnees untrer f^im ; or, that * [/tcor?)A.etWTes. See Wolfii Curae Philolog.] 122 overall's convocation book. book sucb Icings anb sobereign governors as foere etbnics, foere — - bepribeb bg ©bust's ascension into beaben anb most glorious estate tfiere from tfie true interest anb lawful possession of tbeir feingboms fobicb before tbeg enjogeb ; or, tbat tbe ancient us jpatbers foere beceibeb in bolbing anb maintaining tbat all Christians in tfte primttibe ©burcfo foere bounb to obeg sucb feings anb princes as foere tben pagans ; or, tbat tfje subjects of all tbe temporal princes in tbe foorlb foere not as mucfo bounb in Set. Raul's time to be subject unto tbem, as tbe Romans foere to be subject to tbe empire, not onlg for fear, but eben for conscience safee ; or, tbat Sot. Raul's command- ment, bg birtue of bis apostlesbip anb assistance of tbe l^olg ffibost, of obebience to princes, tben etbnics, is not of as great force to binb tbe conscience of all true GMmstians as if be ba& been tben Summus Pontifex ; or, tbat ang pope nofo barb pofoer to dispense foitb tbe safb boctrine of Set. Paul, as tbe saib (Canonist, bg us quoteb, botb seem to affirm ; fobere after be batb saib tbat tbe Apostle get. Paul, commanbing all men to be obebient to superior pofoers, foas not tbe bigbest bisbop, be abbetb tbese foorbS, papa major est administratione Paulo, et papa dispensat contra Apostolum in his qua non con- cemunt articulos fidei ; — tbe pope is greater in autboritg tban ^aul, tbe pope botb bispense against tbe Slpostle in tfjose tbtngs tbat bo not roncern tbe articles of faitb ; [or,] tbat tbe 149 primitibe ©burcb foas not as foell restraineb de jure, bg tbe boctrine of ©brist's Apostles, as de facto, from bearing arms against sucb princes as foere tben etbnics, anb transferring of tbeir feingboms from tbem unto ang otbers ; or, tbat Set. peter bimself, fobo a our abbersaries fooulb mafee tbe foorlb beliebe, foas tben tbe bigbest bisbop,— concurring foitb tbe Apostle Set. Paul foben be commanbeb tbe Christians in tbose bags to submit tbemselbes unto tbe feing, as unto tbe superior, tbeg botb of tbem, foe are assureb, commanbing tberein as tbeg foere inspireb bg tbe f^olg ffibost, tills leabe tbis boctrine so jointlg taugbt, to be bispenseb foitb afterfoarbs bg ang pope, bis bicar, leb bg fobat spirit is easg to be bis-- « ' Whom.' A. overall's convocation book. 123 cemeb, being so far bifferent from tbe ?^olg e&bost, fofittft book spake, as is afotesaib, bg tbe sattr Apostles ; or, tbat it is not — — — a most wicfeeb anb detestable assertion for ang man to affirm, tljat tfie apostles, in commanbing sucb obebience to tbe etbnic princes tfien, JjOj not trulg mean as tbeir plain worbs bo import, but ftalj some mental reserbations, wberebg tfte same mtgbt be altered as occasion sfioultr serbe; or, tfiat tbe Apostles at tbat time, if tbeg bab founb tbe ©bristians of iso sufficient force, botb for number, probision anb furniture of foarlifee engines, to babe treposeU tbose pagan princes tbat were tfien botb enemies anb persecutors of all tbat beliebeb in Cbrist; woulb, no boubt, babe mobeb anb autbori?eK tbem to babe mabe War against sucb tbeir princes, anb absolbetr tbcm from performing ang longer tbat obebience iofiicft tbeg, as men temporising, ftaU in tbeir writings prescribed unto tbem ; or, tbat foben afterwarb Christians were grown able for number anil strengtb to babe opposed tbemselbes bg force against tbeir emperors, wicfeeb b anb persecutors, tbeg m t8&t lawfullg so babe bone, for ang tfimg tbat is in tfte Nefo Testament to tfie con= trarg ; or, tbat tfeese anb sucb Itfee expositions of tfie meaning of tbe bolg apostles, wben tbeg writ so plainlg anb birectlg, are not berg impious anb blaspbemous, as tenbing not onlg to tbe utter btscrebit of tbcm anb tbeir writings, but likewise to tbe inbelible stain anb bisbonour of tbe wbole Scriptures, in tbat tbeg were Written bg no otber persons of ang greater autboritg tban were tbe Apostles, nor bg tbe inspiration anb birection of ang otber Spirit, be botb greatlg err. b ' Being wicked.' D. 124 overall's convocation book. BOOK II. CHAP. VI. THE SUM OP THE CHAPTER FOLLOWING. That our Saviour Christ, after His resurrection and ascension did not in effect alter the form of ecclesiastical government amongst the Jews; the essential parts of the priesthood under the law {otherwise than as the said priesthood was typical and had the execution ofLevitical ceremonies annexed unto it), being instituted and appointed by God to continue, not for a time, but until the end of the world. We have deduced, in our former book, the joint descent of the state, as well ecclesiastical as temporal, from the begin- ning of the world unto the incarnation of our Saviour Christ. Since Whose birth, seeing we have found no alteration in the temporal government of the world, either whilst Christ lived here upon the earth, or during the time of His Apostles, assuredly we shall not find that the alteration which upon Christ's death fell ont in the Church, was so great as some have imagined. For as our Saviour Christ, according to His divine nature having created all the world, was the sole monarch of it, and did govern the same visibly by kings and sovereign princes, His vicegerents upon earth ; so He in the same divine nature being the Son of God, and foreseeing the fall of man, and how thereby all His posterity should become the children of wrath, did of His. infinite mercy undertake to be their Redeemer ; and presently after the transgression of Adam and Eve, put that His office in practice ; whereby as [Rev. 13. He was Agnus occisus ab origine mundi, He not only began the erection of that one Church, selected people, and society i 52 of believers, which ever since hath been, and so shall con- [Rev. 21. tinue His blessed Spouse for ever; but also took upon Him thenceforward and for ever to be the sole monarch and head of it, ruling and governing the same visibly by such priests and ministers under Him, as in His heavenly wisdom He thought fit to appoint, and as we have more at large expressed in our said former book ; especially when He settled amongst the Jews a more exact and eminent form of ecclesiastical overall's convocation book. 125 government than before that time He had done. In the book which His so exact a form, He first did separate the civil — — '- — - government from the ecclesiastical, as they were both jointly exercised by one person, restraining the priesthood, for a time, unto the tribe of Levi, and the civil government unto temporal princes, and shortly after, more particularly unto the tribe of Juda. Concerning the priesthood thus limited we need to say little ; because the order and subordination of it is so plainly set down in the Scriptures. Aaron and his sons after him, by succession, had the first place, and were appointed to exercise the office of the High-Priests; and under their sovereign princes and temporal governors (as we have shewed in our said first book, chap. xviii c .) did bear the chief sway in matters appertaining to God. Next unto Aaron there were twenty-four priests of an inferior degree, that were termed principes sacerdotum, that governed the third sort of priests, allotted unto their several charges ; and this third sort also had the rest of the Levites at their direc- tion. In like manner, these Levites neither wanted their chief rulers to order them, according as the said third sort of priests did command, which rulers were termed principes Levitarum, in number twenty-four, nor their assistants, the Gabionites, otherwise called Nathinaei, to help them in the execution of their baser offices. Of this notable form of ecclesiastical government, it may be truly said of it in our 153 judgments, that the same being of God's Own framing, it is to be esteemed the best and most perfect form of Church- government that ever was, or can be devised ; and that form also is best to be approved and upheld which doth most re- semble it and cometh nearest unto it. We said upon a fit occasion d , that by the death of our Saviour Christ the Church-government then amongst the Jews was greatly altered; and therefore do think it very convenient in this place more fully therein to set down our meaning. It is very true that before the death of Christ the outward service of God did much consist in figures, shadows, and sacrifices ; the Levitical priesthood itself, as it was tied e to Aaron and his stock, and in some other respects, being c [p. 26.] ' [The word 'tied' is omitted in Z».] d Lib. ii. cap. 4. [p. 102.] 126 overall's convocation book. BOOK only a type of our High-Priest, Jesus Christ. But after- '■ — wards, when by His passion upon the cross He had fulfilled all that was signified by the said figures, shadows, and sacri- fices; and had likewise not only abolished them, but freed the tribe of Levi of the charge of the priesthood, and removed the high-priesthood (as it was typical), from the said priestly tribe unto the regal tribe of Juda, the same being now settled in Himself, our only High-Priest, according to the order, not Heb.7.12. of Aaron, but of Melchizedech ; He hath by that His trans- 15.1 10. lation of the priesthood, freed His Church from the cere- monial law, which contained in it little but patterns, shadows, and figures of that one sacrifice offered by Him upon the Heb.9. 14. cross, which doth sanctify all the faithful, and purge their consciences from dead works to serve the living God. Never- theless in this so great an alteration, although all the said figures, shadows, sacrifices, and whatsoever else was typical in the true worship of God and priesthood of Aaron, were truly fulfilled and had their several accomplishments accord- ing to the natures of them, yet we are further to understand, that as from the beginning there was a Church, so there was ever a ministry: the essential parts of whose office, howsoever 154 otherwise it was burdened with ceremonies, did consist in these three duties; viz. (1.) preaching of the Word; (2.) administration of Sacraments ; (3.) authority of ecclesiastical government ; and that none of all the said figures, shadows, and sacrifices, or any other ceremony of the Levitical law, had any such relation to any of the said three essential parts of the ministry, as if either they, the said three essential parts of the ministry, had only been ordained for their continuance until the coming of Christ, or that the accom- plishment and fulfilling of the said ceremonies had in any sort prejudiced or impeached the continuance of them, or any of them. So as the said three essential parts of the ministry were in no sort abolished by the death of Christ, but only translated from the priesthood under the law to the ministry of the New Testament ; where, in the judgment of all learned men, opposite in divers points one to another, they do or ought for ever to remain, to the same end and purpose for the which they were first ordained. Now concerning the two first essential parts of this our overall's convocation book. 127 ministry or priesthood of the New Testament, there are no BOOK difficulties worthy the insisting upon, how they are to be — — — used. Only the third essential part of it, as touching the power of ecclesiastical regiment, is very much controverted, and diversely expounded, extended, and applied. For some men, relying upon one extremity, do affirm, that it was in the Apostles' time radically inherent only in St. Peter ; and so, by a certain consequence, afterwards in his supposed vicar the bishop of Rome, to be derived from St. Peter first to the rest of the Apostles and other ministers, whilst he lived, and then after his death, in a fit proportion to all bishops, pastors, and ministers to the end of the world, from the bishops of Rome : and that St. Peter during his time, and 155 every one of his vicars, the bishops of Rome successively, then did, and still do occupy and enjoy the like power and authority over all the Churches in the world, that Aaron had in the Church established amongst the Jews. There are also another sort of persons that run as far to another ex- tremity, and do challenge the said power and authority of ecclesiastical regiment to appertain to a new form of Church- government by presbyteries to be placed in every particular parish) which presbyteries, as divers of them say, are so many complete and perfect Churches, no one of them having any dependency upon any other Church ; so as the pastor in every such presbytery, representing after a sort Aaron the High-Priest, there would be by this project, if it were admitted f , as many Aarons in every Christian kingdom as there are particular parishes. And the authors of both these so different and extreme conceits, are all of them most resolute and peremptory that they are able to deduce and prove them out of the form of Church-government which was established by God Himself in the Old Testament. Howbeit, notwith- standing all their vaunts and shows of learning, by pervert- ing the Scriptures, councils, and ancient Fathers, the mean betwixt both the said extremes is the truth, and to be em- braced j viz. that the administration of the said power of ecclesiastical regiment under Christian kings and supreme magistrates doth especially belong, by the institution of 1 The words, ' if it were admitted,' original scribe, are added between the lines, but by the 128 overall's convocation book. BOOK Christ and His Apostles, unto archbishops and bishops ; — this mean bearing the true portraiture and infallible linea- ments of God's own . ordinance above-mentioned, and con- taining in it divers degrees of priests, agreeable to the very order and light of nature ; some superior to rule, and some inferior to be ruled, as in all other societies and civil states it hath ever been accustomed. So as we are bold to say, and are able to justify it, that as our Saviour Christ, as He is God, had formerly ordained in His national Church amongst 156 the Jews, priests and Levites of an inferior order to teach them in every city and synagogue, and over them priests of a superior degree, termed principes sacerdotum, and lastly, above them all, one Aaron with Moses, to rule and direct them ; so He no ways purposing by His passion more to ab- rogate or prejudice this form of Church-government ordained by Himself, than He did thereby the temporal government of kings and sovereign princes, did, by the direction of the Holy Ghost and ministry of His Apostles, ordain in the New Testament that there should be in every national Church, some ministers of an inferior degree to instruct His people in every particular parochial church or congregation ; and over them bishops of a superior degree, to have a care and inspec- tion over many such parochial churches or congregations, for the better ordering as well of the ministers as of the people within the limits of their jurisdiction ; and lastly, above them all, archbishops, and in some especial places patriarchs, who were first themselves, with the advice of some other bishops, and when kings and sovereign princes became Christians, then with their especial aid and assistance, to oversee and direct, for the better peace and government of every such national Churches, all the bishops and the rest of the parti- cular Churches therein established. And for some proof hereof we will conclude this chapter with the testimony of one of no mean account and desert ; who, when archbishops andbishopsdidmostobstinately oppose themselves, as being the pope's vassals, to the reformation of the Church, was the principal deviser of the said presbyteries, though not in such a manner as some have since with too much bitterness urged, whereof, out of all question, he would never have dreamed if the said bishops had not been so overall's convocation book. 129 obstinate, as they were, for the maintenance of such idolatry BOOK 157 and superstition as were no longer to be tolerated. These : — are his words ; that every province had amongst their bishops one archbishop ; that also in the Nicene Council, patriarchs were appointed, who were in order and degree above arch- bishops ; that did appertain to the preservation of discipline. And a little after, speaking of the said form of government so framed, although he shewed some dislike of the word ' hier- archia,' yet saith he, Si, omisso vocabulo, rem intueamur, repe- riemus veteres episcopos non aliam regendce Ecclesia formam voluisse fingere, ab ed, quam Dominus verbo Suo prascripsit e . CANON V. &n& therefore if ang man shall affirm, untfer colour of ang thing that is in the Scriptures, cither that our £>abiour ©hrist was not the heaU of the ©hutch from the beginning of it ; or, that all the particular churches in the foorlif are otherfoise to he termeU one ©hurch, than as f^e himself is the heatf of it, mitt as all the particular fcing&oms in the foorltr are calletf hut one feing&om, as f^e is the onlg fcing anlJ monarch of it ; or, [Rev. n. that our Sabiour ©hrist hath not appointed unKer ^im 15il210] seberal ecclesiastical gobernors to rule an& direct the safe par* ticular churches, as ff^e hath appointed seberal fcings anU soberetgn princes to rule anir gobern their seberal feingtroms ; 158 or, that fag ?^ts Heath f^e oft not abolish the ceremonial Iain antt the Hebitical priesthood, so far forth as it foas tgpical anb haU the execution of the saflj ceremonial lafo annexed unto it ; or, that |^e tiffl ang more abrogate bg |^is Ueath, passion, resurrection anK ascension, the pofoer antf autboritg of church* gobemment, than either f^e UtU the other ttoo essential parts of the sai& priesthood or ministrg, or the potoer antf authorftg of flings anlJ soberetgn princes ; or, that |^e trfo more appoint ang one chief bishop to rule all the particular churches fohicfi shoulir he planteU throughout all fcing&oms, than |^e m appoint ang one fetng to rule anti gobern all the particular kingdoms in the foorlti ; or, that it foas more reasonable or B Calvin. Instit, lib. iv. cap. i. § 4. [See note M.] 130 overall's convocation book. b oo k necessarg, as bereafter ft s&all be further %fytotU, to babe one ichap.li.] h'sbop to gobem all tbe c&urrfjes tn tbe toorUr, tban it bias to babe one feing to gobem all t&e feingtroms tn tfje foorlcf ; or, tjjat (t is more necessarg or conbenient to babe eberg parts!) foitij tfmr presbnteries, absolute cburrfjes, in&epentttnt upon ang but ©ftrtst f^imself, tfian tfiat eberg surf) partsb sfiouto be an absolute temporal feingfcom, in&epenJjent of ang eartblg Itmg or sobereign magistrate ; or, tbat tfie gobemment of eberg natfonal ©fiurrfj un&er ©brtsttan flings anU sobereip princes, 159 bg arebbisbops an& bisbops, is not more suitable antf corre- spon&ent to tbe gobemment of tbe national ©burtb of tfie 3Jefos, unirer tbeir soberetp princes antf flings, tban is ettber tfje gobemment of one ober all tbe eburcbes in tbe foorltr, or tbe settling of tbe form of tbat national cburrfj-gobeminent in eberg particular rfjurrf), be fcotb greatlg err. CHAPTER VII. i6o THE SUM OF THE CHAPTER FOLLOWING. That the form of church-government, which was ordained by Christ in the New Testament, did consist upon divers degrees of ministers, one over another ; Apostles in pre-eminence and authority superior to the evangelists; and the evangelists superior to pastors and doctors ; and that the Apostles, know- ing themselves to be mortal, did, in their own days, by direction of the Holy Ghost, as the numbers of Christians grew, establish the said form of government in other per- sons, appointing several ministers in sundry cities, and over them bishops; as also over such bishops certain worthy persons, such as Titus was, who were afterwards termed arch- bishops ; to whom they did commit so much of their aposto- lical authority as they held then necessary, and was to be continued for the government of the Church. We had in our former book the Scriptures at large, con- taining the histories and doctrine both of the law and the Gospel, after the manner that was then prescribed, from the time of the creation until the days of the prophet Malachi ; overall's convocation book. 131 that is, for above three thousand five hundred years ; where- book upon we did ground the particular points by us therein — - 1 -- — handled, concerning the government as well ecclesiastical as temporal. And for the supply of the other years following till the incarnation of our Saviour Christ, we observed some things to the same purpose out of the apocryphal books, second to the Scriptures, and to be preferred before all other writers of those times. But now, forasmuch as the New 161 Testament is but, in effect, a more ample declaration of the Old ; shewing withal how the same was most throughly fulfilled by our Saviour Christ, without the impeachment of any kind of government by Himself ordained, as before we have expressed, and because the books of the Evangelists and Apostles do only contain the acts and doctrine of our Saviour Christ and His Apostles, with the form and use both of the temporal and ecclesiastical government, during the time whilst they lived here upon the earth ; — St. John, who lived the longest of them all, dying about sixty-six years after Christ's passion ; although the Holy Ghost did judge the said books and writings sufficient for the Church and all that profess Christianity, to teach and direct them in those things which should appertain either to their temporal or ecclesiastical government, or should be necessary unto their salvation ; yet for the said reasons we were induced for the upholding of the temporal and ecclesiastical government in the New Testament, to insist so much as we have done upon the precedents and platforms of both those kinds of govern- ments established in the Old Testament ; albeit we want no sufficient testimonies in the New to ratify and confirm as well the one as the other. First, therefore, we do verily think, that if our Saviour Christ or His Apostles had meant to have erected in the churches amongst the Gentiles any other form of ecclesi- astical government than God Himself had set up amongst the Jews, they would have done it assuredly in very solemn manner, that all the world might have taken public notice of it; considering with what majesty and authority the said form was erected at God's commandment by His servant Moses. But in that they well knew how the form of the old ecclesiastical government, in substance, was still to con- is^ 132 BOOK tinue and to be in time established in every national kingdom '■ — and sovereign principality amongst Christians, as soon as they should become for number sufficient bodies and ample churches to receive the same ; as before the like opportunity 162 it was not established amongst the Israelites; they did in the meanwhile, and as the time did serve them, attempt the erecting of it in such sort and by such fit and convenient degrees, as by direction of the Holy Ghost they held it most expedient, without intermission, till [such time h ] as the work was, in effect, accomplished. It hath been before touched how our Saviour Christ here upon earth did not only choose to Himself, for the business He had in hand, twelve Apostles, who were then designed in time to come to be the patriarchs and chief fathers of all Christians, with some resemblance, as it hath ever been held, of the twelve sons of Jacob, who had been in their days the patriarchs and chief fathers of all the Israelites ; but likewise He took unto Him, over and besides His said Apostles, seventy, or as some read seventy-two disciples ', to be in the same manner His assistants, in imitation of Moses when he chose [Exod. 24. seventy elders to be helpers unto him for the better govern- *• 9 -J ment of the people committed to his charge. None of these, either Apostles or disciples, had then any other duties com- mitted unto them but only of preaching and baptizing ; for the power of ecclesiastical regiment they might not then intermeddle with, because it did appertain to the priests and courts of the Jews. But afterwards that want and some other defects in them were throughly supplied, when our Saviour Christ upon His resurrection and a little before His ascension, enlarging their commission, did commit unto His [Joh. 20. Apostles the administration of the keys of the kingdom of 23- ] heaven; and shortly after furnished not only them but the said disciples also, according to their several functions, most abundantly with all such gifts and heavenly graces as were necessary for them in those great affairs which were imposed upon them. Whereby we find already two complete degrees of ecclesiastical ministers, ordained by Christ Himself imme- 16S diately, viz. His twelve Apostles and His seventy disciples; h [The words *sucli time,' being D.l wanting in tli« MS. are supplied from ' [See note N.] overall's convocation book. 133 the one in dignity and authority above the other, the disciples BOOK in that respect being termed secondary Apostles, and were — — — the same, as it is most probably held, who were afterwards called evangelists. We will not intermeddle with the pro- [Acts 21. phets in those times, of whom the Scriptures make mention ; ' J 3 "-' t . [i Cor. 1*. because divers of them were no ministers of the "Word and 37.] Sacraments, of whom only we have here taken upon us to intreat ; leaving in like manner the said seventy disciples, or evangelists, as before they had been assistants to Christ, so now to be directed by His Apostles. Touching whose blessed calling it is to be observed, that the end of it was not that they should only for their own times, by preaching the Word, administering the Sacraments, and likewise by their authority of ecclesiastical regiment, draw many to the embracing of the Gospel, and afterwards to rule and order them as that they might not be easily drawn again from it ; but were in like sort to provide for a succession in their ministry, of fit persons sufficiently authorized by them, to undertake that charge, and as well to yield some further assistance unto them whilst they themselves lived, as afterwards ; also, both to continue the same in their own persons unto their lives 3 end; and in like manner to ordain, by the authority of the Apostles given unto them, other ministers to succeed them- selves ; that so the said apostolical authority, being derived in that sort from one to another, there might never be any want of pastors and teachers, ' for the work of the ministry, and for the edification of the Body of Christ/ unto the end of the world. This then being the duty of the said Apostles, and that it may be evident what it was which they did communicate unto the ministry, it is to be observed that some things in the Apostles were essential and perpetual, and were the sub- 164 stance of their ministry, containing the three essential parts before mentioned, of preaching, administering the Sacra- ments, and of ecclesiastical government ; and that some were but personal and temporary, granted unto them for the better strengthening andapproving of their saidministry, with all the parts of it; there being then many difficulties and impediments which did many ways hinder the first preaching and plantation of the Gospel. In the number of their said 134 overall's convocation book. book personal or temporary gifts or prerogatives, these may be — — — accounted the chief, viz. (1.) that they were called imme- diately by Christ Himself, to lay the foundation of Christian faith amongst the gentiles ; (2.) that their commission for that purpose was not limited to any place or country ; (3.) that they had power, through imposition of their hands, to give the Holy Ghost by visible signs ; (4.) that they were directed in the performance of their office by the especial inspiration of the Holy Ghost ; and lastly, that their doctrine, which they delivered in writing, was to be a canon and rule to all churches for ever. All which personal prerogatives, although they did appertain 11 and were then adherent to the essence of the apostolic function, and were necessary at the first for the establishing of the Gospel, yet it is plain that they did not contain in them any of the said essential parts of the ministry, and likewise that they could not be communicated by the Apostles unto any others ; so as either the Apostles, for the propagation and continuance of the ecclesiastical ministry, did communicate to others the said three essential parts of it, viz. power to preach, to administer the Sacraments, and authority of government, (wherein must be degrees, some to direct and some to be directed,) or else they died all with them, which were a very wicked and an idle conceit ; the Apostles having power to communicate them all alike, as by their proceedings it will appear. At the first, they them- selves with the evangelists and so many of the prophets as 1G5 were ministers of the Word and Sacraments, after they had converted many to the faith, did execute in their own per- sons, agreeably to their several callings, all those ecclesiasti- cal functions as were afterwards of necessity and in due time to be distinguished and settled in some others. Whereby it came to pass that the Church in Jerusalem during that time had no other deacons, priests, nor bishops, but the Apostles, the evangelists, and the said prophets. But afterwards the harvest growing great, as to disburden themselves of some charge they ordained deacons, so their own company, Apostles, disciples, or evangelists and prophets, coming short of that number of labourers which the said harvest required, they did for their further aid choose unto themselves, by the k ' Then appertain.' D. overall's convocation book. 135 inspiration of the Holy Ghost, certain other new disciples book and scholars, such as they found meet for that work, and : — • after some good experience had of them, made them hy the imposition of their hands, priests and ministers of the Gospel; 2 Tim. l. but did not for a time tie them to any particular places, as having designed them to be their followers ', labourers, and coadjutors. These men, the Apostles had commonly in their company, and did not only employ their pains and diligent preaching for the speedier propagation of the Gospel, which was their first and most principal care, but likewise did use to send them hither and thither, their occasions so requiring, to the churches already planted, as their messengers and legates, sufficiently authorized for the despatching of such affairs as were committed unto them. Of this number were Timothy, Rom. 16. Titus, Marcus, Epaphroditus, Sylvanus, Andronicus, and 2L divers others ; who in respect of such their apostolical 23. employments, and because also the Apostles did oftentimes Phil. 2. 25. commend them greatly and joined their names with their 2^ llem ' 1- own in the beginnings of sundry their epistles to divers [2 Tim. 4. 166 churches, were men of great authority and reputation 11- J amongst all Christians in those days, and had the name itself 19.] of Apostles given unto them, as formerly it hath been ob- [Rom. 16. served of the seventy disciples. And these were the persons r ' J c who were afterwards, when they were tied to the oversight of 1 ; Phil. 1. divers particular churches or congregations, termed bishops, j ; x &°j' as it will afterwards appear. Now because these apostolical Rom. 16. persons were still to attend upon the Apostles and their 8 ' 23 ■ " designments, as is above mentioned, and for that the number Phil. 2. 25. \ of Christians every where did still increase, the Apostles held it necessary to ordain, by imposition of their hands, a second degree of ministers, who were thereupon still to remain in the particular churches or congregations that were already planted in divers cities, for in those populous places churches were first settled, whilst the Apostles, evangelists and pro- phets, that were ministers, with their coadjutors, were travelling from place to place as the Holy Ghost did direct them, to plant and order other churches in other cities else- where, as God should bless their labours, 1 ' Fellow-labourers.' D. 136 OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. book The office of this second degree of ministers was by '- — preaching and administering the Sacraments, to confirm and increase, to their uttermost ability, the number of Christians™ in those cities where they kept their residence ; and likewise in the absence of the Apostles, by their common and joint counsel to advise and direct every particular congregation and member of it, as well as they could, when any difficulties did occur. Besides, it appertained unto them by preaching of the Gospel and of the law, and upon conference with such as were penitent, to bind and loose men's sins, and to keep back from receiving the Holy Communion such as were notorious and obstinate offenders, until either willingly by their persuasion, or afterwards by the Apostles' further chastisements, they were brought to repentance. Only they Acts 14. wanted power and authority of ordination to make minis- 167 i, 6. ' ters, and of the apostolical keys to excommunicate. For the 2 Thess. 3. Apostles had reserved in their own hands those two pre- li; 1 Cor. r . x 4. 21 ; rogatives, and were themselves, during those first times, now 2 l Cor s P°ken of by us, not so far from the said cities, churches, 6. [5.] 3.5. and ministers, but that they well might, and did, throughly supply all their wants whatsoever, and also set an order in all matters of difficulty, when they fell out amongst them, con- cerning either doctrine or discipline, sometimes themselves in their own persons, and sometimes by their letters, or messengers, as the importance of those causes did require. In these times it may well be granted that there was no need of any other bishops but the Apostles, and likewise that then their churches or particular congregations in every city were advised and directed touching points of religion in manner and form aforesaid by the common and joint advice of their priests or ministers. In which respect, the same persons, who then were named priests or ministers, were also in a general sense called bishops. Howbeit this course dured not long, either concerning their said common direction, or their names of bishops so attributed unto them, but was shortly after ordered far otherwise by a common decree of the Apostles, to be observed in all such cities where particular churches were planted, or, as one speaketh, in toto orbe n , » The MS. here faultily reads, "in " Jerom. in Ep. ad Tit. cap. i. [See number of Christians.' note O.] overall's convocation book. 137 :t throughout the world/ For the number of Christians BOOK ■ TT growing daily in every city throughout those provinces and — -— — countries where the Apostles, evangelists, prophets, with their coadjutors, first travelled to plant the Christian faith, it was still more and more necessary that they should be distin- guished into more congregations than they were before, and that also the number of their said ministers that were to be resident amongst them should be accordingly increased. By reason of which increase, as well of Christians and particular 168 congregations, as of their said ministers, as also for that now it began to come to pass that neither the Apostles, nor the Rom. 16. evangelists, nor their coadjutors and messengers, could be J 7 ^ 2 g°£ always so ready and at hand or present with them as before Gal. l. 6 ; they had been, many questions, dissensions and quarrels fell 3 ] 2] '8, [»] out amongst them, both ministers and particular congrega- Co !- 2 - 4 > tions mentioned, as by the places quoted in the margent it is i'Thess.4. evident; the people being as apt, through affection and pri- ^jhLs 2 vate respects, to adhere to one man more than to another, 2, 3 ; Acts 20 29 30 ■ as sundry of their ministers then were prompt for their own 2 p et .' 2 . ' glory to entertain all comers, and to embrace every occasion *> &c - s ° J J Uoh.2.18; that might procure them many followers ; not sparing to *. i. oppose themselves in their pride against the very Apostles, and to charge them with ambitious seeking of pre-eminence 2 Cor. l. above their brethren ministers; as if they had meant toj^jjo - ^ tyrannize and domineer over all churches. Insomuch as 18 ill. 6, 23 ■ 12.11. St. John complained in his time of such insolencies ; and 3 j Q ^ 9, ' St. Paul was driven to purge himself, but yet in such sort as he stood upon the justification of his apostolical authority: I grant, saith he, that they are ministers of Christ, but withal he addeth these words, ' I am more ;' protesting, that although [2 Cor. 11. he was more than they were, yet he sought to have no '-* dominion over the faith of any. The places quoted in the [2 Cor. 1. margent deserve due consideration, and many other to the '■' same purpose might be added unto them. Now forasmuch as the Apostles did well understand of the said oppositions, dissensions, and emulations, and that the people had as well experience what equality wrought amongst their ministers in every place, whilst each man would be a director as he list himself, and accordingly broach his own fancies without controlment or sparing of any that stood in 138 overall's convocation book. book his way ; as also how themselves, the people, were distracted and led to the embracing of divers sects and schisms ; they, the said Apostles, having now no such leisure and oppor- 169 tunity as that they could themselves every where appease these quarrels, did find it necessary to settle another course for the redress of them by others. For whereas before, the Apostles held it convenient, when they first placed ministers in every city, to detain still in their own hands the power of ordination and the authority of the keys of ecclesiastical government, because they themselves, for that time, with the evangelists and others their coadjutors, were sufficient to oversee and rule them ; now for the reasons above mentioned they did commit those their said two prerogatives, containing in them all episcopal power and authority, unto such of their said coadjutors as upon sufficient trial of their abilities and diligence they knew to be meet men ; both whilst they them- selves lived, to be their substitutes, and after their deaths to be their successors, both for the continuance of the work of Christ, for the further building of His Church, and likewise for the perpetual government of it. And in this manner, the ministers of the Word and Sacraments, who had the charge but of one particular church or congregation, and were of an inferior degree, were distinguished from the first and superior sort of ministers, termed, most of them, before, 'the Apostles' coadjutors,' and now and from thenceforth called Bishops. Unto which sort of worthy and selected coadjutors, and unto some others also of especial desert so advanced to the titles and offices of bishops, the Apostles did commit the charge and oversight of all the particular con- gregations, ministers and Christian people that dwelt in one city and in the towns and villages thereunto appertaining. Rev.]. 11; And such were the angels of the seven churches in Asia, 12 &'c.i wno were then the bishops of those cities, with their several territories ; and so in all times and ages that since have succeeded have ever been reputed. And unto some others, the most principal and chief men of the said number, the Apostles did likewise give authority, not only over the parti- 170 cular congregations, ministers and people in one city, and in the towns that did belong unto it, but likewise over all the ' Planted.' D. overall's convocation book. 139 churches in certain whole provinces or countries, as unto BOOK Timothy all that were in Asia the Less, and unto Titus all — — — 1 Tim ^ ^i that were planted throughout the island of Crete. And this Tit j 5 sort of bishops, who had so large jurisdictions over the bishops themselves in particular cities, were afterwards called arch- bishops ; over whom, in like manner, as likewise over all the rest, bishops and ministers, and particular churches, the Apostles themselves, as the chief fathers and patriarchs of all churches, had, whilst they lived, the chief pre-eminence and oversight to direct and overrule all, as they knew it to be most convenient and behoveful for the Church ; communicat- ing notwithstanding unto the said bishops and archbishops, now their substitutes, but in time to be their successors, as full authority in their absence, with the limitations mentioned for the ordering of ministers, for the use of the keys, and for the further government of all the churches committed to their charges, by the good advice and counsel of the inferior sort of priests or ministers under them, when causes so required, as if they, the Apostles themselves, had been pre- sent or could have always lived to have performed those duties in their own persons ; their patriarchal authority for government not ceasing or dying with them. Of this authority of ordination and government given to bishops by the holy Apostle St. Paul, he himself hath left to all posterity most clear and evident testimonies ; where writing to two of his said bishops, Timothy and Titus, he describeth very par- ticularly the essential parts of their duties and episcopal office, in manner and sort following. ' For this cause I left thee at Crete, that thou shouldst Tit. 1. 5. continue to redress the things that remain, and shouldst 171 ordain priests (or elders) in every city, as I appointed thee/ f Lay hands hastily on no man, neither be partaker of other l Tim. 5. men's sins.' ' Let them first be proved, then let them 5 | 9 ' minister, if they be found blameless.' 'Against a presbyter (or priest) receive no accusation, but under two or three witnesses. Them that sin rebuke openly, that the rest may fear.' ' I pray thee to abide at Ephesus, to command some l Tim. l. that they teach no strange doctrine, neither that they give 3 ' *' 7- heed to fables and genealogies which are endless, and do breed questions, rather than godly edification which is by 140 book faith. They would be doctors of the law ; and yet under- : — stand not what they speak, neither whereof they affirm/ Tit. 1. 10, 'There are many disobedient and vain talkers and deceivers of minds ; whose mouths must be stopped, which subvert whole houses, teaching things which they ought not, for Tit. 3. 9 ; filthy lucre's sake.' ' Stay foolish questions and contentions ; !5 ' ' reject him that is an heretic after one or two warnings/ ' These things speak, and exhort, and rebuke with all autho- rity; see that no man despise thee.' 'What things thou hast heard of me, the same deliver to faithful men, which 2 Tim. 2. shall be able to teach others also.' ' Put them in remem- li^V Drance ) an< i protest before the Lord, that they strive not 23. about words, which is to no profit, but to the perverting of the hearers.' ' Stay profane and vain babblings : for they shall increase unto more ungodliness.' ' Put away all foolish and unlearned questions ; knowing that they engender strife.' iTim.5.21. ' I charge thee before God, and the Lord Jesus Christ, and the elect Angels, that thou observe these things, without pre- ferring one to another ; and do nothing partially.' Divers other particulars might be hereunto added, were it not that these are sufficient for our purpose, to shew as well what power was given to the said Timothy and Titus, two apostolical bishops newly designed unto their episcopal 172 functions, as also what authority the Apostle himself had whilst he lived, both of prescribing rules unto them and also of exacting the due observation of them ; he retaining still in his own hands as full power and ample jurisdiction over them, as they the said bishops had received from him over the rest of the ministry within their several charges. And thus we see how by degrees the Apostles did settle the government of the Church amongst the gentiles con- verted to Christ, most suitable and agreeing with the plat- form ordained by God Himself amongst the Jews. Ministers are placed in particular congregations, as priests or levites were in their synagogues. Twenty-four priests, termed Prin- cipes Sacerdotum, had in that kingdom the charge over the rest of the priests ; and amongst Christians one sort of priests, named bishops or archbishops, as their jurisdictions were ex- tended, had the oversight of the rest of the ministry or priest- hood. Lastly, as over all the priests of what sort soever, and overall's convocation book. 141 over the rest of all the Jews, Aaron had the chief pre-eminence; book so had the Apostles over all the bishops and priests, and over : — the rest of all Christians. There was only this want to the full accomplishment of such a church-government as was settled amongst the Jews, that during the Apostles' times, and for a long season afterwards, it wanted Christian magis- trates to supply the rooms of Moses, king David, king Solo- mon, and of the rest of their worthy successors. There is no mention in the Scriptures of the particular success that the rest of the Apostles had in planting of churches throughout all Africa and Asia the Great, and a great part of Europe; but we doubt not but that they followed that same course in those parts that other of the Apostles did in these parts p nearer, or better known to us ; they proceeding within their limits as St. Paul did within his. And moreover, we have sufficient warrant by the said practice of our Apostles to judge that if all the kings and 173 sovereign princes in the world would have received the Gospel whilst the Apostles lived, they would have settled this platform of church-government under them in every such kingdom and sovereign principality ; that as the three essential parts of the priesthood under the law were trans- lated to the ministry or priesthood in the New Testament, so the external show or practice of them might have been in effect the same under Christian princes that it was under the godly princes and kings of Judah ; Christians of particular congregations to be directed by their immediate pastors, pastors to be ruled by their bishops, bishops to be advised by their archbishops, and the archbishops, with all the rest both of the clergy and laity, to be ruled and governed by their godly kings and sovereign princes. CANON VI. &ni t&errtou if ang man sj&aU affirm, unter colour of ana tDtns tfiat is in t&£ ^crtptttreg, ritfier tfiat the platform of cfmrriHobernment in tfie Nrfo ©tatammt mag not lafofullg fce ortmatr from tfiat form of cfiurcfi-gobernment fofiid) teas f The words 'that other of the Apostles did in these parts,' are omitted in D. 142 overall's convocation book. b o o k in tbe ©ID ; or, that because the apostles Dfo not once for all : — anD at one time, but bg Degrees, erect such a lifee form of ecclesiastical gobernment as mas amongst the 3(etos, therefore it is not to be supposed that theg meant at all to erect it ; or, that their expectation of fit opportunity to establish that feinD of gobernment in the churches of the ffientiles, being con=m berteD to ©brist, bath ang more force nom to DiscreDit q it, than bati tbe mant of it for mang gears amongst tbe gjefos to blemish tbe Dignitg of it foben it was there establisbeD ; or, that tbe Apostles haD no further authoritg of churcb=gobem= ment commttteD unto tbem after tbe resurrection anD ascension of CThrtst, than tbeg baD before f^is passion ; or, tbat tbere mas not as great nccessitg of sunbrg Degrees in tbe mimstrg, tohilst the Apostles libeD, one to rule, another to be ruleD, for the establishing anD gobernment of the ©hurcb, as there mas tobilst tbe priesthood of &aron enDureD; or, that ©brist f^imself DiD not, after a sort, approbe of Dibers Degrees of ministers, some to babe pre-eminence ober others, in that babing chosen to himself ttoelbe Apostles |^e Jjftr also elect sebentg Disciples, mho mere neither superior nor equal to the Apostles, anil mere therefore their inferiors ; or, that f^e DiD not berg expresslg after ?^is ascension appoint Dibers orders anil degrees of ministers, mho bab pomer anD pre=eminence one ober another, Apostles ober the prophets anD ebangelists, anD the ebangelists ober pastors anD Doctors ; or, that the authoritg of preaching, of aDministration of the Sacraments, anD of 175 ecclesiastical gobernment giben to tbe Apostles, mas not to be communicateD bg the Apostles unto others as there sbouTD be gooD opportunt'tg in that behalf ; or, that because there mere some personal prerogatibes belonging to the Apostles, mbich theg coultt not communicate unto others, therefore tbeg bail not pomer to communicate to some ministers, as mell their authoritg of gobernment ober other ministers, as their authoritg to preach anD aDministet the Sacraments; or, that in the authoritg of gobernment so to be communicateD unto others bg the Apostles, there are not incluDeD certain Degrees to be in 1 ' Force to discredit.' D. overall's convocation book. 143 tf>e ministrg, some to rule anU gome to be ruleo ; or, tbat it book teas not Iafoful for tbe Apostles to cboose unto tbemselbes - — — — coaojutors anfc to mafte tbem ministers of tbe 512SorK anfc Sacraments, tfiottpj tbeg tietr tbem for a space to no certain place, more tfian tbeg tbemselbes antr tbe evangelists toere limited or tieif, hut fcept tbem in tbeir oton compang, as if tbeg bab been, in a manner, tbeir fellotos, ano emplogeii tbem in apostolical embassages as tbere toere occasions ; or, tbat tbe gtpostles migbt not latofullg ortrain a seconit or&er of ministers 176 bg imposition of tbeir fianbs, to prcacft ano administer tfte Sacraments, antf to tie tbem to particular cburcbes anJj con- gregations, tfiere to execute tbose tbeir iruties; or, tbat tfie ministers of tbat secontf degree antt orber, so tiefc unto tbeir particular cftarges, baU ang potoer commttteij unto tbem, eitfter at all to make ministers or to pronounce tbe sentence of excommunication against ang of tbeir congregation but bg tbe Direction of tbe Apostles foben tbeg bab giben tbe sentence, iruring all tbe time tbat tbe Apostles kept in tbeir oton bancs tbe saffl ttoo points of ecclesiastical autboritg r ; or, tbat it toas not expe&ient for tbe apostles to retain in tbeir oton bancs tbe potoer antf autboritg of ecclesiastical gobemment for a time, anil tobilst tbeg toere able to execute tbe same in tbeir oton persons, or bg tbeir coaojutors, as tbeg sbouto bfrect tbem, ana not to communicate tbe same eitber to ang tbeir saffl coaojutors or otber persons of tbe ministrg, until tbeg tbem= selbes ba& gooir experience antr trial of tbem, anir tbat tbe par* ticular cburcbes also in eberg citg founto tbe toant of sucb men, so autbori?eif, to resitre amongst tbem ; or, tbat toben tbe satir ministers, placet* in Oibers particular cburcbes in sunirrg 177 cities, fell at Variance amongst tbemselfaes tobicb of tbem sboulK be most prevalent amongst tbe people, antf Ureto tbeir follotoers into tribers sects antJ scbisms, it toas not bigb time for tbe Apostles, seeing bg reason of tbeir great affairs antf business otbertoise tbeg coulb not attentr tbose particular bratols anlr inconveniences, to appoint some toortbg persons in r In the MS. a slip of paper pasted the original scribe, an omission which over the leaf, supplies, in the hand of he had made at this point. 144 overall's convocation book. book eberg citg to fiabe tfje rule, gobernment, anb birection of tfjem ; — — — or, tfjat fofien sucfj men foere to tie placeb in sucfi cities, tfje Apostles UtK not mafee especial cfiotce of tfjem, out of tfie numfier of tfieir saib coabjutors, anb lifeefoise out of tfie rest of tfie mtntstrg, to execute tfiose episcopal buties fofiicfi trfU apper= tain to tfieir callings ; or, tfiat fofien tfieg fiab so tiesipelj anb cfiosen tfiem to be bisfiops, tfieg &flj not communicate unto tfiem as foell tfieir apostolical autfjoritg of orbaining of ministers anb pofoer of tfie fogs, as of preacfiing anb atr= ministering tfie Sacraments ; or, that it was not tfie meaning of tfje Apostle £>t. $aul, tfiat sucfi persons as ©imotfig anb ©itus foere, ougfjt to be mabe bisfiops in sucfi cities anb countries as foere tfje probince of CBpfiesus, anir tfje fiingbom of ©rete, anir to fiabe tfje lifce autfjoritg anb pofoer giben tfiem in tfieir seberal cities, fottfi tfieir suburbs, biocese or probince, m tfjat foas committeb to ©imotfig anb ®itus, for tfje ruling of tfjose ministers anb cfiurcfies unber tfiem; or, tfjat tfje autfjoritg giben bg tfje apostle §bt. $aul, or bg ang otfjer of tfje Apostles, to ©imorfig anb ^itus, anb sucfi lifee otfjer bisfiops or arcfibisfjops, bib ang more btmintsfi tfje pofoer anb autfjoritg, fofiicfi tfje gtpostles fiab in tfieir ofon fianbs before tfieg appofnteb ang sucfi bisfiops or arcfibtsfiops to rule anb gobern tfjem all, tfjan tfieir gibing power anb autfjoritg of preacfjtng anb abministering tfje Sacraments ^iO impeacfj tfieir oton autfjoritg so to bo, fie botfi greatlg err. overall's convocation book. 145 BOOK m CHAPTER VIII. n. THE SUM OP THE CHAPTER FOLLOWING. That the churches and godly Fathers that were immediately after the Apostles' times, and all the ancient Fathers since, did account the form of church-government established by the Apostles, of priests and ministers, for more particular charges, of bishops, superior to the said priests, and of archbishops, to have the care and oversight of the said bishops and churches committed unto them, not to have been ordained for their times only, but to be continued to the end of the world ; the same reasons exacting the continuance of it, which moved the Apostles, by the direction of the Holy Ghost, first to erect it. We have pursued the form of ecclesiastical government, so far forth as it is expressed in the Scriptures and as it was put in practice during the Apostles' times. For the further proof whereof, we have thought it expedient briefly to observe what the primitive Church, ancient Fathers, and the ecclesi- astical histories, have in their writings b testified and said of this matter ; as, whether they held that Timothy and Titus were bishops in the Apostles' times, and had authority over the churches and ministry committed to their charge; and whether that form of church-government in the Apostles' times, wherein were divers degrees of ministers, one sort to direct and rule, viz. bishops', and the other to be directed and ruled, was only necessary for the first plantation of the Churches, but not so afterwards when the churches were planted; as if it had been a lawful form of government 180 whilst the Apostles lived, but upon their deaths it became presently to be unlawful. It is very apparent and cannot be denied, that in many Greek copies u of the New Testament, Timothy and Titus are termed bishops in the directions or subscription x of two epistles which St. Paul did write unto 8 [The word 'apocryphal' has been hand.] inserted before 'writings,' but it has u [See note P.] been removed in accordance with a * [For ' inscriptions ' as it stands in memorandum prefixed to the chapter the MS. here and p. 146. 1. 6, D. reads in a hand which appears to be Overall's.] 'subscription,' according to the autho- ' [The words 'viz. bishops ' are in- rity of the corrections mentioned in a serted above the line, but by the first previous note.] 146 overall's convocation book. book them. These are the words of the said directions; 'The — second epistle written from Rome unto Timotheus, the first bishop elected of the church of Ephesus.' And again j ' To Titus elect the first bishop of the Cretians, written from Nicopolis in Macedonia.' Moreover, agreeable to the said subscription, the ancient Fathers generally, having, no doubt upon their due searching the Scriptures, fully considered of the form of ecclesiastical government whilst the Apostles lived, do with one consent, whensoever they expound the epistles of St. Paul to Timothy and Titus, or have occasion to speak of the authority of those two persons, very resolutely affirm that they were by the Apostles made bishops. And the same also they do testify of St. James the Apostle him- self, called the Lord's brother ; that he was made by the rest of the Apostles, his colleagues, bishop of Hierusalem ; and so also of the Seven Angels of the churches in Asia, that they were so many bishops of the Apostles' ordination. Besides, the said ancient Fathers 7 did very well know that when St. Paul said to Timothy, ' I charge thee in the sight of God and before Jesus Christ, that thou keep this commandment without spot, and unrebukeable, until the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ ;' that it was impossible for Timothy to observe those things till the coming of Christ, he being to die long before ; and that therefore the precepts and rules which St. Paul had given unto him, to observe in his epi- scopal government, did equally appertain as well to bishops, his successors, as unto himself, and were to be executed by them successively after his death unto the world's end, as carefully and diligently as he himself, whilst he lived, had put them in practice. One of the said Fathers doth write as followeth*: 'With great vigilancy and providence doth the 1 81 Apostle give precepts to the ruler of the church ; for in his person doth the safety of the people consist. He is not so circumspect, as fearing Timothy's care, but for his successors ; that after Timothy's example they should observe the ordi- nation of the church, and begin themselves to keep that form which they were to deliver to those that came after y Tertull. contra Marcion., lib. v j [See note Q.] Chrysost. Horn. x. in 1 Tim. ; Ambr. ■ Ambr. ibid. [See note R.] in 1 Tim. vi. ; Oecum. in 1 Tim. vi. overall's convocation book. 147 them.' Again, it is evident by the ecclesiastical histories a , B O O K that not only St. James, Timothy, and Titus, were made ! bishops by the Apostles, but that likewise Peter himself was bishop of Antioch ; so termed, because of his long stay there; and that the Apostles likewise made Evodius bishop of Antioch after St. Peter, and St. Mark bishop of Alexandria, and Polycarpus bishop of Smyrna; and that St. John, re- turning from Patmos to Ephesus, went to the churches round about and made bishops in those places where they were wanting; and also that divers others of the Apostles' coadjutors, besides Timothy and Titus, were made by them bishops, and did govern the cities and provinces where they were placed, according to the same rules that were prescribed to Timothy and Titus ; as Dionysius the Areopagite was the first bishop of Athens, Caius the first bishop of Thessalonica, Archippus the first bishop of the Colossians '' ; and we doubt not but many more by diligent reading may be found, that were in the Apostles' times made bishops. Furthermore, it is most apparent by the testimonies of all antiquity, Fathers, and ecclesiastical histories, that all the churches in Christendom that were planted and governed by the Apostles, and by such their coadjutors, apostolical per- sons, as unto whom the Apostles had to that end fully com- municated their apostolical authority, did think that after the death, either of any of the Apostles, which ruled amongst them, or of any other the said bishops ordained by them, it 182 was the meaning of the Holy Ghost, testified sufficiently by the practice of the Apostles, that the same order and form of ecclesiastical government should continue in the church for ever. And therefore upon the death of any of them, either Apostles or bishops, they, the said churches, did always supply their places with others the most worthy and eminent persons amongst them ; who, with the like power and autho- rity that their predecessors had, did ever succeed them. In- somuch as in every city and episcopal see, where there were divers priests and ministers of the Word and Sacraments, and but one bishop only, the catalogues of the names, not of their priests but of their bishops, were very carefully kept « Euseb., lib. iii. cap. 35 ; Iren., lib. b Euseb. lib. iii. cap. 4 ; Origen. in iii. cap. 3; Euseb., lib. iii. cap. 23. cap.xvi. ad Rom. ; Ambr. ad Coloss. cap. [See note S.] iv. [See note T.] L 2 148 OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. book from time to time, together with the names of the Apostles, '- — or apostolical persons, the bishops their predecessors, from whom they derived their succession. Of which succession of bishops, whilst the succession of truth continued with it, the ancient Fathers made great account and use when any false teachers did broach new doctrine, as if they had received the same from the Apostles j choaking them with this, that they were not able to shew any apostolical church that ever taught as they did. Upon such an occasion, Irenseus bishop of Lyons, within seventy-five years, or thereabout, after St. John's death, doth write in this sort ; Habenius annumerare eos, qui ab Apostolis instituti sunt episcopi in ecclesiis, et successores eorum usque ad nos, qui nihil tale docuerunt, neque cognoverunt , quale ab his deliratur c . And so likewise, not long after him, Tertullian, to oppress some who, as it seemeth, drew companies after them, saith thus ; Edant origines ecclesiarum suarum ; evolvant ordinem episcoporum suorum, ila per successiones ab initio decurrentem, ut primus ille episcopus aUquern ex Apostolis, aut apostolicis viris, qui tamen cum Apostolis perseveraverit, habuerit autorem et ante- cessorem ; hoc enim modo Ecclesice Catholica sensus suos defe- runt d . And St. Augustine, Radix Christians societatis per 183 sedes Apostolorum et successores episcoporum certd per orbem propagatione diffunditur e . Again, forasmuch as it was thought by our Saviour Christ the best means for the building and continuing of His Church in the Apostles' times, to ordain sundry degrees of ministers in dignity and authority, one over another, when such a kind of pre-eminence might have been thought not so necessary, because the Apostles by working of miracles, might otherwise, as it is probable, have procured to them- selves sufficient authority; how can it with any reason be imagined but that Christ much more did mean to have the same still to be continued after the Apostles' days, wben the gifts of doing miracles were to cease and when men's zeal was like to grow more cold than it was at the first. It savoureth assuredly, we know not of f what faction, indiscre- c Iren. adv. Haeres., lib. iii. cap. 3. [See note V.] [See note U.] c August Epist. 24. [See note AW] d Tertull. de praescrip. adv. Haeres. ' [we know of what. Z>.] overall's CONVOCATION BOOKj 149 tion, or affection for any man, either to think that form of BOOK church-government to be unfit for our times that was held '- — necessary for the Apostles' times ; or that order, so much commended amongst all men, and is most properly termed par'aim dispariumque rerum sua cuique loca tribuens dispo- sitio, should be necessary to build the Church, but unfit to preserve it ; or, that the same artisans that are most meet to build this or that house, are not the fittest both to keep the same in good reparations, and likewise to build other houses, when there is cause. No man can doubt, who is of any read- ing, but that, when the Apostles died, there were many defects in many churches ; and that likewise there were a number of places in the world where the Apostles had never been, and where there were no g churches at all planted or established. Whereupon it followeth of necessity, that if the said form of government in the Apostles' days was then necessary for the planting and ordering of churches, that 184 the same did continue to be as necessary afterwards, for the supplying of such defects as were left in some churches, and for the planting and ordering of other churches in those places that had not received the Gospel whilst the Apostles lived. And to this purpose it doth much avail that for aught we can find, there can no one nation or country be named since the Apostles' days, neither in times of persecution nor since, but when it first received the faith of Christ, it had thereupon both bishops and arch- bishops placed in it for the government of the churches that were there planted ; imitating therein, for their more certain direction, the government of the churches that were erected by the Apostles, and had been deduced from them, agreeable, in substance, with the form of ecclesiastical government that was once amongst God's own people, the Jews. Which was no new conceit amongst the ancient Fathers, as it may appear by the words of one of them h , who saith, in effect, that bishops, priests and deacons, may challenge now that authority in the Church which Aaron and his sons and the Levites had in times past ; and that the Apostles in establish- ing of their government in the New Testament, had respect « [churches planted. D.~\ h Jerom. Ep. ad Evagrium. [See note X.] 150 overall's convocation book. book to that which was in the Old, for as much as concerned the II '- — essential parts of that priesthood. Moreover, the primitive churches, presently after the Apostles' times, finding in the New Testament no one person to have heen ordained a priest, or minister of the Gospel, mediately hy men, hut either by imposition of the Apostles' hands, or of their hands to whom they gave authority in that behalf, as unto Timothy and Titus, and such other bishops as they were ; and knowing that the Church of Christ should never be left destitute of priests and bishops for the work of the ministry ; they durst not presume upon their own heads to devise a new form of making of ministers, nor to commit that authority unto any other, after their own fancies, but 185 held it their bounden duty to leave the same where they found it, viz. in the hands of Timothy and Titus, and con- sequently of other bishops their successors. Whereupon it followeth very necessarily, that none of the primitive churches or ancient Fathers did ever so much as once dream that the authority given by St. Paul to Timothy and Titus, and to the rest who were then made bishops, as well for the ordering of priests, as for the further order and government of the Church, did determine by the death of the Apostles ; con- sidering, that presently after, as long as they were in being and lived, and ever since till very lately, it was held by them altogether unlawful for any to ordain a priest or minister of the Word, except he were himself a bishop ; and no one approved example for the space of above fifteen hundred years, can be shewed, for aught we find, to the contrary. It is true that one Coluthus", being himself but a priest, would needs take upon him to make priests, in spleen against his own bishop, the bishop of Alexandria, with whom he was then fallen at variance ; and that the like attempt was made by one Maximus k , supposing himself to have been a bishop, where he was indeed but a priest, as it was decided by the first Council of Constantinople. Howbeit such their ordina- tions were accounted void and utterly condemned as unlawful; they themselves not escaping such just reproof as so great a novelty and presumption did deserve. We acknowledge that for the great dignity of the action of ordination, it was ' [See note Y.] k [See note Z.] overall's convocation BOOK. 15] decreed by another 1 council, that priests should lay their BOOK hands, with the bishop, upon him that was to be made priest ; — — — but they had not thereby any power of ordination ; but only did it to testify their consent thereunto, and likewise to concur in the blessing of him; neither might they ever in that sort impose their hands upon any without their bishops. 186 Again, the said primitive churches and ancient Fathers, finding how the Apostles by the inspiration of the Holy Ghost had ordained bishops, Timothy, Titus, and such like, for the ordering and appeasing of such quarrels and conten- tions as arise amongst the ministers and people for want of some amongst them of authority to govern them ; they might thereby have' been confirmed more and more in their judg- ments, if at any time they had doubted of it, concerning the necessity of that apostolical form of government, that it was for ever to continue, to the end the schisms and contentious persons might be still by the same means suppressed that they were whilst the Apostles lived. For they ever observed what the want of bishops would work in the Church, and how the contempt of them and disobedience to their direc- tions was always a chief cause of sects and schisms. Which made them easily to discern that if the Apostles had not pro- vided for the continuance of their apostolical authority in bishops, who were to sueceed them in the government of -the Church, but had left an equality in the clergy, that every one might have proceeded in his own particular church after his own fashion, there would have been nothing in the Church but disorder, scandals, sects, schisms, and all manner of confusion. One of the ancient Fathers, perceiving in his time what pride and contempt certain unstaid and conten- tious persons shewed toward their archbishops, did lay it upon them as a property of heretics, and feared not to com- pare them to the devils. These are his words : Quilibet hcereticus, §c. loquens cum pontifice, nee eum vocat pontificem, nee archiepiscopum, nee religiosissimum, nee sanctum ; sed quid? — Reverentia tua; — et nomina illi adducit communia, ejus negans autoritatem. Diabolus hoc turn fecit in Deo ; ' Ero similis Altissimo.' Non 'Deo' sed ' Altissimo.' 1 [See note AA.] 152 overall's convocation book, book And another worthy Father™, long before the days of the ii. former, did accordingly observe that heretics and schismatics did usually spring from no other fountain but this ; Quod 187 sacerdoti Dei non obtemperatur ; nee unus in Ecclesia ad tern- pus sacerdos ; et ad tempus judex vice Christi cogitatur 11 ; — 'that the priest of God' (meaning every such bishop as he himself was in his own diocese) 'was not obeyed; nor one priest in the church acknowledged for the time to be judge in Christ's stead.' And again, Unde schismata et hcereses abort te sunt, et oriuntur ; nisi dum episcopus, qui unus est, et ecclesice prmest, superbd quorundam prasumptione contem- nitur" ? — 'Whence have schisms and heresies sprung up, and do still spring; but whilst the bishop, which is one, and ruleth the church, is by the proud presumption of certain despised ?' A third Father also, though at some times he had a sharp tooth against bishops, as they carried themselves in his time, doth confess nevertheless, that when schisms first began, bishops were ordained, ut schismatum semina tollerentur ; and in another place, in remedium schismatis, ne unusquisque ad se trahens Christi Ecclesiam rumperet. Also where the same Father doth write against the Luciferians p , and under- taketh the defence of bishops in a right point, untruly by them impugned, he speaketh of their authority within their several dioceses after this sort ; Ecclesice sal us in summi sacerdotis dignitate pendet ; cui si non exors qucedam et ab hominibus eminens detur potestas, tot in ecclesiis efficientur schismata quot sacerdotes ; that is, ' The safety of the Church doth consist in the dignity of the chief priest ; unto whom, if an extraordinary and eminent power from other men be not yielded, there will be as many schisms in churches, as there are priests.' Lastly, it is to be observed that in the Apostles' times the Roman empire had wrought a great confusion in all the kingdoms and countries about it, whilst in the greediness of honour in that state they had subdued their neighbour kings and princes, and turned their kingdoms and principalities ™ [and another rather. D.] CC] n Cypr., lib. 1. Ep. iii. [See note p Hieron. adv. Luciferianos. [See BB.] note DD.] Idem. lib. 4. En. viii. [See note overall's convocation book. 153 into provinces and consulships, and divers other such like BOOK forms of regiment 1 ; leaving the same to the government of -~ — lss their own substitutes, to whom they gave sundry and different ment titles. Which course, held by that state, caused the Apostles in their planting of churches, when they could not perform that which otherwise they would have done, to frame their proceedings as near unto it as they could. In the chief cities, which had been heads of so many kingdoms and were still the seat then of the principal Roman officers, principal per- sons were placed, who were bishops, and more than bishops ; as St. James at Jerusalem, [and Jerusalem, notwithstanding it was honoured with the name and title [of the see of St. James,] was not the metropolitan seat, or archbishopric of that province, but Csesarea ; whose right is saved in the giving that honour to Jerusalem in the first Nicene Council* 1 ;] St. Peter first in Antioch and then in Rome ; and St. Mark in Alexandria; who remained in those places, as was then most beboveful for those churches, as so many principal archbishops, patriarchs, to rule and direct all the bishops, priests, and Christians, in Palestine, Syria, Italy, and Egypt. And in other cities also and countries, not so famous then as the said four, there were appointed, according to the largeness of their extents, in some, bishops, to govern the ministers which were in such cities; and in some others, such as Timothy and Titus were, who, as we have shewed in the former chapter, had the oversight committed unto them, as well of bishops, as of the rest of the churches within their limits. All which particulars, so put in practice by the Apostles, were very well known to the primitive churches and ancient godly Fathers that lived the first three hundred years after Christ ; and gave them full assurance that they might lawfully pursue in those days that form of church- government which the Apostles themselves had erected ; the state and condition of the times remaining still one and the same that it was when the Apostles lived. Whereupon, by 189 their example, they did not only continue the succession of bishops and archbishops in those places where the Apostles i [The passage within brackets oc- not in that addition, but are introduced curs on the slip prefixed to this chapter. from D. as they seem necessary to com- The words ' of the see of St. James' are plete the Eense. ] 154 overall's convocation book. book had settled them ; supplying other churches, either not : — throughly settled, or not at all planted, when the Apostles died, as before hath been mentioned, with the like church- governors; but did likewise preserve and uphold in those parts of the world, where Christianity did then chiefly flourish, the succession of patriarchal archbishops in the above-mentioned four most principal cities, Jerusalem, An- tioch, Rome, and Alexandria. Insomuch as it is com- monly held that this apostolical order was thus distributed and settled by the Fathers of the primitive Church long before the Council of Nice; and that then in that holy assembly it was only but so acknowledged and continued, idque ad discipline conservationem, as a very worthy man 1 hath observed. The consideration of all which particular points concerning the placing of archbishops and bishops in the territories of the Romans, according to the dignities and chief honours of the cities and countries where they were placed, doth very throughly persuade us that, as we observed in the former chapter, if all the said kingdoms and sovereign principalities then in subjection to the Roman empire had been freed of that servitude, and governed by their own kings and princes as they had been before, the Apostles, though the said kings and princes had refused to receive the Gospel, would not- withstanding, as much as in them lay, have settled in every one of them, for the government of the church there, the like form that God Himself did erect amongst the Jews, and that they themselves did establish in their times in the like heathenish places, as is aforesaid, that is, in every such kingdom, ministers in particular churches or congregations, bishops over ministers, and archbishops to oversee and direct them all. And assuredly, if when Christian kings and 190 sovereign princes did free themselves from the yoke of the empire, they had either known or regarded the ordinance of the Holy Ghost for the government of the churches within their kingdoms and principalities, they would have been as careful to have delivered their churches from the bondage of the bishop of Rome as they were their kingdoms from sub- jection to the empire. For all that is commonly alleged to ' Calvin. [See note EE.] overall's convocation book. 155 the contrary is but the fume of presumptuous brains. The BOOK chief archbishops, either in Prance or Spain, have as full — — — power and authority under their sovereigns, as the bishops of Rome in times past had over Italy under their emperor; and by the institution of Christ they ought to depend no more upon the see of Rome than they do now one upon the other ; or than the archbishops of England, under their most worthy sovereign, do depend upon any of them; as it will hereafter more plainly, we hope, appear by that which we have to say of that infinite authority which the pope doth vainly challenge to himself. CANON VII. glntf therefore if ang man shall affirm, untfer colour of ang tiling that is in the Scriptures, either that the inscriptions or tu'rections of the secontf epistle of St. ^aul to ©imothg, or of his epistle to ®itus, though theg are fountf in the ancient copies of the d&reeu Testament, are of no cretrit or authoring ; or, that such an impeachment antf triscrecrit laitf upon them is not berg prefubicial to the books antf writings of the |^o!g 191 ©host ; or, that it is not great presumption for men in these Bags to take upon them to knofo better whether ©imothg antf @utus were bishops, than the churches anir gotflg Jfathers tfitf, which were plantetf antf libeif either in the Apostles' times or presentlg after them, except theg habe some especial dela- tions from ffiotf ; or, that whilst men tfo labour to bring into triscretfit the ancient fathers antf primitive churches, theg tfo not derogate from themselbes such cretrit as theg hunt after, antf as much as in them Iieth bring mang parts of religion unto a montferful uncertatntg; or, that it is probable, or was possible for ^imothg to habe obserbetf those rules that St. $aul gabe him until the coming of ©hrist, except, as the jpathers expountr some of them, he meant to habe them first obserbetf bg himself antf other bishops in that age, antf that afterfoartfs theg shoultf so likewise be obserbetf bg all bishops for eber ; or, that the ancient JFathers antf ecclesiastical his- 156 OVERALL'S C&NVOCATION BOOK. book tones, foben tbeg recorb it to all posteritg, tbat tbese men, : — anil rbose men, foere maiie bg tbe Apostles bisbops of sucb anil sucb places, are not to be ftetti to lie of more cre&t't tfian ang otfter btstoriograpbers or foriters; or, tbat foben tfie ancient Jfatfiers oft collect out of tbe Scriptures anil practice 102 of tbe Apostles, tbe continuance for eber of tfiat form of cburcb=gobernment fobicb mas tften in use, tbeg were not so tbrougblg illuminate!* foitb tfie f^olg C&fiost as tubers men of late babe been ; or, tbat it foas an Me course belfc bg tfie primitibe cburcbes anir ancient jfatbers, to feeep tbe catalogues of tfteir bisbops, or to ground arguments in some cases upon tbeir succession, in tfiat tbeg foere able to iieiiuce tbeir beginnings ettber from tbe Apostles or from some apostolical persons ; or, tbat tbe form of government useii in tbe Apostles' times, for tfie planting an& orftering of cburcbes, foas not, in mang respects, as necessarg to be continued in tbe fitburcb afterfoar&s ; espertallg considering tbat mang cburcbes foere not left fullg or&ereiJ, nor in some places foere at all planted, foben tbe Apostles irieli; or, tbat true anil perfect orUcr, groun&eii upon -tbe berg lafos of nature an& reason, an& esta- blisbeJJ bg tbe f^olg ffibost in tbe Apostles' times, foas not fit for tbe cburcbes of CGoti afterfoar&s to embrace anil obserbe; or, tbat ang cburcb, since tbe Apostles' times, till of late, foben it receibeii tbe Gospel, bail not lifeefoise bisbops anir arcbbisbops for tbe gobernmcnt of it; or, tbat lifters of tbe ancient Jfatbers bit} not bol&, anil tbat berg 193 trulg, for augbt tbat appeared) to tbe contrarg, tbat our Sbabiour ©btist anir fiat's Apostles, in establisbing tbe form of cburcb=gobernment amongst tbe ©entiles, ba& an especial respect to tbat form bi^itf) Golf bail settled amongst tbe 3Jefos, anil iifiJ no foag purpose to abrogate or abolisb it ; or, ' tbat ang since tbe Apostles' times, till of late irags, foas eber belli to be a lafoful minister of tbe SfiBorfc anij Sacraments, fobo foas not or&ainelr priest or minister bg tbe imposition of tbe bantrs of some bisbop ; or, tbat it is foitb ang probabilitg to be imagineii tbat all tbe cburcbes of ©brist anil ancient Jfatbers from tbe beginning, fooulft eber babe belli it for an overall's convocation book. 157 apostolical rule, tftat none but bishops ftab ang autftoritg to book mafce priests, ftab tfteg not tftougftt anb jubgeb tftat tfte same '■ — autftoritg ftab been bcribeb unto tftem, tfte saib bisftops, from tfte same apostolical orbination tftat t't foas committeb unto ©imotftg anli ©this, tfteir prebecessors ; or, tftat tfte Apostles anb all tfte ancient Jfatfters mere beceibeb roften tfteg {ubgcb tfte autftoritg of bisftops necessarg at all times for tfte sup= pressing of scftisms ; anb tftat without bisftops, tftere fooulb 194 be in tfte cfturcftes as mang sects as ministers; or, tftat {often men finb tftemselbes, in regarb of tfteir bisobebience to tfteir bisftops, so fullg anb notably bescribeb anb censureb bg all tfte ancient jpatfters for scftismatics anb contentious persons, tfteg ftabe not just cause to fear tfteir ohm estates, if tfteg continue in sucft tfteir foilfulness anb obstinacg ; or, tftat tfte cfturcft=gobemment, by us abobe treated of, is trulg to be saib to sabour of gjubaism, more tftan tfte obserbation bg goblg feings anb princes of tfte equitg of tfte jubicial law giben to tfte 3}ews, mag trulg be saib to sabour tftereof ; or, tftat it botft proceeb from ang otfter tftan tfte wicfteb spirit, for ang sort of men, wftat goblg sftow soeber tfteg can pretenb, to seen to biscrebit, as mucft as in tftem lietft, tftat form of cfturcft= gobernment wftt'eft foas establisfteb bg tfte Apostles, anb left bg tftem to continue in tfte ©fturcft to tfte enb of tfte roorfb, unber arcftbisftops anb bisftops, sucft as loere ©imotftg anb ©itus, anb some otfters, tften calleb to tftose offices bg tfte saib Apostles, anb eber since ftelb bg tfte primitibe cfturcftes anb all tfte ancient jf atfters to be apostolical functions ; or, to term tfte same or ang part of it to be anti=©ftristian, fte botft greatlg err. 158 overall's convocation book. BOOK — ^ — CHAPTER IX. 195 THE SUM OF THE CHAPTER FOLLOWING. That our Saviour Christ, upon, His ascension into heaven, did not commit the temporal government of the whole world unto St. Peter ; that the Apostles and the whole ministry did succeed Christ, not as He was a person immortal and glorious after His resurrection, but as He was a mortal man here upon the earth before His passion ; that Christ left neither to St. Peter, nor to the bishops of Rome, nor to any other arch- bishops or bishops, any temporal possessions ; all, that since any of them have gotten, being bestowed upon them by emperors, kings and princes, and other their good benefactors; and that the imagination of St. Peter's temporal sovereignty is very idle, the same being never known unto himself for aught that appeareth, and argueth great ignorance of the true nature of the spiritual kingdom of Christ ; for the erecting whereof the spiritual working of the Holy Ghost with the Apostles, and the rest of the ministry of the Gospel, was, and is only necessary. It hath been shewed by us before that our Saviour Christ, after His resurrection and ascension, became actually in the state 3 of the Heir of all things, Governor of all the world, and Kiilg of kings, even as He was man ; His divine nature working more gloriously in His humanity than formerly it had done. Howbeit, although we also made it plain that notwithstanding the said glory, power, rule, dominion and majesty, wherewith Christ is really possessed, sitting in heaven at the right hand of His Father, He made no alter- ation in the form and manner of temporal government, but 196 left the whole world to be ruled by kings and sovereign princes under Him as it had been before ; Himself retaining still in His own hands the sceptre and chiefest ensigns of royal and highest majesty, to direct and dispose them all according to His divine pleasure; yet the parasitical and sottish crew of Romish Canonists, with the new sectaries, " [' Became actually the heir' is the at the heginning of the chapter, appa- reading of the text of the MS., but the rently in Overall's handwriting.] alteration is made according to a slip overall's convocation book. 159 their companions, will assuredly moyle ' and repine thereat ; BOOK telling us by the pen of one of their fellows, the veriest idiot , . ' — we think amongst them', that all power, dominion, and worldly principality, was left by Christ, after His ascension, unto St. Peter ; that two times are to be considered in Christ, the one before His passion, when propter humilitatem He refused to judge u , that is, to shew Himself a temporal magis- trate, the other after His resurrection, and then He said, 'All power is given unto Me, in heaven and in earth;' that [Mat. 28. Christ, after His resurrection, gave His power to St. Peter 8- J and made him His vicar ; and that ex potestate Domini the power of His vicar is to be measured. And to advance that power as highly as he can, supposing that what he can say thereof doth belong to St. Peter, he quoteth a number of places out of the Scriptures *, concerning the dignity, honour, royalty and majesty attributed to our Saviour Christ after His resurrection and ascension, by reason of the unition so oft before by us mentioned 7 ; and doth conclude that cessan- tibus ratiordbus humilitatis, necessitatis, atque paupertatis, that the reasons of His former humility, necessity, and poverty ceasing, Christ did shew Himself to be the Lord of all ; ut ascensurus ad Patrem eandem potestatem Petro relinqueret. And moreover he is peremptory that Peter did exercise this tem- poral power in sua propria naturd temporaliter, 'in the proper nature of it temporally/ for it is said in the Acts 2 , (chap. v.) that he condemned Ananias and Sapphira, pro crimine 197 facti ad pmnam civiliter, 'for the crime of a fact to a punish- ment civilly/ Now if Peter was so great a temporal monarch whilst he lived, what must we think of his vicar, the pope ; and how royal is the estate of all archbishops and bishops that have any dependency upon him ? For as the especial Jesuit and cardinal, an enemy to the Canonists in this point, doth infer, Si papa est dominus totius orbis Christiani svpre- mus, ergo singuli episcopi sunt principes temporales in oppidis suo episcopatui suhjectis H ; ' If the pope be lord of all the ' Dr. Mart, de Jurisd. Part I. c. 5. * [The words from 'by reason' to §6. [See note FF.] 'mentioned' are introduced between » Id. ib. u. 22. § 4, 5. [See note the lines in the MS.] GG] * Id. ib. «. 22. § 6. [See note II.] * Id. Append, ad c. 22. [See note ■ Sellarmin. de Rom. Pont., lib. v. HH.] c 3. [See note KK.] 160 overall's convocation book. book Christian world, then it folio weth that all particular bishops — It are temporal princes in the cities and towns subject to their bishoprics.' To the manifestation of all which the said Canonist his so absurd and gross assertions, before we proceed any further we hold it not unfit, for the reasons elsewhere specified by us, when we shewed that Christ was no temporal lord, nor had any temporal dominion after the manner of other kings, first to hear the cardinal, how he shaketh the very ground- work and foundation of all these vanities. For whereas his opposites would make St. Peter, and consequently the pope, his successor, to derive such their infinite power and temporal authority from Christ, after His resurrection, as He was then a man, immortal and glorious, having cast off His former infirmities and mortality ; the cardinal is resolute to the con- trary, and doth reason in this sort. Christus, ut homo, dum in terris viwit, non accepit nee voluit ullum temporale dominium ; summus autem pontifex Christi vicarius est, et Christum nobis reprcesentat, qualis erat, dum hie inter homines viveret. Iyitur summus pontifex, ut Christi vicarius, atque adeo ut summus pontifex est, nullum habet temporale dominium : ' Christ, as He was man and lived upon the earth, He neither did, nor would receive any temporal dominion; but the pope is Christ's vicar, and doth represent Christ unto us, in that estate and condition that He lived in here amongst men; therefore the pope, as Christ's vicar, and so as he is the 1 98 highest bishop, hath no temporal dominion.' And again, Dicimus, papam habere Mud qfficium, quod habuit Christus, dum in terris inter homines humano more viveret. Neque enim pontifici possumus tribuere officio, qua habet d Christus, ut Deus, vel ut Homo immortalis et gloriosus ; sed solum ea, qua habuit ut homo mortalis : 'We say, that the pope hath that office that Christ had, when He lived in the earth amongst men, after the manner of men; for we cannot ascribe unto him those offices which Christ hath, as He is God, or as He is man, immortal and glorious, but only those which He had as a mortal man.' Neither doth he stay here, but goeth on forward, saying, ' Add, that the pope hath not c Bellarm. de Rom. Pont., lib. v. fl [habuit. D.] cap. i. [See note LL.] overall's convocation book. 161 all that power which Christ had as a mortal man. For He, BOOK because He was God and man, had a certain power, which is — -- — called a power of excellency, by the which He governed both faithful men and infidels ; but the pope hath only committed unto him His sheep, that is, such persons as are faithful. Again, Christ had power to institute Sacraments, and to work miracles by His own authority ; which things the pope can- not do. Also, Christ might absolve men from their sins, without the Sacraments, which the pope cannot.' Nay, the cardinal was so far from believing that all power and worldly principality was left by Christ unto St. Peter, and so unto his successors, as he confesseth in effect that neither St. Peter, as he was bishop of Rome, nor any of his successors, can challenge to themselves e so much as a rural farm, or any other kind of temporal possessions, which have not been given unto them by the emperors and other tem- poral princes. And lest such gifts might be held by any to be unlawful, he, to prove the contrary, allegeth that they were godly princes who so endowed the church of Eome. These are his words : Qui donaverunt episcopo Romano aliisque episcopis principatus temporales, pii homines fuerunt, et ed de 199 causa pracipue a totd Ecclesid commendati sunt ; ut patet de Constantino, Carolo magno, et Ludovico ejus filio, qui inde Pius appellatus est { : 'They who gave to the bishop of Eome, and other bishops, temporal principalities, were godly men, and for that cause especially were commended by the whole Church ; as appeareth of Constantine, Charles the Great, and Lewis his son, who in that respect was called Lewis the Godly.' Again, 'That the pope holdeth in right that prin- cipality which he hath, may easily be perceived, quia dono principum habuit, because he had it by the gift of princes g .' Of which gifts, he saith, the authentical instruments remain still in Rome; adding nevertheless, that if they had been lost, abunde sufficeret prmscriptio octingentorum annorurn h ; ' that a prescription of eight hundred years were abundantly sufficient to prove the pope's right.' And unto these words c [can challenge so much. D.~\ OO.] ' Bell.de Rom. Pont., lib. v. cap. 9. h Id. ibid. § Item Leo. [See note § Quarto, qui. [See note.NN.] PP.] s Id. ibid. § Jam vero. [See note 162 overall's convocation book. book of Bernard', forma apostolica hcec est ; interdicitur dominatio, — — : — indicitur ministratio, he answereth, that Bernard doth speak of the hishop of Rome secundum id quod habet ex Christi institutione. Also k Gregory the First, denouncing a curse against that bishop qui jubet alicui agro more fiscali titulum imprimi, who doth challenge to hold any possessions as an absolute temporal prince, in right of his church, the cardinal doth answer, 'that it is not to be marvelled that Gregory would not have bishops, nor the prefects of the patrimony of the church of Rome to use, more fiscali, in recovering the possessions of the church ■/ for, saith he, Nondum habuerat Ecclesia politicum principatum, sed possidebat bona temporalis ad eum modum, quo privati homines possident. Itaque eequum erat ut agros, quos suos esse censebat Ecclesia, si forte ab aliis occuparentur, injudicio legitimo eos repeteret ; non autem more fiscali propria sibi autoritate vendicaret ; that is, ' for as yet/ meaning when Gregory lived, which was six hundred years after Christ, 'the Church had no political principality, but did possess her temporal goods in the same manner whereby other private citizens possessed theirs. And therefore it was agreeable to equity, that if, perhaps, the possessions which the 200 Church supposed to be hers were occupied by other men, she was to require them, judicio legitimo, in a temporal court of the prince of whom the same were held; and might not challenge them to herself, by her own proper authority, more fiscali, as sovereign princes do, when their right is detained from them.' Lastly, the cardinal is so far driven by a worthy man 1 and some others of our side, who held it unlawful for the bishops of Rome, or any other bishops, to be absolute worldly princes, whosoever do bestow that sove- reignty upon them, the same being directly against Christ's words, ' vos autem non sic,' and for many other reasons, as he fiieth to the times of the Maccabees, when the ordinances of God, as touching the High-Priesthood, were utterly neg- lected, and nothing, in effect, left in the Church but pride, presumption, blood and confusion, as we have declared in our First Book" 1 , and would gladly thereby uphold the pope's 1 Bell, de Rom. Pont., lib. v. cap. 10. ' Calvin. Instit.lib. iv. cap. 11. [See § Tertio objicit. [See note QQ.] note RR.] k Ibid. cap. 10. § Quarto objicit. [See ■» [Chap, xxxii. p. 58.] also note QQ.] overall's convocation book. 163 regalities. These are his words : ' Although perhaps it were BOOK absolutely better that bishops should deal with spiritual — ^— matters, and kings with temporal; yet in respect of the malice of times, experience doth cry that some temporal principalities were not only profitable, but also of necessity ; and by the singular providence of God given to the bishop of Rome and to other bishops. For if in Germany the bishops had not been princes, none had continued to this day in their seats".' As therefore in the Old Testament, 'the High-Priests were for a long time without temporal authority or empire, and yet in the later times religion could not have continued and been defended except the High-Priests had been Icings (that is, in the time of the Maccabees ;) so we see it hath fallen out to the Church, that she, which in her first times had no need of temporal principality to defend her majesty, doth now seem necessarily to have need of it.' As though he should have said, Now that the church of Rome hath in her pride and presumption, determined still to tyran- 201 nize over all, both kings", priests, kingdoms and churches, contrary to the rules and prescription of our Saviour Christ and of His blessed Apostles ; the popes must needs be tem- poral kings. Thus far we have followed the cardinal ; who is bold to affirm that neither St. Peter, nor the popes, his pretended successors, nor any other of the Apostles, nor of their suc- cessors, archbishops, or bishops, nor any other minister, nor all the ministers in the world, if they were together, do succeed Christ, as He was after His resurrection or ascension, a man immortal and glorious ; but only as He was a mortal man, and lived here in that estate upon the earth, without the enjoying of any temporal kingdom or regal possessions ; contenting Himself to be only a spiritual king, and to have in this world a spiritual kingdom, that is, His Church, so termed, because he ruleth only in those mens' hearts which are true members of it; the Gospel also being named Evan- [Mat. 4, 23; gelium regni, because it containeth the doctrine of our Messiah and spiritual King, and how He doth establish His spiritual kingdom in and amongst men. Of which " Bell, de Kom. Pont, lib. v. cap. 9. ° [all kings. /).} § Denique probatur. [See note SS..] M 2 164 OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. BOOK spiritual kingdom some little further consideration, and how — our Saviour Christ obtained it, and then did and still doth govern it, will make the folly of those men more apparent, which cannot apprehend the excellency of it, except it have joined with it all worldly principalities and authority. None is ignorant, that hath any sense of Christianity, how all men by nature were the children of wrath ; and how, before they Eph. 2. 2. embraced Christ by faith, ' they walked according to the course of this world, and after the prince that ruleth in the air, even the spirit that still worketh in the children of dis- Rom. 13. obedience.' Which wicked spirit, being termed 'the spirit of darkness,' all his subjects and servants, and whatsoever Eph. 5. ii. they take in hand, are called the 'children and works of darkness.' From whose service, had not our Saviour Christ delivered us, and by subduing and vanquishing this wicked prince, taken actually the possession of our hearts, where the 202 devil before reigned, we had been still in the state of wrath Eph. 5. & and damnation. Whereas now ' through grace and by faith, Christ dwelling in our hearts, we are no more darkness, but Gal. 5. light in the Lord :' nor are to hold any longer ' fellowship with the unfruitful works of darkness, or etf the flesh ; but are bound, being replenished with God's Holy Spirit, to bring forth the fruits and operations of the same.' To this van- quishment of Satan, by our Saviour Christ, these Scriptures Lu. 11. following have relation. 'If I, by the finger of God, do cast ]j c _'' ' out devils, doubtless the kingdom of God is come unto you. When a strong man armed keepeth his palace, the things which he possesseth are in peace ; but when a stronger than he cometh upon him, and overcometh him, he taketh from him all his armour, wherein he trusted, and divideth the Joh. 12.31. spoils.' Again; 'Xowis the judgment of this world; now shall the prince of this world be cast out.' And again; Col. 1. ' We cease not to pray for you, &c. That you might walk 9 ' &c - worthy of the Lord, &c. Giving thanks to God the Father, &c. Who hath delivered us from the power of darkness, and hath translated us into the kingdom of His dear Son, in Whom we have redemption through His blood.' Again; Col. 2. ' Christ putting out the hand-writing of ordinances, that was 14, 15. against us, &c. He took it out of the way, and fastened it upon the cross, and hath spoiled the principalities and powers, 165 and hath made a shew of them openly, and hath triumphed BOOK over them in Himself. 5 And lastly, ' He that committeth sin — is of the devil, for the devil sinneth from the beginning/ 1Joh - 38 - For ' this purpose appeared the Son of God, that He might loose the works of the devil.' Now our Saviour Christ did, by fulfilling the Law for us, and the sacrifice of Himself once offered upon the cross, vanquish both the devil, death, and hell; to the end, that ' as many as believed in Him, might not perish, but have [joh. s. life everlasting.' And therefore knowing faith to be the 16 '-' means of so unspeakable a benefit, He vouchsafed to be not 203 only our Priest, but our heavenly Prophet; labouring, by preaching and miracles, to beget faith in the hearts of His hearers, that, Satan being expelled thence, He Himself with His Father might abide and make Their mansion in them. To the performance of which most admirable work, how our Saviour Christ, being equal with His Father, became a ser- [phii.2.7.] vant for our sakes, as it was the will of God, whereunto, of His own accord, He conformed Himself, and what a poor estate He held whilst He was upon the earth; how He was born in poverty, lived in poverty, and died in poverty ; how maliciously and scornfully He was oftentimes entreated ; how as, when He spake the truth, His enemies said he ' bias- [Mat. 9. phemed;' so, when He cast out devils, they told Him that 3 ' "'"'-' ' He cast them out by Beelzebub, the prince of the devils ;' Mat. 12. how in the whole course of His life He was so far from being a temporal king, or having possession of any regal state, as He had not so much as an house of His own to rest His head in, but was glad to lodge now with one man and then [Mat. & with another, as the occasions and times served ; and how in the end, He was content to satisfy the malice of His enemies, by submitting Himself for our sakes, unto the death of the cross, it were a needless labour for us to pursue ; the Evan- gelists have so plainly set down all these particulars, and many more besides to that purpose. Likewise it shall be sufficient for us sparingly to recount how our Saviour Christ was not only content to preach and work miracles Himself, for the conversion of those that heard Him ; but did to the same end, as well before His passion as after, authorize likewise His twelve Apostles and seventy disciples to preach and work 166 overall's convocation book, book strange miracles ; and furthermore did ordain a succession II. of the ministry, for the increasing of this His kingdom unto the end of the world ; Himself never forsaking His Church and ministers, but still assisting them in that their spiritual charge which He had committed unto them. For although that He Himself by His death and passion hath vanquished 204 Satan and ruleth in the hearts of the faithful, yet by reason of our infirmities and weakness of faith, and through the [i Pet 5. malice of the devil, who never ceaseth, ' like a roaring Hon to seek whom he may devour,' this spiritual kingdom of Christ is but now begun in us, and upheld in us by the most mer- ciful hand of our Saviour Christ through the operation of the Holy Ghost and by the labour of the ministry ; but in the end, through the virtue of Christ's passion shall be brought l Cor. 15. to pass that which is written, ' Death is swallowed up in victory. O death, where is thy sting? O hell, where is thy victory ? The sting of death is sin ; the strength of sin is the Law ; but thanks be unto God, Which hath given us vic- Rev. 20. tory through our Lord Jesus Christ.' And again, 'Death, hell and the devil shall be cast into the lake of fire and brimstone.' In the mean while, and during the time of this our pilgrimage, we are, for the continuance of Christ's [Eph. 3. ' dwelling in our hearts,' to follow the counsel and direction Epil. 4. 27. °f the Holy Ghost, that in no sort ' we give any place unto Jas. 4. 7. the devil ;' but that ' we resist him with all the force we are able, for in so doing he will fly from us.' And for our better resistance, that we might be able to stand against the assaults of Satan, we have a notable and a complete armour appointed us by the said Holy Spirit, which is agreeable to the nature of the enemies we have to fight with ; for, saith Eph.6. n, the holy Apostle, 'we wrestle not against flesh and blood: 12 - but against principalities, against powers, and against worldly governors, the princes of darkness of this world; against spiritual wickednesses which are in the high places.' And thus we have a brief and short idea of the spiritual kingdom of Christ ; whereof, when the Apostles, after they were replenished with the Holy Ghost upon the day of Pentecost, had full understanding and notice, they never dreamed, for aught that appeareth to the contrary in the Scriptures, of any worldly pre-eminence or principalities ; overall's convocation book. 167 who should sit here, and who should sit there ; but con- book 205 tented themselves with the same estate and condition of life IL that their Master had led before them; remembering how He had described the same unto them when He first sent them to preach amongst the Jews. 'Behold/ saith He unto Mat. 10. them, ' I send you as sheep in the midst of wolves. Beware [i^fTs, of men ; for they will deliver you up to the councils, and ^'-, 23> 24, will scourge you in the synagogues. And ye shall be brought to the governors and kings, for My sake, in wit- ness to them and to the Gentiles. And ye shall be hated of all men for My sake. "When they persecute you in this city, fly into another. The disciple is not above his master, Lu. 6. 40. nor the servant above his lord. If they have called the master of the house Beelzebub, how much more them of his household ? Whosoever will be a perfect disciple, shall be as his master/ ' Verily, verily, I say unto you, that ye shall Joh.i6.20. weep and lament, and the world shall rejoice.' ' The time j h. 16. 2. shall come, that whosoever killeth you, will think that he doth God service.' And as Christ did thus foretell them, so it came to pass. For no sooner did they begin to preach the Gospel, after the ascension of Christ, but they were whipped, scourged, cast into prison, bound with chains, and most cruelly entreated. St. Paul doth testify somewhat hereof, when writing in the name both of himself and of the rest of the Apostles and ministers, he saith thus ; ' In all 2 Cor. 6. things we approve ourselves as the ministers of God; in much patience, in afflictions, in necessities, in distresses, in stripes, in prisons, in tumults, in labours ; by watchings, by fastings, by long sufferings, by dishonour, by evil report ; as deceivers, and yet true ; as unknown, and yet known ; as dying, and behold we live.' Besides, that which he speaketh of his own particular condition, doth argue the estate and condition of his fellows ; though one would have thought that little more could have been added to the barbarous cruelty last mentioned to have been executed upon them. For comparing himself and his pains, with certain false brethren that were crept into the Church amongst the 206 Apostles, and sought for their own commendation to impair the credit of this our Apostle, he writeth in this manner. ' Thev are ministers of Christ : I am more : in labours more 2 Cov. n. J 23, [—28.] 168 overall's convocation book. book abundant, in stripes above measure, in prison more plente- : — ously. Of the Jews five times received I forty stripes, save one ; I was thrice beaten with rods, I was once stoned, I suffered thrice shipwreck, night and day have I been in the deep sea; in journeying I was often, in perils of water, in perils of robbers, in perils of mine own nation, in perils amongst the Gentiles, in perils in [the] wilderness, in perils in the sea, in perils among false brethren; in weariness and painfulness, in watching often, in hunger and thirst, in fastings often, in cold and nakedness. Besides these things which are outward, I am cumbered daily, and have the care of all the churches/ Much is not written of St. Peter by the Evangelist St. Luke ; but it is not to be doubted that his case was as bad Acts4. 21; as any of his fellows. When he began to preach he was ' ' called in question with great eagerness, and vehemently threatened; also, with some other of the Apostles, he was cast into prison and beaten. Likewise when James was killed by Herod's commandment, Peter was again im- prisoned, and loaden with irons; and had assuredly, in all likelihood, escaped hardly with his life, but that the Angel of Acts 12. 4. the Lord delivered him. In a word, after many afflictions, injuries, calamities and miseries, endured by the Apostles whilst they lived in this world, they were in the end, as well St. Peter as almost all the rest, most spitefully and cruelly, by the enemies of Christ and of their own salvation, put to death. During the course of whose lives, in so great dangers and manifold distresses, out of question they would greatly have marvelled, their hard estates considered, but especially St. Peter, if he had known himself to be the sole monarch, under Christ, over all the world, and that the emperor, and all other kings, had been at that time his vassals ; and that likewise they, the rest of the Apostles, had been, under St. 207 Peter, so many sovereign and temporal princes, to have com- manded and ruled amongst them throughout the whole world. Neither do we see any true cause that might have moved St. Peter to have concealed that his so eminent temporal power and authority, if he had thought it to have been the ordinance of God ; or, at least, if he for modesty would have been silent, why the rest of the Apostles should overall's convocation book. 169 not have published it, that the civil and temporal states in B O K those times, who knew no such ordination made by Christ, — — — might have been left inexcusable. Besides, the concealing of a truth of so great importance was an injury offered to all the faithful in those days, who, had they been truly taught in these men's conceits, ought to have left their obedience to the emperor in all temporal causes; and for the dignity of the Gospel, to have adhered unto St. Peter, to have been directed in them by him, their temporal monarch. The con- sideration of all which inconveniences and consequents doth persuade us to think that none of the Apostles ever dreamed of any such temporal sovereignty, notwithstanding that they knew well the Scriptures, how Christ told them that all power in heaven and earth was given unto him, how St. Peter had two swords, and how Ananias and Sapphira, for lying to the Holy Ghost, were stricken suddenly from heaven with death. Touching the two first of which places, the same being notoriously abused and wrested by the Canonists and their adherents, to prove the pope's temporal monarchy, the said cardinal doth very resolutely reject the arguments which are thence by them deduced. And to the first he answereth ; Potestatem, de qua hie loquitur Dorninus, non esse potestatem temporalem, ut regnum terrenorum, sed vel tantum spiritualem, ut B. Hieronymus et B. Anselmus exponunt, qui hunc esse 208 volunt sensum eorurn verborum, — 'Data est Mihi omnis potestas in ccelo, et in terra,,' — id est, ut sicut in ccelo Rex sum Angelorum, ita per fidem regnem in cordibus hominum; vel, ut addit Theo- phylactus, esse potestatem quandam sumrnam in omnes crea- turas, non temporalem, sed divinam, vel divinrn simillimam, quce non potest communicari homini mortali p • ' That the power, whereof the Lord here speaketh, is not a temporal power, like the power of terrene kings ; but it is either a spiritual power, as St. Hierome and St. Anselm do expound the said place, who will have this to be the sense of these words, — ' All power is given unto Me in heaven and earth/ — which is to say, that as in heaven I am King of Angels, so by faith I do reign in the hearts of men; or as Theophylact addeth, it is a f Bell, de Rom. Pont., lib. v. cap. 5. § Sed occurrunt. [See note TT.] 170 overall's convocation book. BOOK certain supreme power? over all creatures, not temporal but : — divine, or most like to the divine power, which cannot be communicated to any mortal man. And for the second argument, drawn from St. Peter's two swords, the same is set down by our said cardinal in these words : Secundo, objiciunt Scripturam, Luc. 22. ubi Dominus duos gladios Petro concedit. Cum enim discipuli dicerent, — ' Ecce, duo gladii hie ;' Dominus non ait, ' Nimis est,' sed '■ Satis est.' Quare B. Bernardus 1. 4. de Consid., et Bonifacius Octavus in Extravag. Unam sanctam, de Majoritate et Obe- dientid, ex hoc loco deducunt, pontificem duos gladios ex Christi institutione habere 1 ; that is, 'Secondly, they object the Scripture, Luc. 22, where the Lord doth grant two swords to Peter. For when the disciples said, — 'Behold, here are two swords, — the Lord answered not, ' They are too many/ but, ' They are sufficient.' Therefore St. Bernard, and Boni- face the Eighth, do hence deduce, that the bishop of Rome by Christ's institution, hath two swords/ Unto which objec- tion our cardinal saith thus : Respondeo, ad liter am nullavi fieri, mentionem in eo loco Evangelii de gladio spirituali vel temporali pontificis, sed solum Dominum illis verbis monere voluisse discipu- los tempore passionis Sua in Us angustiis et metu ipsosfuturos fuisse, in quibus esse solent qui tunicam vendunt ut emant gla- 209 dium; ut ex Theophylacto aliisquePatribus colligitur s : 'I answer, that according to the letter, there is no mention made in that place of the Gospel, either of the spiritual or temporal sword of the bishop of Rome ; but that Christ meant only in those words to admonish His disciples how they should be, in the time of His passion, in those straits and fear wherein men are accustomed to be, who sell their coat to buy them a sword, as it is to be collected out of Theophylact and other Fathers.' And for Bernard and Boniface he saith, * They did expound the said place mystically, and meant not to have their words so far extended, as the objector would have them 4 .' Which answer, it is likely Bernard, if he were now alive, would take in good part ; but assuredly if any cardinal in Bonifacius his days had made it, he would have smarted for it, and might ' [supreme power,not temporal. /).] * [See note VV.] r Bell, de Rom. Pont, lib. v. cap. 5. • [See note WW.] § Secundo objiciunt. [See note UU.] overall's convocation book. 171 perhaps have tried the depth of Tiber. Neither do we sup- BOOK pose that the now pope will give him any great thanks for : — it; or that in all likelihood he hath received any greater commendation for his plain dealing in an answer to another ■objection, which is grounded upon the authority of pope Nicholas, who in an Epistle of his to Michael, the emperor of Constantinople, doth write thus; Christus Beato Petro, vitce aternce clavigero, terreni simul et ccelestis imperii jura com- misit n : 'Christ did commit to St. Peter, the key-hearer of everlasting life, the right and interest both of the earthly and of the heavenly empire.' To which saying of pope Nicholas the cardinal maketh two answers : Ad testimonium Nicolai dico, imprimis, illud (Atari a Gratiano d. 22. Can. Omnes ; sed non inveniri inter epistolas Nicolai papce* ; ' To the testimony of pope Nicholas, I answer, first, that the same is cited by Gratian, but it is not to be found amongst the epistles of pope Nicholas.' As if he should have said, that testimony is forged. And the effect of his second answer y is, 'that if any shall urge 2 that testimony of pope Nicholas in the sense ob- 2lOJected, they make him directly repugnant to himself in the rest of the said epistle.' And concerning the other argument by our said Canonist alleged, of the death of Ananias and Sapphira, the ancient Fathers in the primitive Church would certainly have scorned it, if ever they had heard of it. Peter, knowing by the instinct of the Holy Ghost that Satan had possessed both their hearts, and how they lied not to men, but to God, did only pronounce that sentence of death upon them which the Holy Spirit did suggest unto him. "Wherein although there may appear what force the sword of the Spirit, which is the [Eph. 6. word of God, had, when it was brandished by St. Peter, ' J through the operation of the Holy Ghost, there was assuredly no use of any material and civil sword; for if there had, another manner of form of outward justice would first have been held before they had been executed. And to conclude this point, we do freely profess that the nature of Christ His spiritual kingdom being throughly weighed, we cannot find " Bell, de Rom. Pont. ibid. § Ad ' [See note ZZ.] testimonium. [See note XX.] z [' if any man shall urge.' Z>.] * [See note YY.] 172 overall's convocation book. book to what purpose either St. Peter, or any of his successors, '• — should have been made temporal monarchs over all the civil magistrates in the world ; because all their temporal forces and swords joined together had not been able to have van- quished one wicked spirit of the air, or have opened the door of any one man's heart for Christ or the Holy Ghost to have entered and have made Their habitation in it. CANON VIII. If therefore ang man shall affirm, unber colour of 8115211 thing that is in the Scriptures, cither that our Sbabiour ©firist hatft otherwise committeb the worlb to be goberneb unber f^im bg kings anb sobereip princes, hut so as f^e himself, fotth |^is regal sceptre, both rule anb gobern them all, arcorbing to f^is hibine pleasure; or, that it is not a sounb argument that the bishops of Home, in talcing upon them to he temporal kings, babe foftollg perberteb the insti- tution of Christ in that befialf, in that tfieg are brtben to justifg tfieir facts therein bg tfie examples of tfie Jttacca- bees, anb tfiose times of so great confusion; or, that our Sbabiour ©ftrist, fofiilst |^e mas fiere upon the earth, trih not fulls content f^imself to be onlg a spiritual Minq, to rule in men's fiearts; or, that to the enb f^e might erect such a spiritual kingbom, f^e ha not conquer the bebil, sin, bratj), anb bell, anb thereby took possession in the hearts of all true beliebers; or, that before our Sbabiour ©hrist both begin to reign in man's heart, f^e both not first, fig tfte ministrg of f^fs foorb, heget a libelg faith t'n it; or, that fobilst |^e Itbtb here in the foorlb, $^e tiilr not 212 satisfg himself, for our sakes, fottfi a berg mean anb poor estate, being in himself most rich, because ffie was ©oh, anb in f^is ftumanitg, tfte fieir of all things ; or, that f^e hib not institute anb orbain a priestftoob, or ministrg, to con- tinue till the enb of tfte worlb, for tfte continuance anb aug- menting of f^is spiritual kingbom ; or, tfiat tfte cfiilbren of CBfob, notwtt&stanbing tfiat theg are rebecmeb tfirough faitft bg 173 ©firist, anij treliberefc out of tfie f afos of fiell antr £batan, are boo k not still to tafte fteetr antr befoare of fiitn, antr to arm tfiem= n " - gelbcs accortfiuglg against fits forces; or, tfiat our Sbabiour ©firist, tofien ?^e tola f^is Apostles antr tit'sct'plcs tfiat tfie serbant is not abobe fit's Iorlf, But tfiat tofiosoeber tooultr be a perfect tiisciple sfioultr be as fit's master, Ufa not mean tfiat ^is apostles, antr after tfiem tfietr successors, arcfibt'sfiops, bt'sfiops, anti tfie rest of tfie ministrg, sfioulti fiolti tfietr serbtces antr offices untrer |^fnt a , to tro as $^e tjftr tofien f^e toas a mortal jfttlan of poor estate antr subfect to mang batr usages antr t'n= Juries ; or, tfiat because our Sbabfour CDfirist, after 3%'s resur- rection antr ascension, tofien f^e foas become a JWan immortal 213 an& glorious, JjfU tfien enlarge tfie commission of $^is &po= sties, antr ortratnetr bg tfiem a succession of tfie ministrg for tfie gobernment of f^is GCfiurcfi, f^e trfo tfierebg mafee tfiem ang more partakers of ffii% regal autfioritg, tofiereof f^is fiuman nature toas tfien actuallg possessed, for tfie state antr exercise tfiereof, bg reason of tfie free antr unrestraineti operation of f^is Deitg, tfian fi^e matte tfieir natural antr corruptible botrieg incorrupt antr spiritual boiJtes, or entrotoetr tfiem in tfiis life toitfi ang of tfiat glorg, potoer, an& fieabenlg estate, tofiicfi tfieg toere to enfog after tfieir tieatfis antr blessetr resurrection ; or, tfiat tfie Apostles after GCfirist's tieatfi, not exempting §bt. ^eter, tritr not fintr tfieir estates in tfiis toorltf berg suitable to tfieir JWaster's, tofiilst |^e libetr foitfi tfiem, all tfiings fiappen- ing unto tfiem as ^e fiatr foretoltr tfiem ; or, tfiat ettfier &t. |ieter, or ang of tfie Apostles, or of tfieir successors, eitfier tfien, or since tfiat time, coultr cfiallenge so mucfi as tfiis or tfiat one temporal farm, bg birtue of tfieir ecclesiastical func- tions, more tfian tfieir JWaster fiatr, or tfien eitfier c tfieg toere tfiemselbes possessed toitfi, as tfieir oton, before tfieg toere calletr to tfiat ministration, or tfian toas aftertoartrs gtben unto 214 tfiem bg goblg emperors, Sings, antr princes, antr otfier trebout • [Pro, offices under Him, as He possessed for the state and exercise was a mortal Man, lege, offices under thereof, by reason of the free and un- Him, to do as He did when He was restrained operation of His Deity. Cor- &c. Correction in Overall's hand.] rection in D. in Overall's hand- b [Pro, was then possessed by reason writing.] of His Deity, lege, was then actually c [that either. D.~\ 174 overall's convocation book. b oo k anir religious persons; or, tfiat if Sbt peter fiair ftnown fiimself '■ — to fiabe been, unirer ©firist, tfie sole temporal monarch of tfie worltf, ft fiair not been fits butj) to fiabe maire tfie same known, at least to tfie Apostles anir sucfi as were conberteir to ©firist, to tfie enir tfieg migfit fiabe fionoureir fiim accoriringlg, as fits Buttful anir logal subjects ; or, tfiat it fiair not in all probabi= litg, if £>t. peter meant to sfiew fiimself to be a temporal fting, bg tfie ireatfis of Ananias anil Sbappfiira, been mucfi more tx= peirient for tfie success of tfie ffiospel in tfiose irags if fie fiair useir sucfi fiis regal autfioritg against tfiose cibil magistrates fofiicfi were enemies to ©firist anir to all tfiat preacfieir in $^is name ; or, tfiat it mag be rigfitlg imagined, foitfi our irutiful regarir of Jbt. Jeter's sincerity, tfiat eber fie fcooultr fiabe been so earnest foitfi tfie fcisperseir SeWs, to fiabe submittetj tfiem= [i Pet. 2. selbes for tfie Horif's safee unto Sings anir otfier gobernors, to fiabe obegeir tfiem anir fionoureir tfiem, if fie fiair fenown tfiem to fiabe fiair no temporal autfioritg d , because tfieg iriir not acftnob> leirge tfiemselbes to be fits bassals ; or, tfiat it iriir not proceeir from tfie great foisirom of ffioir, to abrttrge in tfie Apostles of GCfirist, eben in §bt. peter fiimself, tfiat great power anir au= tfioritg wfit'cfi ©firist fiair, as appearetfi bg |^is foorirs,fofien |^e 215 satir tfiat if f^e fiair tfiougfit it fit, f^e coulir fiabe tfoelbe legions [Mat. 26. of Angels at ff^is commanirment, to fiabe irefenireir f^im from 53] all fiat's enemies, tfie Scribes anir pfiartsees, witfi all tfieir partakers, in tfiat perfiaps tfie Apostles, eben Sbt. peter fiim= self, migfit fiabe abuseir it ; or, tfiat it is not more tfian pro= bable tfiat fiofosoeber Sbr. peter Wottlii fiabe useir tfie saiir power anir autfioritg, if fie fiair fiair it, if tfie bisfiops of 3ftome fiair receibeir it from fitm, tfieg Woulir certainlg fiabe maire great fiaboc anir confusion in tfie worlii Witfi it ; or, tfiat if all tfie feings anir sobereign princes in tfie worlii fiaii been subject to Sbt. peter anir Were tfiereupon in tfie Itfte subjection to tfie bisfiops of Iftome, tfieg, botfi §bt. peter anir fiis successors, migfit not fiabe fiair reairg at tfieir commanirment, if lungs anir princes fiair irone tfieir iruties, more tfian twelbe legions, to fiabe 11 [to have had temporal authority. D.~\ overall's CONVOCATION book. 175 confounireii all men rtjat sboulif babe in'sobegeir tbem; or, book tbat tberefore ft is not as absurii an imagination anft conceit - — — — for ang man to tbinfc tbat ©firtst iri& gibe so great temporal autboritg eitfjer to £>t. peter or ang of fits successors ober temporal feings anil princes, tbat tbeg migbt babe so great 216 armies, fofien tbeg list, at tbeir Directions, as if ang man sboulit fiolb tbat because tbeg are ©firist's bicars tbeg mag babe tfoelbe legions from fteaben to iio tbem serbice, if perftaps temporal feings anif princes sboulif be negligent or refuse to be at sucfi cfiarges at tbeir commandment ; or, tbat it is not a fcinif of matmess, tbe true nature of ©bust's spiritual fting= Horn anir ©burcb bew upon eartb consiifereif, for ang man to conceibe, anif tbereupon maintain, tbat ang sucb omnipotencg of temporal pomer in &t. peter eber mas, or eber sball be, abailable to banquisb tbe irebil, or remobe bim out of bis palace, or to spoil bim of all bis principalities, or to beget faitb in tbe cbilton of Cffoir, or to erect in tbeir bearts a tabernacle for ©brist anif tbe l^olg ffibost; iobicb are onlg tbe peculiar anir proper actions of our Sabfour GCbnst, as |^e is our spiritual ming, anir of &>t. peter anir tbe rest of tbe Apostles, foitb all tbeir successors in tbeit iregrees, anil as tbeg are |^is spiritual ministers, be i>°tb greatlg err. 217 CHAP. X. THE SUM OF THE CHAPTER FOLLOWING. That the bishops of Rome have no temporal authority indirectly, over kings and princes, throughout the Christian world, to depose them from their kingdoms for any cause whatsoever. Because we have been bold to use the authority of the cardinalized Jesuit against the ridiculous Canonists, and their companions, the new sectaries of the Oratory-Congre- 176 overall's convocation book. BOOK gation, concerning the pope's temporal authority over all : — kings and princes in the world directly ; we may not do him so much injury as once to pretend that he favoureth either us, or any point of truth, for our sakes, that we defend. It may rather be ascribed unto him for a singular virtue, his bringing up and course of life considered, if he study not to impugn it with all the strength that he hath, either of his wit or learning. Nevertheless, albeit he hath travelled exceedingly in his books De Romano Pontifice, to advance the papacy to his uttermost ability, and had no purpose therein, we are well assured, to give us any advantage, who do oppose ourselves against the whole drift of those his books ; yet he hath so mustered and marshalled his matters and forces together, as whilst he endeavoured to fortify the pope's authority, and to encounter the assaults that have been made against it, he hath done more for us, against his will, to the prejudice of his master, whom he laboured to uphold, than we could ever have expected at his hands. Insomuch, as we are verily persuaded the time will come before it be long, that his works will be 218 thrust into the catalogue Librorum prohibitorum* ? because, dealing with our arguments as he did in the said books De Romano Pontifice, and thinking that he would no further yield to the truth, by way of objection, than as he should be able sufficiently to refel it, it hath fallen out f with him, as it will ever do with all impostors, that the very meaning of the truth, according to the nature of it, hath, notwithstanding all his cunning, very much prevailed against him, to the ever- lasting glory of her own name, and forcible strength to dis- cover errors, bke to the sun's to expel darkness. We will not here otherwise make proof hereof, than, as by the matter we have in hand and are purposed to prosecute, we are after a sort urged and compelled. For albeit he hath hitherto seemed to have joined with us, as he hath indeed, more than now, we are persuaded, he doth well vouchsafe, yet foresee- ing what tempests he was otherwise like to have endured, in affirming so peremptorily as he did, that the pope had no temporal authority at all, as he was either Christ's or St. Peter's vicar ; he minced his matter in the titles of his • [See note AAA.] ' [it hatb often fallen out. /).] overall's convocation book. 177 chapters to that purpose with the word directe, whereof in BOOK his reasons he never made mention ; and then falleth upon ... Ir - this issue, that indirect^, the pope hath authority over all emperors, kings, and sovereign princes, to hurry them hither and thither, to depose and remove them from their regal estates and dignities, to dispose of their kingdoms according to his own pleasure, to release their subjects of their oaths and obedience, and to thrust them into all rebellions, treasons, furies and what not, against them. In the which his course this is our comfort, that by direct dealing the cardinal did find no ways or means how to withstand the truth, but is driven by indirect shifts and by-paths to oppose his labours, we fear, reclamante conscientid, how, to save his own worldly 219 credit he might cast a mist upon the truth, if not to depress it, which was not in his power, yet at the least to obscure it, to darken it and perplex it. Some of the principal reasons which he hath used to this purpose mentioned, are of this kind and consequence. 'Bona corporis e , the good things that do appertain to the body, as health especially, are to be preferred before bona fortuna, as the philosophers call them, that is, riches and all other worldly dignities and preferments whatsoever ; there- fore the calling of physicians, the end whereof is the health of men's bodies, is to be preferred before all other temporal callings that are in the world. Or thus ; natural parents, be they emperors, kings, or sovereign princes, do give unto their children their natural being only, but schoolmasters do adorn by instruction, and beautify their minds ; therefore school- masters are more to be honoured by young lords and princes, than are their lords or kings, their natural parents. Or thus ; one end why men were first created, and afterwards born, be they kings or princes, priests or private persons, was to five in this world; but for the supporting of men's lives, hus- bandry and many other occupations are of greater import- ance and necessity than are either kings, princes, lords, or civil magistracy ; therefore those men's base callings are to be preferred before the callings of the other. Or, as if a man should reason thus ; they that have the chiefest charge of souls committed unto them are to be esteemed as men in this « Bell, de Rom. Pont., lib. v. cap. 6. [See note BBB.] OVERALL. N 178 overall's convocation book. book world of the highest calling ; but all Christians generally have : — every one of them a greater charge committed unto them of their own souls than any sort of priests or ministers have ; therefore every Christian is in that respect, in calling and dignity, to be preferred before the calling of any one pastor, priest, prelate, or pope.' Now after he hath dallied with such 220 like sophistications' 1 and comparisons betwixt the body and t the soul, the flesh and the spirit, he falleth upon some par- ticulars, the more fully, as he saith, to express what he had formerly delivered. The sum of which particulars is', that although the pope, as he is pope, cannot ordinarii, ordinarily depose temporal princes, or make civil laws, or judge de rebus temporalibus ; yet in or dine ad spiritualia, he may do them all. And this he taketh upon him to prove by five main rea- sons, grounded, God knoweth, upon very weak foundations. Of which his odd number, for the glory of them, this which followeth is the first k . ' Civil power is subject to spiritual power when they are both part of a Christian commonwealth ; therefore the spiritual princes may command temporal princes, and dispose of their temporal affairs in ordine ad bonum spirituale, in order to a spiritual good/ The antecedent of which argument may briefly be refuted, for aught that he hath said to justify it, in manner as followeth. For in saying that this subjection of the temporal power to the spiritual is but where both these powers are part of one and the same Christian commonwealth, he maketh the estate of Christian kings and princes inferior and worse than the estate of those that be infidels, whose political power, being no part of any Christian commonwealth, is not subject to the ecclesiastical. Again, to prefer the ecclesiastical authority of the Church, for honour and dignity in this world, before the temporal authority of kings and princes, is, in effect, to prefer the poor and base estate of our Saviour Christ, as He was a mortal man here upon earth, subject to many wants, oppressions, and injuries, before the glory and majesty of His divine nature ; in that kings have their authority and calling from Christ as He is God; whereas all ministers, even St. Peter himself, and conse- h [such sophistications. Z).] [See note CCC] 1 Bell, de Rom. Pont., lib. v. cap. 6. k Ibidem, cap. 7. [See note DDD.] overall's convocation book. 179 quently the pope, are but Christ's vicars and substitutes, as book 221 He was man, subject to the said wants, miseries and oppres- n - sions. Moreover, in that every soul, by the testimony of St. Paul, is subject to the power and authority of temporal [Rom. 13. princes, and that they must so be, not ' because of wrath only, '-' but also for conscience sake;' forasmuch as the points of subjection there specified are commanded to all men to be observed, et sacerdotibus, et monachis, non solum smcularibus, ' to bishops and monks, and not to secular priests only,' as Chrysostom saith 1 by our interpretation, adding to these words of the Apostle, ' Let every soul be subject to the higher powers,' Etiamsi Apostolus sis, si evangelista, si pro- pheta, sive quisque tandem fueris, — 'although thou art an Apostle, or an evangelist, or a prophet, or whosoever thou art;' — and because, for aught we have read, none of the ancient Fathers do herein dissent from Chrysostom, we hold it to be very plain and evident to our understandings, that the ecclesiastical authority to be exercised in this world by any manner of ecclesiastical persons whosoever, is inferior and of a lower degree than is the authority and power of temporal kings and princes. For if the authority of such ecclesiastical persons, whether Apostles, evangelists, prophets, bishops, or priests, either regular or secular, cannot exempt them from the authority of kings, it must follow of necessity that it is subject and inferior to their temporal power and authority. Another of the cardinal's reasons, whereby he would gladly prove the pope's indirect temporal power, to omit the rest of his absurd trifling about the first, is built upon a very traiterous position, never heard of in the Church in the times of the principal ancient Fathers. For how earnest soever he seemed before in refuting their opinions who hold that no princes are to be obeyed if they be infidels, he thinketh he is able to shift off that in effect with his juggling and indi- 222 rect fetches. These are his traiterous words" 1 : ' It is not lawful for Christians to tolerate a king, being an infidel or an here- tic, if he endeavour to draw his subjects unto his heresy or infidelity ; but to judge whether a king do draw his subjects ' Chrysost Horn, in c. xiii. ad Rom. m Bell, de Rom. Pont., lib. v. a. 7. [See note EEK] [See note FFF.] N 2 180 BOOK to heresy or no, doth helong to the pope, unto whom is com- : — mitted the charge of religion ; and therefore it belongeth to the pope to judge whether a king is to be deposed or not.' Concerning the assumption of this argument, touching the presupposed charge of the pope in matters of religion over all the churches in the world, we shall have a fitter occasion to touch it, after a sort, in the next chapter; now we will only briefly handle the falsehood of his proposition, ' of the power of subjects over their sovereigns/ "Where, after he [Deut 17. hath abused a place of Deuteronomy, and spent some idle conceits of his own, he writeth in this sort: 'Although Christians in times past did not depose Nero, and Diocletian, and Julian the Apostata, and Valens the Arrian, and such like, id fuit quia deerant vires temporales Christianis; it came to pass because Christians did then want temporal forces. For that otherwise they might lawfully so have done, appeareth by the Apostle, 1 Cor. vi. [l.J where he command- eth new judges of temporal causes to be appointed by Christians, that Christians might not be compelled to plead their cause before a judge that was a persecutor of Christ.' Upon which text the cardinal maketh this gloss ; ' Sicut novi judices const it ui potuerunt, it a et novi prindpes et reges prop- ter eandem cav.sam, si vires adfuissent ; as new judges might have been appointed, so might new princes and kings for the same cause, if the Christians then had been able, by reason of their forces, to have created to themselves such new kings and princes.' Thus the cardinal, who undoubtedly was brought into some hard strait, as else he would never have written in this sort. St. Peter and St. Paul lived and died under Nero, who was a persecutor ; and shall we think that 223 St. Peter and St. Paul had taught the Christians in those days to have thrust Nero from his imperial seat by force of arms if they had been able ? Certainly it is a blasphemous assertion, and worthy of as great a censure as if he had termed those holy men, in plain terms, dissembling traitors, or denied the Scriptures to have been written by the inspira- tion of the Holy Ghost. Again, he himself is not ignorant how grossly he lieth, even against his own conscience, in saying that it was for want of strength that the Christians in the days of the other persecuting emperors did not rebel overall's convocation book. 181 against them, Tertullian" in express terms affirming the con- BOOK trary ; first, that they, the Christians in his time, wanted no — — — forces to have borne arms and endangered the whole empire ; and secondly, that it was far from their hearts so to do, because they had been taught otherwise by the doctrine of Christ in His holy Gospel. Besides, it is apparent that in and about Tertullian's time, these four were bishops of Rome; Victor, Zephyrinus, Calixtus, and Urbanus; so as the cardinal doth in effect cast a great imputation upon them of negligence or insincerity , that the Christians in their days, wanting neither number nor strength to have bridled their bad emperors, they, by their papal authority, did not depose them. Dioclesian began his empire about the year 288, during the time of whose government, Gaius, Marcellinus, and Marcellus, were popes, when the number of Christians was greatly increased throughout all the world ; and yet, for aught that appeareth to the contrary, no man living, either pope, priest, or prelate, did so much as then dream of this damnable doctrine. Julian the Apostata began his reign about the year of Christ 360, and Valens eight years after him ; in whose times Liberius and Damasus were bishops of Rome, which Damasus was a man that 224 wanted no courage ; nevertheless we do not read that either he or Liberius ever attempted to excommunicate or depose either of those emperors, or that they held it lawful for them so to have done. In the space of time betwixt Nero and Damasus, the most principal men of all the ancient Fathers lived, as Justhrus Martyr, Irenseus, Clemens Alexandrinus, Tertullian, Origen, Cyprian, Athanasius, Jerom, and Au- gustine; who never had learned, nor did in their times teach it for sound doctrine, either that Christians had au- thority to bear arms against their sovereigns, or that the bishops of Rome might lawfully depose kings and princes, either for heresy or for cruelty, and thrust their subjects, to serve their turns, into such furious and rebellious courses. So as it was great boldness for the cardinal of his own head to broach so palpable an untruth, especially seeing it carrieth " [See note GGG.] faultily reading ' sincerity.'] ° [Such is the reading of D, the MS. 182 overall's convocation book. book with it so many arguments to convince his want herein of all '■ — honesty, sincerity, and conscience. But why should we be so earnest with the man ? consider- ing that although it be certain that neither St. Peter nor St. Paul, nor any of the said ancient Fathers or popes, ever thought it lawful to depose such emperors and kings as before we have spoken of, when they should be able, through the numbers and forces of Christians, so to do; yet the same did proceed in the most of them from their ignorance and want of learning. ' For/ saith he, ' that Christians, if they had been able, might so have done, is apparent by the Apostle's words, where it is plain that they had authority to make judges ; and consequently, that if they had been able, they might have thrust the said wicked emperors from their thrones, and have made to themselves new kings of their own.' Assuredly the devil himself did never abuse any place of Scripture, for aught we remember, so palpably and grossly as the cardinal doth this ; and therefore we will bestow no great pains to refute him. It shall be sufficient 225 briefly to observe that in the judgments of Jerom F , Austin q , Ambrose r , and Chrysostome s , the judges which here the Apostle speaketh of, were only such as might by way of arbitrement end such suits as arose amongst Christians in those days, and not such judges as by law and authority might have compelled them to have stood to their sentences ; for that had been indeed to have encroached upon the autho- rity of the civil magistrate, which was far from the Apostle's intent and meaning. ' And therefore,' saith Theodoret', 'Sci- endum est, &c. It is to be observed that these words of choosing arbiters do not repugn to those things which are written to the Romans. For here the Apostle doth not com- mand Christians to resist the magistrates, but willeth them that are injured, not to use the magistrates ;' meaning, that it was fitter for Christians to compound their causes and quarrels amongst themselves, rather than, to the dishonour of their profession, contend before such magistrates as were infidels, and were like enough to despise and contemn them » [See note III.] » [See note MMM.] ' [See note KKK.] • Theodoret. in 1 Cor. vi. TSee ' [See note LLL.] note NNN.] overall's convocation book. 183 because they could not better agree amongst themselves, book And the cardinal's own doctor u , commenting likewise upon -- this place, doth write in this sort, ' Sed videtur, &c. But that which here is said by the Apostle doth seem to be contrary to that which St. Peter saith, Be subject to every human 1 Pet. 2. 13. creature for God, whether to king as excelling, or to rulers as sent by Him. For it doth appertain to the authority of a prince to judge of his subjects, and therefore it is against the law of God to prohibit that a subject should submit himself to the judgment-seat of his prince, if he be an infidel. Sed dicendum, &c. But it is to be answered, that the Apostle doth not here forbid but that faithful men, living under princes that are infidels, may appear in their judicial seats, if they be called ; for this were against the subjection which is 226 due unto princes : but he forbiddeth that faithful men do not of their own accord voluntarily choose the judgment-seat of infidels.' But if these authorities will not serve, we will be bold to present against him the judgment of a whole college, first published in Rhenies", and then set out again the second time by the same college at Doway, approved in both places ; at Rhemes by Petrus Remigius, Hubertus Moras, Johannes Lebesque, Guilelmus Balbus; and at Doway by Willelmus Estius, Barth. Petrus, Judocus Heylens; all of them great doctors of divinity in those places, and one a doctor of the canon law, vicar-general of the archbishoprick of Rhemes. The said college, writing upon these words, 'But brother with brother contendeth in judgment, and that before in- fidels,' saith thus y ; ' To be given much to brabbling and liti- giousness for every trifle, to spend a pound rather than lose a penny, the Apostle much reprehendeth in Christian men. For a Christian man to draw another to the judgment-seats and courts of heathen princes, which then only reigned, and not to suffer their controversies and quarrels to be taken up amongst themselves, brotherly and peaceable, was a great fault.' What the cardinal's friends will say of his perverting the Apostle's meaning with so desperate an exposition, we are uncertain ; but of this we are sure, that the estate of that " Aqu. in 1 Cor. yi. [See note y Rhem. Test, in 1 Cov. vi. 6. [See OOO.] note QQQ] 1 [See note PPP.] 184 overall's convocation book. book church must needs be very miserable that cannot be upheld '■ — without so apparent injury done to the Holy Ghost. Which observation we thought fit to make in this place, because he once having past the bounds of all modesty, or rather piety, is grown to that presumption and hardness of heart against the truth, as that he dareth to ground another of his reasons to prove that the pope hath authority indirectly to depose kings and princes, upon these words spoken to St. Peter, Pasce oves Meets, 'Feed My sheep/ Touching which words, because we have a fitter place to entreat, we will here be silent, and address ourselves to his fourth reason, as idle and 227 as false as any of the rest. These are his words 2 . 'When kings and princes come to the Church that they may be made Christians, they are re- ceived cum pacta expresso vel tacito, with a condition ex- pressed or implied, without any mention made of it, that they do submit their sceptres unto Christ, and do promise that they will keep and defend the faith of Christ, etiam sub pcend regni perdendi, even under pain of losing their king- doms. Therefore, when they become heretics, or do hinder religion, they may be judged by the Church, and also deposed from their principality, and there shall be no injury done unto them if they be deposed.' For answer whereof, first we say that in all the forms of baptisms which hitherto have been published, we cannot learn that there was ever any such express covenant as the cardinal here mentioneth, required of any king when he came to be christened. Baptism is the entrance, ordained by Christ, into the Church, which is His spiritual kingdom ; and agreeably to the nature of that king- dom, all who are thereby to enter into it, of what calling or condition soever they are, as well poor as rich, private persons as princes, are, according to the rules of baptism anciently practised" in all the particular churches in the world, for aught that is known to the contrary, either themselves in their own persons, or, if they be infants, by their sureties, to profess their belief in Christ, and to promise that they will forsake the devil and all his works, the vain pomp and glory of the world with all covetous desires of the same, and carnal ' [See note RRR.] * [baptism practised. Z>.] overall's convocation book. 185 desires of the flesh ; and that they constantly do believe God's book holy word, and that they will keep His commandments. The _ wilful breach of any of which points, and perseverance in it without repentance, doth indeed deprive every Christian man, 228 of what calling soever he be, from the interest he had by his said profession and promise, when he was baptized to the spiritual kingdom of Christ in this life, — that is, from being a true and lively member of the Church and mystical body of Christ, — and from the kingdom of glory in the life to come. But that any man, by the breach of any promise made when he was baptized, should lose that which he gained not by his baptism; or that the Church did never receive any king or prince to baptism, but either upon condition in express terms, or by implication made either by himself, or by his Godfathers, that he would submit his sceptre unto Christ, that is, unto the bishop of Rome, as the cardinal's drift sheweth his meaning to be, and promise to keep and defend the faith of Christ under pain of the loss of his kingdom, is certainly a doctrine of devils, and was never heard of in the Church of Christ for many hundred years ; but is utterly repugnant to the analogy of Scripture and to the true nature of Christian baptism. These secret intentions, — for, as we have said, there was never any form of baptism that con- tained any such express contract as the cardinal speaketh of, — mental reservations and hidden compacts, such as men were never taught in the primitive Church, nor ever dreamed of or suspected to be thrust into one of the holy Sacraments, may well become the impostors of Rome, but are altogether contrary to the meaning of Christ and of His holy Apostles, in whose days, he that believed was baptized in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, without any such juggling or snares laid to hazard and entangle men's tem- poral estates. There is nothing in the Gospel whereof men ought to be ashamed, or which will not abide the touchstone of truth if it be compared with the rest of the Scriptures, or that doth not promote the spiritual kingdom of Christ, it being called in that respect, Evangelium regni, 'the Gospel [Mat. 4. 23; 229 of the kingdom.' ISTow whether this underhand bargaining be suitable or no with the sincerity of the Holy Ghost, or whether, if it had been known in the primitive Church that 186 OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. b o o K all men who would submit themselves to the doctrine of the Gospel and be baptized did thereby bind themselves to be subject and at the commandment of the bishop of Rome, for the time being, under pain to lose all their worldly estates, the knowledge thereof would not rather have hindered than either promoted or furthered the good success of the Gospel, no man is so simple but he may easily discern it. Assuredly the Grecians, who did so long oppose themselves against the authority which the bishops of Rome did challenge over all churches, were ignorant of this mystical point of baptism, and so were all the churches in the world for many ages ; or else there would not have been so great stirs in the world about the continual usurpations and encroachments of the bishops of Rome, as are many ways testified by sundry ecclesiastical histories. But we insist too long upon this so ridiculous and impudent a fiction, and therefore will come to the cardinal his principal reason of the pope's said indirect temporal authority to toss kings and kingdoms up and down as he list. ' The ecclesiastical commonwealth,' saith he b , ' must be perfect and sufficient of herself, in order to her own end; for such are all commonwealths that are well instituted : and therefore she ought to have all necessary power to the ob- taining of her own end. But the power of using and dis- posing of temporal things is necessary to the spiritual end, because otherwise evil princes might, without punishment, nourish heretics and overthrow religion; and therefore the ecclesiastical commonwealth hath this power/ Hitherto the cardinal. The substance of whose argument is, that the Church of Christ cannot attain to her spiritual end except the bishop of Rome have authority to dispose of temporal kingdoms, and to punish kings by deposing them from their 230 crowns, if he hold it expedient. For the refutation of which vain and false assertion there are very many most direct and apparent arguments. We will only touch some few of them. Our Saviour Christ in His days, and the Apostles in their times, and the primitive churches for the space of three hundred years, brought the ecclesiastical commonwealth, as " [See note SSS.] overall's convocation book. 187 here it is termed, unto her spiritual end, as directly and book fully as either the bishops of Rome or any other bishops have ----- at any time done since; and yet they took no power and authority upon them, nor did challenge the same, of dis- posing of temporal kingdoms or deposing of princes. Be- sides, if such an indirect temporal power be so necessary in these days for the upholding of the ecclesiastical common- wealth, as that without the same she cannot attain the spiri- tual end, or be a perfect ecclesiastical commonwealth, when there are so many Christian kings and princes, then was the same much more necessary for the attainment of the same end, in the said times of Christ, of His Apostles, and of the churches in the ages following for three hundred years, when the civil magistrates were pagans and infidels, and for the most part, persecutors of the truth. But we hope we may be bold without offence to say, that there appeared then no such necessity of this pretended temporal power and au- thority in any ecclesiastical persons over kings and king- doms, for the disposing of them ; and that nevertheless, the ecclesiastical commonwealth in those times did attain her spiritual end, and was as perfect an ecclesiastical common- wealth as it is now under the pope's government, notwith- standing all his temporal sovereignty wherein he so ruffleth. Again, we are persuaded that it cannot be shewed out of any of the ancient Fathers, or by any general council, for the space of above five hundred years after Christ, that the 231 bishops of Rome were ever imagined to have such temporal authority to depose kings as now is maintained; much less was it ever dreamed of during that time that such authority was necessary for the attaining the spiritual end whereunto the true Church of Christ ought to aim ; or that the eccle- siastical commonwealth ordained by Christ and His Apostles could not be perfect without it. It were a miserable shift if any should either say that during all the times above mentioned, first the Apostles and then the holy bishops, martyrs, and Fathers after them, were ignorant of this new temporal power, or at least did not so throughly consider of the necessity of it as they might have done; or that whilst they lived there could indeed no such matter be collected out of the Scriptures, for that in those days 188 overall's convocation book. book the Scriptures had not received such a sense and meaning as might support the same, but that afterward, when the bishops of Rome did think it necessary to challenge to themselves such temporal authority over both kings and kingdoms, the sense and meaning of the Scripture was altered. But be this shift never so wretched or miserable, yet, for aught we perceive, they are in effect, and still will be, both in this cause and many others, driven unto it; the Scriptures being in their hands a very rule of lead and nose of wax, as in another more fit place we shall have occasion to shew. Moreover, if the bishops of Rome have this great temporal authority over kings and sovereign princes, to pre- serve the state of the Church here upon earth, that she may attain her spiritual end, assuredly he hath made little use of it to that purpose. For it is well known, and cannot be denied, that for the first three hundred years after Christ, the doctrine of the Gospel did flourish far and near, in Greece, Thracia, Sclavonia, Hungary, Asia Minor, Syria, Assyria, Egypt, and throughout the most part of Afric, where there were many very worthy apostolical and notable churches ; in the most of which places there are scarce in these days any 232 footsteps or visible monuments of them. And although afterward, during the space of above seven hundred years, much mischief was wrought in these parts of the world better known unto us than the rest, by sundry sorts of Scy- thians and northern people; yet after the days of Gregory the Seventh, when the bishops of Rome did most vaunt of this their sovereign power over kings and princes, the Turks gained and encroached more upon Christendom, still retain- ing that which they then had so gotten, than at any time before. Whereby it is to us very evident, that neither Christ nor His Apostles ever ordained that the means of building of the Church of Christ and the conservation of it should consist in the temporal power or authority of any of their successors, to deprive emperors or kings from their imperial or regal estates ; and that the bishops of Rome may be ashamed that, having had so great authority in their own hands, extorted from the emperors and other kings, per fas et nefas, since Gregory the Seventh's time, they have made no better use of it, but suffered so many famous overall's convocation book. 189 countries and kingdoms to be utterly overrun and wasted BOOK by pagans and infidels ; considering that they pretend them : — selves to have so great authority for no other purpose but only the preservation of the Church, that she might not be prevented of her spiritual end. But what should we speak of the shame of Rome, whose forehead hath been so long since hardened? or ever imagine that Almighty God either did, or will bless her usurpations and insolencies against emperors, kings, and princes, for any good to His Church, other than must accrue unto her through her persecutions and afflictions ? For it were no greater labour to make it most apparent by very many histories, if we would insist upon it, that the bishops of Eome, in striving first to get, and then to uphold, after their scrambling manner, this their wicked and 233 usurped authority of troubling and vexing Christian king- doms and states with their manifold oppressions and quarrels, have been some special means whereupon the Saracens, Turks, and pagans, have wrought and by degrees brought so great a part of Christendom under their slavery as now they are possessed of. For it is but an idle and a vain pretence that the preservation of as much of Christendom as is yet free from the Turk and paganism is to be ascribed to .the bishop of Rome and his authority, that so the Catholic Church might attain her spiritual end, which ought to be the planting of churches and conservation of them ; it being most manifest to as many as have any wit, experience and sound judgment, that as the very situation of the said coun- tries which now pagans enjoy, made them very subject unto the incursion and invasions of Saracens and Turks, God Himself, for His own glory, having His finger and just opera- tion therein; so through His most merciful goodness and care of His Church, He blessed the situation of the rest of Christendom, being now free in that respect from those kind of violences, and endowed the hearts of Christian kings and princes with such courage and constancy, in defence of Christianity and of their kingdoms, as notwithstanding that the popes did greatly vex them in the meanwhile, they did mightily repel the forces of their enemies and most reli- giously uphold and maintain the profession of Christ ; so as the preservation of the Gospel in these parts of the world 190 overall's convocation book. book may more truly be attributed to the working of the Spirit of '- — God in them than to the bishops of Rome, who have been the chief authors and occasions of many incredible mischiefs. Now lastly, and for conclusion of this point, had not Satan with all power and signs and lying wonders so inveigled and seduced the hearts and minds of the adherents to the see of Rome, as that by degrees they, leaving the love of the truth, 234 2 Thess. 2. are therefore ' given over by God unto such strong delusions, ' ' that they should believe lies/ as the Apostle speaketh, amongst many other of the gross errors maintained by them we might marvel at this, that ever they durst take upon them, in these times of so great light, to write and defend it with such reso- lution and confidence that the ecclesiastical commonwealth, as they term it, cannot be perfect, nor attain her spiritual end, except the pope may have the said temporal power and au- thority to depose kings ; considering how far the true nature of the Church, which is the spiritual kingdom of Christ, and the true means and armour that Christ, our spiritual King, hath indeed ordained and appointed for the edification and defence of this His spiritual kingdom, and for the attainment of the supernatural and right end and beauty of it, are re- pugnant to these their carnal and worldly conceits. Touching the true nature of the Church and spiritual kingdom of Christ, we have before spoken; and the true spiritual end of the Church being, by teaching the ways of truth, to bring as many as possibly she can , to the knowledge of their salva- tion, through Christ, so as by faith they may become true members of His spiritual kingdom in this Life, and of His heavenly kingdom in the life to come d , the means ordained for that purpose do contain the full duty and office of all bishops and ecclesiastical ministers, who are furnished by Christ neither with temporal swords nor imperial authority to depose kings and sovereign princes, but ought to carry themselves towards all men, especially towards kings and princes, if they be either pagans or enemies to religion, as Christ Himself and his Apostles did, by preaching and pray- ing for them, by humility and patience to endure whatsoever punishment shall be thought fit to be imposed upon them for e [they can. Z>.] dom in the life to come. Z).] d [members of His spiritual king- overall's convocation book. 191 doing of their duties, and never to intermit such their pains book 235 and diligence, to the end that if it please God to bless those ' - — their ministerial so great labours, their auditors of all sorts, private persons, kings and princes, may be brought to the knowledgeof the truth, that so Satan being expelled out of their hearts, Christ by faith may reign in them. To the effecting of which so great and so divine an alteration and change in men's souls, there is no worldly force nor temporal sword which will serve the turn. And therefore the Apostle, speaking of this matter, doth write in this sort, ' The weapons of our 2 Cor. lo. warfare are not carnal ;' as if he should have said, We do not ' come with troops of men to promote the spiritual kingdom of Christ, but with weapons of another nature, with the glad tidings of the Gospel, with the doctrine of salvation to all believers, and with the furniture of the Holy Ghost : which weapons are not weak, but mighty through God, and able to cast down holds, that is, all the carnal forces of men, all principalities and powers that shall presume to rise up against Christ. And through the assurance and experience which both St. Paul and the rest of the Apostles had in the force of these weapons, he further saith, that ' with them they overthrew councils, and every high thing that did exalt itself against the knowledge of God, and that they brought into captivity all imagination (or understanding,) to the obedience of Christ.' Away then with the pope's carnal weapons, and with all their illusions and jugglings that seek to uphold them; for such weapons were never ordained by Christ for His apostolical warfare. 236 CANON IX. glntt therefore if ang man shall affirm, untter tolour of ang thing that is m the Scriptures, either that the external callings in this foorl& of those men, as ministers anti schoolmasters, that habe to tfeal fotth the Information of men's min&s anb souls, are superior an& to he preferred in honour antr foorMg ftipities before the callings of fetngs anB sovereign princes ; or, that because health is better antr more to be fcesirefc in this life than ang foorMg preferments, therefore the calling of 192 book pbgsirians, fofio are orbaineb for tbe bealtb of nun's bobtes, : — ouojjt to be superior to all otber foorlblg callings ; or, tbat tfie regal anb political power of a feing, fofien it is part of a ©bris- tfan commonfoealtb, is tberebg brought into greater serbitube anb tbralbom tban is tfjc regal and political state of ttfinic princes fofien tbe same are no parts of a ©bristian feingbom ; or, tbat to prefer tbe ecclesiastical state for foorlblg autborttg before tbe state of Kings anb sobereign princes, is not, in effect, to prefer tbe bumbleb estate of ©brist, as f^e foas man, Jibing b«w upon tbe cartb, before ffii% glorious estate 237 after |^is ascension anb before tbe glorg anb majestg of f^is bibine nature ; or, tbat ang ecclesiastical autboritg, trifyitb tbe Apostles orbaineb, bib eitber free tbem, or ang of tbeir success sors, from subjection to Jungs anb princes, anb to tbeir tem= poral autboritg ; or, tbat £>t. peter, being an Apostle, anb so subject to tbe cibil sfoorb of temporal autboritg, coulb lafofullg, bg ang inbirect bebice, cballenge ang temporal pofoer anb bominion ober feings anb princes, for tbat bab been to babe ex= torteb tbe temporal sfoorb out of tbeir banbs to fobom it apper= taineb, anb to babe incurreb again tbe commutation of bis master foben |^e tolb bim bom all tbat tafee tbe sfoorb sball perisb foitb tbe sfoorb ; or, tbat it is not a most profane im» pietg, tenbing altogether to tbe biscrebit of tbe Scriptures, for ang man to bolb tbat &t. peter anb &t. Paul bab so in- structeb tbe ©bristians in tbeir times as tbat tbeg fenefo, if tbeg bab been able, tbeg migbt toitbout offence to CEfob babe beposeb Nero from bis empire ; or, tbat tbe ©bristians in ©ertullian's time, foben tbeg professeb tbat notfoitbstanbing tbeir numbers anb forces mere so great as tbeg bab been able to babe bistresseb berg greatlg tbe estate of tbe emperors, being tben persecutors, tbeg migbt not so bo, because ©brist tbeir master bab taugbt tbem otberfoise, ougbt not to be a sufficient warrant for all true ©bristians to betest tbose men in tbese bags, anb for eber bereafter, fobo contrarg to tbe example of tbe saib ©bristians in tbe primitibe ©burcb anb tbe boctrtne of ©brtst Wbid) foas tben taugbt tbem, bo enbeabour to per= suabe tbem, Mitn tbeg sball babe sufficient forces, to rebel overall's convocation book. 193 against sucb fcings anb emperors at tbe pope's commanbment book anb to tbrust tbem from tbeir fcingboms anb empires ; or, tbat : — tins bebilisb boctrine of animating subjects to rebellion, fofien tbeg are able, against tbeir sobereigns, eitber for tbeir crueltg, beresg, or apostacg, toas eber taugbt fa tbe ©burcb of ©brist bg ang of tbe antient .-{Fatbers abobe mentioned buring tbe reigns of IModesian, or Julian tbe &postata, or Falens tbe &rian, or of ang otber tbe toicfceb emperors before tbem ; or, tbat it is not a toicfceb perberting of tbe Apostle's toorbs to tbe ©orintbians, tombing tbeir tboice of arbitrators to enb bissen- sions amongst tbemselbes, ratber tban brato tbeir bretbren be= fore {ubges tbat mere inKbels, to infer tbereof eitber tbat St. 239 ^aul intenbeb tberebg to impeacb in ang sort tbe autboritg of tbe cibil magistrates, as if be bab meant tbeg sboulb babe tbosen sucb fubges as bg cibil autboritg mtgbt otbertoise babe bounb tbem tfian bg tbeir oton consents to babe stoob to tbeir atoarbs, or to autijori?e ©btistian subjects, toben tbeg are able, to tbrust tbeir lawful sobereigns from tbeir regal seats anb to cboose unto tbemselbes neto flings in tbeir places ; or, tbat ang of tbe sattr ancient jfatbers or goblg learneb men, for mang bunbreb gears after ©brist, bib eber so grosslg anb irreli- giouslg expounb tbe satb place of tbe glpostle as our carbi> nali?eb Jesuit batb bone ; or, tbat it can be collecteb out of tbe Scriptures tbat eitber ©brist, or ang of f^is apostles, iia at ang time preacb or teacb tbat tbeg tobo meant to be bapti?eb must receibe tbat Sacrament upon ambition tbat if at ang time aftertoarb tbeg sboulb not be obebient to St. peter, for bis time, anb to bis successors, tbeg toere to lose anb be bepribeb of all tbeir temporal estates anb possessions; or, tbat it can be probeb, eitber out of tbe Scriptures or bg ang of tbe saib ancient Jfatbers, or sbetoeb in ang ancient form of ab= ministration of baptism, tbat eber tbere mas ang sucb cobe- 24onant mabe bg ang sucb faitbful persons toben tbeg toere bap. ti?eb, or recjuireb of tbem to be mabe bg ang tbat bapti?eb tbem ; or, tbat if sucb a cobenant toere bg GCbrist's orbinance to be mabe in baptism, it ougbt not to be mabe as toell bg farmers, bg gentlemen possesseb of manors anb bg lorbs of 194 overall's convocation book. b oo k greater rcbenues antr possessions, as bg fttngs aitti sovereign '- — princes ; or, tftat ft were not an absurii imagination to tfttnK tftat ©ftrist anb f^is Apostles oft onlg mean tftat emperors, feings, anil soberetgn princes sftoulti be reteibetr to baptism upon tfte sai& contrition ; or, tftat all ©ftristian men ougftt not to Juiige tftat tfte eleben Apostles, if tfteg fta& fenown of ang sucft bargain or contrition in baptism, woulir babe trealt as faitft= fullg witft tfte ©fturcft anir in tfte beftalf of Sbt. $eter, in preacft= ing anb teacfting tfte same, as now our cardinal aniJ otfter sucft lifee persons of tfte 3Roman strain iro bg tfteir writing, publisft= ing, anir maintaining of it in tfte beftalf of tfte bisftops of Home ; or, tftat eitfter ©ftrist or fret's Apostles, knowing tftat baptism ougftt to be rcceibetf witft sucft a condition, iriti tftinfe it conbe* nient tftat tfte same sftoulti be concealed not onlg wftilst tfteg libeb but for mang ftuntireti gears afterwartrs until tfte bisftops 241 of Home sftoulti be grown to sucft a fteatt anir strengtft as tftat tfteg migftt, witftout fear of ang inconbeniencies, mafte tfte roftole Christian foorlii acquainted Witft it ; or, tftat it is not an Me conceit for ang man to maintain tftat tfte renunciation of tfte effects of baptism ootft treprtbe men of tfteir temporal lantrs anir possessions wfticfi tfteg iriif not ftolii bg ang force of baptism, or mafee tftem subject in tftat beftalf to tfte fcepriba* tion of tfte bisftops of Uome ; or, tftat apostasg from ©ftrist, put on in baptism, iiotft ang further extent* itself tftan to tfte souls of sucft apostatas in tftis life, in tftat tfte iiebil ftatft got again tfte possession of tftem, anil so irepribetft tftem in tftis Wodir of all tfte comfort anij ftope tfteg ftati in ©ftrist, leairt'ng tftem on to tfte banc botft of tfteir boiries anil souls in tfte life to come; or, tftat ang ecclesiastical person ftatft ang otfter lawful means to reclaim wiefceir, fteretical, or apostateii lungs from tfteir impietg, fteresg, anil apostasg, tftan GDftrist anil |^is apostles iriti oriiain to be useti, for tfte winning of men at tfte first to embrace tfte CJospel ; or, tftat GDftrist himself, Wftilst |^e libeii, biii attempt, eitfter tiirectlg or inoirectlg, to ijepose tfte emperor bg wftose autftoritg |^e was himself put 242 to treatft, as ftoloing tftat tfte ©fturcft coulii not attain to fter spiritual enii except |^e ftaii so bone; or, tftat bg tfte ijeatft of 195 ©firtst, tbe GDburcb bib not attain to ber spiritual enb witb- book out tjbe opposition of ang emperors or lungs from tbeir regal ■ estates ; or, rtjateber tbe Apostles in tbeir bags, either preatfjeb or tortt t&at tbe ecclesiastical commonwealtb coulb not be per- feet except Sfct. ^eter, for ftis time, anb after fiim tfie bisbops of Home, sfioultt babe temporal power anb autboritg to trepose emperors anb lungs, tbat tfte ©burcft migbt attain ber spiritual enb ; or, tbat tbe ©burcb in tbeir bags W not attain to ber spiritual enb, altbougb no stub autboritg was tben eitber cballengeb or put in practice ; or, tbat dje ffiburcb couIK babe attained to tbat ber spiritual enb in tbe Apostles' times if tbe satit temporal power antf autboritg baft been tben necessarg for tbe attaining of it ; or, tbat our Sabiour ©brist anij |^is apostles iJiir propound a spiritual en& unto |^is ©burcb, anb left no otber necessarg means for tbe obtaining of it tban sucb as coulb not be put in practice eitber in tbeir bags or for mang bunbreb gears after ; or, tbat tbe cburcbes of ©brist, after tbe 2*3 Apostles' times, for tbe space of tbree bunbreb gears, being wonberfullg oppressed witb sunbrg persecutions, bib not attain to tbeir spiritual enb witbout tbis breameb of temporal autbo= ritg of deposing Icings an& emperors, tben tbeir mortal enemies, not in respect of tbemselbes but of tbe boctrine of salbation iaW\i tbeg taugbt to tbeir subjects ; or, tbat tbis new boctrine of tbe necessitg tbat tbe bisbops of Home sboulb babe tern* poral autboritg, eitber birectlg or inbirectlg, to trepose emperors anb feings for ang cause fobatsoeber, or tbat else tbe CDburcb of ©brist sboulb not be able to attain to ber spiritual enb, was eber bearb of, for augbt tbat appearetb, for mang bunbrebs of $ears after tbe apostles' times, eitber in ang ecclesiastical bistorg or in ang of tbe ancient Jfatbers bg us abobe men* tioneb ; or, tbat tbe bisbops of Home witb all tbeir abberents fobilst tbeg woulb malte tbe worlb beltebe tbat tbe ©burcb of GMmst cannot attain ber spiritual enb except tbeg babe tern- poral autboritg, inbirectlg to bepose for some causes, emperors, Kings, anb sobereign princes, are more learneb now tban eitber tbe ancient jpatbers or tbe Apostles tbemselbes were, anb tbat 244 tbeg ltnow tbe sense of tbe Scriptures better tban eitber tbeg, o2 ii. 196 b o o k tfie saiD ancient Jpatbers, trfo, or tfie glpostles tfiat font tfiem ; : — fofio, for augfit tfiat foas fenofon for mang fiunoteir gears, tuber preacfieo - , taugfit, or intenDeD to fiabe ang sucfi Doctrine collected out of tfieir foritings anD foorks ; or, tfiat it mag foitfiout great impietg be once imagineD tfiat if sucfi a necessarg point of Doctrine concerning tfie saftf great temporal pofoer in tfie pope ober princes, as foitfiout tfie fofiicfi tfie ©fiurcfi of ©firist coulb not attain fier spiritual enD, fiaD been knofon to tfie Apostles anD ancient jfatfiers, tfieg fooulD not fiabe been as careful anD ?ea!ous to fiabe preacfieD anD DibulgeD tfie same unto all pos= teritg, as nofo tfie bisfiops of Home anD tfieir aDfierents are ; or, tfiat foe ougfit not ratfier to beliebe that tfie bisfiops of Home anD tfieir aDfierents, tfirougfi tfieir forsaking tfie lobe of tfie trutfi, are giben ober bg ffioD unto tfiose strong illusions tfiat tfieg sfioulD beliebe lies anD maintain tfiem as stifflg as tfiougfi tfieg foere true, tfian once to concetbe tfiat tfie fiolg apostles anD ancient JFatfiers foere eitfier ignorant of tfiis supposeD temporal autfioritg to Depose kings anD princes, for tfie enD so often mentioned, or tfiougfit it fit to Assemble it, or to forite of it so Darklg as for mang fiunDreD gears itcouttms not be unDerstooD ; or, tfiat ©oft fiatfi not foonDerfullg blinDeD tfie fiearts anD unDerstanDings, botfi of tfie popes anD of all tfieir aDfierents in tfiis particular matter, amongst mang otfiers, in tfiat tfie nature of tfie GDfiurcfi anD spiritual kingDom of GDfirtst consfDereD, tfieg bare presume to maintain it so confiDentlg, tfiat tfie 8hi& spiritual kingDom of ©firist cannot attain to fier spiritual enD foitfiout tfie bisfiop of Home fiis temporal autfio- ritg, inDirectlg in some cases to Depose kings anD sobereip princes ; or, tfiat tfie true spiritual enlj of tfie ©fiurcfi consist- ing in tfiis, tfiat tfie Debil being banisfieD out of tfie fiearts of all fier true members, ©firt'st mag retain f^ts possession of tfiem tfirougfi tfieir faitfi anD Diligence to repel gbatan, fofio Dailg labourer!) to regain to fiimself fiis ofon possession, it is not more tfian a kinD of fren?g to fiolD anD maintain tfiat ang temporal autfiorttg, manageD bg tfie pope or fig fiis command- ment, against kings anD princes, fiatfi ang force or pofoer to foork or procure tfiis spiritual enD, eitfier bg expelling or re- overall's convocation book. 197 pelling of £>atan, or to nourfsfi faitfi, or to continue tfie reip. book 24.6 ing of ©grist in ang men's fiearts ; or, tfiat it is not an (m — — pious antr a profane assertion for ang man to trefentr tfiat tfte weapons antr armour of tin's spfritual warfare, untrertauen bg ©grist ant( f^is Apostles, an* bg all gotrlg tusfiops antr true priests antr ministers of tfie CEfospel, are not sufficient of tfiemselbes to procure to tfie CDfjurcJ) fier spiritual entr, witfiout tfie pope's carnal weapons or temporal autljoritg to trepose Icings, tofien to ftim, toitfi tfie assistance of fiis cartrinals, it sfeall seem expetrient, fie trotjj greatlg err. 247 CHAP. XI. THE SUM OF THE CHAPTEE FOLLOWING. That there is, no more necessity of one visible head of the Catho- lic Church, than of one visible monarch over all the world. In the thirty-fifth and thirty-sixth chapters of our first book we Lave shewed at large that our Saviour Christ, the Son of God, having created the world and taken upon Him to be the Redeemer of mankind, after their transgression - through Adam's fall, did not only, as He was the Son of God, govern all the world, the same being in that respect but one universal kingdom, and appoint several kings and sove- reign princes, as His substitutes, to rule the same under Him in their several countries and kingdoms, leaving no one em- peror or temporal monarch to govern them all ; but likewise, as He was the blessed Lamb, slain from the beginning of the [Rev.i3.8j world, He did, for His own glory and our endless comfort, erect for Himself, in this world, a spiritual kingdom called His Church, consisting of such men, dispersed throughout the world, as did profess His name; and being Himself the only Head and Governor of it, in which respect it is rightly to be termed but one Catholic Church, did appoint no one priest over the whole Catholic Church, but several priests and ecclesiastical ministers, to rule and govern the particular churches in every province, country, and nation. 198 overall's convocation book. BOOK And in such manner and form as our Saviour Christ did rule : — and govern His universal kingdom and Catholic Church, be- fore His Incarnation, so doth He still rule and govern the same, notwithstanding any of those vain pretences and ridi- 248 culous usurpations which the bishops of Rome, or any of their adherents, are able to allege and maintain to the contrary. In the gloss of one of the books of the canon law" not long since printed and approved by Gregory the Thirteenth, a glossographer and now an authentical canonist, doth write in this sort : Dico quod potestas spiritualis debet dorninari omni creatures humance : ' I say, that the spiritual power ought to domineer over every human creature.' And why saith he so ? Forsooth, per rationes qiias Hostiensis inducit in Summa; f for certain causes and reasons, which Hostiensis, another canonist, doth allege in his Sum.' But he stayeth not there ; he hath another motive, which he setteth down thus : Item, quia Christus, etc. ; ' Also, because Jesus Christ, the Son of God, when He was in the world, and also from everlasting, was the natural Lord, and by the natural law He might have given sentences against the emperor, and any other whatsoever, of deposition and damnation, and any other sentences ; utpote in personas quas creaverat, et donis natura- libus et gratuitis dotaverat, et etiam conservabat ; ' as against persons whom He had created and endowed with natural and free gifts, and also whom He did preserve ;' et eadem ratione vicarius Ejus potest; 'and, by one and the same rea- son/ saith he, ' His vicar may so do.' "What ? would pope Gregory, by his canonists, mate men to believe that all em- perors, kings, and sovereign princes, are persons of the pope's creation ? or that he doth bestow on them freely, any gifts or benefits of nature ? or that their preservation doth depend upon his good favour and providence ? But the idle canonist his wit doth serve him no better than to make, in effect, this fond collection; Christ, the Creator of all things, doth govern, rule, dispose^ and preserve all His own creatures; therefore the pope must likewise govern, rule, dispose, and preserve them all, though he created none of them. And why must he so do ? he wanteth not a very substantial reason 249 e Extravag., lib. i. cap. 1. de Major, et Obed. Unam sanctam. [See note TTT.]j overall's convocation book. 199 that m oved liira so to collect, which followeth in his own words : BOOK Nam non videretur Dominus discretus fuisse ut cum reveren- - tid Ejus loquar, nisi unicum post Se talem vicariuin reliquisset, qui hcec omnia posset. Fuit autem iste vicarius Ejus Petrus. Et idem dicendum est de successoribus Petri ; cum eadem ab- surditas sequeretur, si post mortem Petri humanam naturam a Se creatam sine regimine unius personce reliquisset : ' For Christ should not have been thought a person of sufficient discretion, that with His reverence I may so speak, except He had left behind Him one such vicar, who might do all these things. And this was His vicar Peter. And the same is to be said of the successors of Peter ; seeing the same absurdity would follow if, after Peter's death, He had left mankind, created by Himself, without the regiment of one person.' And Mr. Harding', one of our countrymen, doth wholly concur with this profound canonist ; saving that he dealeth more civilly with Christ, in using the word ' provi- dence' instead of the canonist's ' discretion.' Thus he writeth : ' Except we should wickedly grant that God's pro- vidence doth lack to His Church, reason may soon induce us to believe that to one man, the chief and highest of all bishops, the successor of Peter, the rule and government of the Church, by God, hath been deferred.' And he further doth express his opinion to this effect : ' that if God had not ordained such a monarchical church-government, He should have brought in amongst His faithful people that unruly con- fusion and destruction of all commonwealths, so much abhorred of princes, which the Grecians call an anarchy; which is a state, for lack of order in governors, without any government at all.' That our Saviour Christ is the sole governor, head, and archbishop of His Catholic Church, as He is the only governor, ruler, and monarch over all the world ; and that His discretion and divine providence is no more to be 250 blemished or impeached by the cavils of any impostors, in that He hath appointed no one priest, archbishop, or pope, to be His vicar-general over the whole Catholic Church, than for that He hath not assigned any one king, emperor, or monarch to rule the whole world under Him, this is the point that here we purpose to make good ; taking it in this place [ Harding's Confut. of Juel's Apol. § 19. [See note UUU.] II. 200 overall's convocation book. BOOK for granted that there was never any one man in the world, : — to whom our Saviour Christ did commit the government of it, after the time that it was peopled and throughly inhabited, that is, from Noah's flood at the least hitherto. They that labour to prove that the bishop of Rome is head of the uni- versal Church, and that Christ should have shewed little dis- cretion or providence if He had not so ordained it, do insist very much upon the grounds of natural reasons and philo- sophy, telling use, out of Plato, Aristotle, Plutarch, Isocrates, Stobseus, Hesiodus, Euripides, Homer, Herodotus, and divers others, that of all the kinds of governments which are, the monarchical government is the best b , ' that in a great host, consisting of soldiers of divers nations and countries, and per- haps of many sovereign princes and kings, there must be one general to govern them all ; that all things naturally have a propension and aptness to monarchical government ; that bees of every hive have their king ; that in every flock of sheep there is a principal ram ; that every herd of cattle hath a leader ; that cranes do not fly promiscuously and in heaps, but have one whom they do all very orderly follow; that amongst the celestial spheres there is but one primum mobile ; that in the number of the lights of the world one is greater than the rest ; that there is a certain principality in the ele- ments; that the fountain is but one, from whence divers times there flow sundry streams ; that into one sea all rivers do run and return ; that the thing which is most one, is less easily divided; that it is rather one, which is simply one, than a 251 multitude conspiring in one 1 ;' and that for these and many other like reasons, seeing the monarchical government is best, and that we may be sure that Christ would have His Church governed by the best manner of government, — except we should think Him to have dealt absurdly, as a person void both of good discretion and providence, — it therefore follow- eth that Christ committed the government of it unto one, first to St. Peter and then to his successor, the bishop of Rome for the time being. If this our Jesuit and his fellows, would upon the said philosophical premises have concluded i Bell, de Rom. Pont , lib. i. cap. 2. [See note "WWW.] [See note VVV.] > Bell, de Rom. Pont, lib. i. cap. 9. h Sand, de Visib. Monarch., lib. iii. [See note XXX.] overall's convocation book. 201 thus, that it therefore had followed that Christ Himself doth BOOK not only retain in His own hands the sole government of : — His Catholic Church, as He is the only Redeemer of it, but likewise the sole government of the whole world, as He is the Creator of it; the conclusion had been true, although the premises had not enforced it. But how stiffly soever they mean to insist upon the said conclusion, without any regard of truth, so they may blear the eyes of the simpler sort with such their vain illusions, we may be bold, as we hope, re- solutely to defend and maintain it, that the said natural rea- sons are of as great strength to prove that there ought of necessity to be one temporal monarch over all the world as one ecclesiastical monarch over the whole Catholic Church ; although in very deed they are far too feeble and weak to prove either the one or the other. For who knoweth not that when the philosophers did write in commendation of the monarchical government, they only had relation to particular nations and countries ; endeavouring to prove that it was better for them severally to be ruled by that form of government which is called monarchical, than by any of the rest, aristocratical, democratical, or any other ? And it was so far from their meaning to have their said reasons wrested 252 to prove that one mortal man ought to have [the] govern- ment of the Catholic Church, the spiritual kingdom of Christ, as they never dreamed, for aught that appeareth, that one man, in their judgment, was fit or able to take upon him the temporal government of the whole world ; to which purpose a principal lawyer amongst our adversaries doth write in this sort : Natura ipsa institutum non est quod universus orbis uni principi subditus sit* : ' It is not ordained by nature that the whole world should be subject to one prince/ If then it be an idle vanity for any man to go about by natural reason to prove that one man ought to be the temporal monarch of all the world, which nature herself did never intend; it is then certainly a kind of madness or frenzy to rely upon such proofs for the pope's spiritual authority over the whole Catho- lic Church; neither of them both being comprehensible or subject to the apprehensions of nature. Again, these patrons for the pope and his primacy over the k Covarruvias 2. part. Relect. § 9. torn. i. num. 5. [See note YYY.] 202 overall's convocation book. book whole Catholic Church have not only such arguments as we : — have heard, drawn from natural reason, but some likewise deduced from sundry similitudes, and those out of the Scrip- tures, upon which they rely with some more confidence, as reason is they should ; saying that God made all mankind ex uno Adamo 1 , ' of one Adam ;' to signify thereby that He would have all men to depend ab uno, 'of one;' that the Old Testament™ was a figure of the New, and that therefore, as there was but one High-Priest amongst the Jews to govern that one church, so now there must be but one pope to govern all the churches in the world; that Aaron was not only a figure of Christ but likewise of St. Peter ; that the [Cant. 6. Church is compared to an host well ordered, to a human body, r'carit 7 to a kingdom, to a fold, to an house, to a ship ; and that 1. Vuig.] therefore she must have but one captain, one human head, [Dan. 2. . . i , n i ■-, i 37.] one king, one pastor, one householder, and one pilot ; that [i°Tim. 3. although there be but one and proper Head of the Church, 253 ?i"p t 3 wn ^ cn i 8 Christ, thatgoverneth the same spiritually, yet she 20.] hath need of one visible head, or otherwise the bishop of Rome and all other bishops, pastors, doctors, and ministers were needless ; that although Christ be the Head of the Church yet He ought to have one underneath Him, by whom she may be governed, as a king when he is present may govern his kingdom himself, but being absent, doth usually appoint another under him, who is called his viceroy ; that every diocese and province hath her bishops and archbishops to govern the particular churches under them within their several charges, and that therefore there must be one bishop of the whole Catholic Church to rule and govern them all ; [Eph. 4. lastly, that as there is but one God, one faith, and one bap- tism, so there must be in the Catholic Church but one chief bishop and judge upon whom all men ought to depend. Many 1 more mo l are the reasons, grounded upon divers other similitudes, which our adversaries have heaped up together to uphold the pope's authority, all of them being as vain and frivolous as the former. For it is certain and manifest that as the Catho- lic Church is resembled in the Scriptures to an host well ordered, to a human body, to a kingdom, to a flock of sheep, 1 Bell, de Rom. Pont., lib. i. cap. 2. m Idem, ibid. cap. 9. [See note [See note ZZZ.] 4 A.] overall's convocation book. 203 to an house, and to a ship; so Christ only is intended thereby BOOK! to be her only General, her only Head, her only King, her IL only Shepherd, her only Householder, and her only Pilot. Neither can any other thing be inforced from the words mentioned of one faith and one baptism, but that as we are only justified through a lively faith in Christ, so there is but one baptism ordained, whereby we have our first entrance into His spiritual kingdom and are made particular members of His Catholic Church. Besides, in the like sense that the Catholic Church is resembled to an host well ordered, to a 254 human body, to a kingdom, to a flock, to an house, to a ship, so may the universal kingdom of Christ over the whole world, as He is the Creator of it, be resembled to them all, and the aforesaid titles respectively attributed unto Him. The whole world is as an host, under Him, well ordered, and He is the General of it. The whole world is but as one body whereof He is the Head, being the life of all men, from Whom, as from their Head, they have their sense, under- standing, and motion. The whole universal world is but His kingdom, and He is the King of it, ruling and disposing it as seemeth best to His divine wisdom. The whole world is with Him but one flock and He is the Shepherd of it, all men in it being the sheep of His pasture, to whom He giveth food and sustentation in due season. Also He ordereth all the affairs in the world, as a good Householder doth order and direct all the businesses and troubles appertaining to His family. Likewise the whole world may aptly be compared to a ship, in that the state of all mankind, living in it, is subject, as a ship on the sea, unto all manner of contrary winds, tempests, and storms ; of which ship were not Christ, as He is the Creator of the world, the only Pilot, the world could not subsist. And as the Catholic Church is resembled to a fold, which con- taineth in it all that believe in Christ, so may the universal kingdom of Christ over all the world be compared to a fold, in that it containeth in it all mankind generally, His heavenly care and providence evermore protecting them. Moreover, as there is but one Catholic Church, one Head or spiritual Ruler of it, Christ our Redeemer, one Christian faith, one baptism, one Gospel, one truth, one and the self- same form or nature of all the several theological virtues, and 204 overall's convocation book. BOOK one inheritance, which are all of them to be taught, embraced, and expected by all that are true members of the Catholic Church ; so there is but one universal kingdom in all the 255 world, the Creator of it being the sole emperor and governor of it, one moral faith, one nature of truth to be observed amongst all, one rule and nature of justice, one moral law, one nature of equity, one kind, form, or nature of all the several virtues, both moral and intellectual, which are to be put in practice, as occasion requireth, in this one empire, by as many as expect from Christ, their Emperor, any happy success in their worldly affairs. But as all these unities in the temporal monarchy of Christ are no sufficient grounds to warrant this assertion that there ought to be one temporal king or emperor under Christ to govern the whole world, so the aforesaid spiritual and ecclesiastical unities are not able to establish or uphold this inference, that one pope must of necessity have the government under Christ of the whole Catholic Church. Also from the authority of Scripture, that God made all mankind of one Adam, to signify that He would have all men to depend upon one, why may it not as well be collected that He meant that all the men in the world should depend upon one emperor for causes temporal, as upon one pope in causes ecclesiastical ? Likewise it is a very absurd conceit that our Jesuit maintaineth, when he saith that although Christ be the Head of the Church, yet He ought to have one underneath Him by whom she may be governed ; as a king, when he is present, may govern his king- dom himself, and when he is absent, appoint his viceroy. Of likelihood this fellow would persuade us that Christ is sometimes absent from His Church, to the end that the pope might be His grand deputy ; for otherwise, by his own ex- ample, Christ may govern the Catholic Church without the pope, as the king, ruling himself in his own kingdom, needeth no viceroy. That Christ is never absent from His Church, but doth by His power, grace, and virtue of the Holy Ghost, still defend and protect it, it is plain by His own words, where 256 Mat.28.20. He saith, ' Lo, I am with you always unto the end of the world.' It is true that He told His Apostles, that ' He was to depart from them,' meaning that they must be deprived of His corporal presence; but did He signify unto them that for overall's convocation book. 205 their comfort He would leave St. Peter in His place, and BOOK after him the bishops of Rome, St. Peter's successors, to '- — govern His Church to the end of the world ? No such mat- ter. These are our Saviour Christ His words: 'It is expedient Joh. 16. i. for you that I go away ; for if I go not away, the Comforter will not come unto you ; but if I depart, I will send Him unto you.' Again; 'When He is come, Which is the Spirit Joh.i6.i3. of truth, He will lead you into all truth.' Again; 'I will Joh. 14. 16, pray to My Father, and He shall give you another Comforter, that He may abide with you for ever; even the Spirit of truth.' Again; 'The Comforter, Which is the Holy Ghost, Joh. 1 4. 26. Whom the Father will send in My name, He shall teach you all things.' And again; 'I will not leave you comfortless, joh.14.18. but I will come unto you.' Which He doth continually when He upholdeth His Church daily against Satan and all that do malign it. So, as we may far more rightly and safely term the Holy Ghost to be Christ's vicar-general over all the Catholic Church, than we may ascribe that title to the pope ; the Holy Ghost being ever present and ready not only to defend the Church generally, but to aid and comfort every particular member of it, wheresoever they are dispersed upon the face of the earth, which we suppose the pope is not able to perform. We have before laboured to make it manifest that our Saviour Christ is the Creator of the world, and the Governor of it ; that He hath redeemed and sanctified to Himself His Church, whereof He is the sole monarch; that He hath neither appointed any one emperor under Him to govern the whole world, nor any one priest or archbishop to rule the whole Catholic Church; that as in respect of Christ, the 257 Creator, all the world is but one kingdom, whereof He is the only king, so in respect of Christ our Redeemer, all that believe in His name, wheresoever they are dispersed, are but one Catholic Church, and that the said one Catholic Church is not otherwise visible in this world than is the said one universal kingdom of Christ, the Creator of it ; viz. by the several and distinct parts of them, as by this or that national church, by this or that temporal kingdom. Por our Saviour Christ having made the external government of His Catholic Church suitable to the government of His universal monarchy 206 BOOK over all the world, hath by the institution of the Holy II Ghost ordered to be placed in every kingdom, as before in another place we have observed, archbishops, bishops, and inferior ministers, to govern the particular churches therein planted ; priests, or ministers in every particular parish, and over them bishops within their several dioceses ; as likewise archbishops to have the inspection and charge over all the rest, according to the platform ordained, in substance, by Himself in the Old Testament, as He hath in like manner appointed kings and sovereign princes, with their inferior magistrates of divers sorts, to rule and govern His people under Him, in every kingdom, country, and sovereign prin- cipality; some of their said inferior magistrates having authority from their sovereigns in particular parishes, some in hundreds, some in shires or counties, and some in govern- ments of larger extents ; there being amongst them all divers degrees of persons, one over another, and their kings and sovereign princes excelling them all in power and authority, as the persons appointed by God to rule and direct all their subjects, of what calling soever, in the right use of the au- thority and magistracy which they have committed unto them. And we cannot but wonder as well at our said Jesuit, where he saith that although there be but one and proper 258 head of the Church, which is Christ, that governeth the same spiritually, yet she hath need of^ one visible head, or otherwise the bishops of Rome, and all other bishops, pastors, doctors, and ministers, were needless; as likewise that our countryman Harding, who saith, as is above noted, that if God had not deferred to one man, that is, to Peter and his successors, the rule and government of the Church, He should have brought amongst His faithful people that un- ruly confusion which is called an anarchy. For, were these their vain conceits and imaginations true, then would it by the same reason follow that albeit there be but one and proper monarch over all the world, which is Christ that created it, yet the same hath need of one visible monarch, or otherwise emperors and all other kings, princes, and civil magistrates, were needless ; or otherwise Christ should have left amongst His people throughout the world, that unruly overall's convocation book. 207 Confusion and destruction of all commonwealths so much BOOK abhorred of princes, which the Grecians call an anarchy, '■ — which is a state, for lack of order in governors, without any government at all. The fondness of which two consequents do so plainly argue the folly and falsehood of the two former, as we need no other refutation of them. For if all Christian kingdoms and sovereign princes would banish the pope, with his usurped authority, as the monarchy of Britany 1 [' Britain] hath done, and retain under them the apostolical form of church-government by archbishops and bishops, with other degrees of ministers, as before we have divers times specified, they should find the churches in their several dominions as well governed by them, the said archbishops and bishops, without one pope to rule the whole Catholic Church, as they have experience of the sufficiency of their own regal and sovereign form of government in their several kingdoms and 259 countries, notwithstanding there be no one monarch over all the world to command or direct them. And for an ex- ample not to be controlled, to make this good that here we affirm, we leave unto them God's own form both of temporal and ecclesiastical government, established by Himself amongst His Own people the Jews. Nay, why should we doubt but that kings and sovereign princes, notwithstanding the mists and darkness wherewith the bishops of Rome have daily sought to dim their eyes, have had long since a glimpse of this light and truth? About four hundred and some odd years since, in the latter end of the reign of Henry the Second, and in the days of Richard the First, both of them kings of England, first Baldwin and then Hubertus, being archbishops of Canterbury, there was a mighty controversy betwixt them and the bishops of Rome, about the erecting of a new cathedral church in Lambeth; the said kings and archbishops having a resolution utterly to banish out of this kingdom the pope's authority, if the monks of Canterbury in their allegation to pope Celestine, against the said cathe- dral church, did inform him truly. These are, their words as they are recorded by Reginaldus, one of the said monks, as it seemeth, then living, who hath written a whole book about that matter. In tantum enim jam opus processit quod ibi ordinatur decanus,prmpositus,et plusquam quadraginta canonici, 208 overall's convocation book. BOOK de bonis Cantuariensis ecclesice fundati, genere nobiles, divitiis : — affluentes, cognati regum et pontificum. Quidam ipsi regi adhcerent, quidam fisci negotia administr antes, familiares epi- scopis et iisdem confcederati. Adversus tantos et tales quid poterit ecclesia Cantuariensis ? Certe~ timendum est non solum Cantuariensis ecclesia, sed, quod Deus avertat, ne hujus rei occasione sedis apostolicce autoritati in partibus Anglicanis derogetur. Quum enim fundaretur canonica ilia, vox erat omnium, sententia singuiorum, ut ibi essent episcopi quasi car- dinales, archiepiscopus sederet quasi papa, et ibi omnis appel- latio subsisteret et querela. Hoc quidem rex Henricus machi- 260 nabatur, approbant quamplures episcopi; hdc de causa, ut dictum est, ut possent desubjugo sanctee Romance ecclesia colla excutere n : 'Now the building of the said church is so far forward that there is ordained there a dean, a provost, and more than forty canons, founded of the goods of the church of Canterbury, by birth noblemen, abounding in wealth, allies of the kings and of the bishops. Some of them do adhere to the king, some have offices in the exchequer, all of them familiar friends to the bishops and of a confederacy with them. Against such and so great persons what is the church of Canterbury able to do ? Certainly it is to be feared, not only that the church of Canterbury shall hereby be overthrown, but that upon this occasion the authority of the apostolical see, which God forbid, shall in England be greatly diminished and prejudiced. For when this canonry or cathedral church was founded, it was the common fame, and the opinion of every man, that it was founded to this end, that bishops should be there as it were cardinals, and that the archbishop should sit amongst them as pope, and that there all appeals and complaints should be determined. This assuredly was plotted by king Henry, and the same very many bishops do allow, for this cause or end, that so they might deliver their necks from under the yoke of the holy church of Rome.' Again, after the death of Celestin the Fourth, the cardi- nals being at so great dissention amongst themselves as that they could not agree for the space of a year and nine months who should succeed him, both the emperor and the French " Reginaldi Epistola de temp. Baldwini, p. 98. col. 1. [See note 4 B.] overall's convocation book. 209 were greatly moved and offended therewith. The emperor, BOOK finding his advice unto them to hasten their choice, to be : — despised and scorned, and how dishonestly some of them had broken their promises and oaths unto him made in that behalf, he gathered a great host and dealt sharply with 261 them. And from France they received a message that if they continued to dally, as they did, in prolonging the choice of a new pope, they would utterly leave Rome and choose to themselves a pope of their own, to govern the churches on this side of the Alps. Hereof Matthew Paris writeth thus : Per idem tempus miserunt Franci solennes nuncios ad curiam Ro- manam, significantes persuadendo precise et efficaciter, ut ipsi cardinales papam rite eligentes universali ecclesim solatium pastorale maturius providerent ; vel ipsi Franci propter negli- gentiam eorum de sibi eligendo et providendo summo pontifice citra monies, cui obedire tenerentur, quantocius contrectarent" : ' About that time the state of France did send their solemn messengers to the court of Eome, signifying unto them and persuading them precisely and effectually, that either the cardinals should more speedily provide for the universal Church her pastoral comfort, by their due choice of a new pope, or else they themselves, the French, because of their negligence, would forthwith fall into deliberation of choosing and providing for themselves a pope on this side the moun- tains, whom they might be bound to obey/ Thus the said history. Whereby, as also by the former words of the monks of Canterbury, it is very evident that both England and France long since were in deliberation to have abandoned the authority of the bishops of Rome out of both those king- doms, as finding no necessity of the universal overswaying power of the Roman papacy ; and that the churches within their several countries and territories might receive as great benefit and comfort by the ecclesiastical government of their own archbishops, in every respect, as ever they had done from the bishops of Rome. For as it may truly be said, not of one king to govern all the world, but of every particular king in his own kingdom; so may it be truly affirmed, not of one pope to govern the whole Catholic Church, but of every 262 archbishop in any national church and province, to rule and » Matt. Pavis ad annum 1243. [See note 4 C] OVERALL. P 210 OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. B K direct the same, that under the government of one, viz. of '- — kings for temporal causes, and of archbishops for ecclesi- astical causes, there is the best order, the greatest strength, the most stability for continuance, and the easiest manner and form of ruling. We have spoken hitherto of the government of the Church, especially as it was in the Apostles' times, and afterwards, for the space of three hundred years, when the civil magistrates were enemies unto it. Whereby we do infer that if the par- ticular churches, settled then almost in every country and nation throughout the world, had so good success when there were no Christian magistrates, nor had any assistance of the temporal sword for the strengthening of their ecclesi- astical government, but only ministers to teach and direct their parishioners in the ways of godliness ; and bishops over them m every diocese, to oversee and rule as well the minis- ters as the several people committed to their charge, that they taught no new doctrine or ran into schisms ; and arch- bishops over them all, in every national church and province, for the moderating and appeasing of such oppositions and dissensions as might otherwise have risen amongst the bishops, and so consequently have wrought great distraction betwixt their diocesan churches ; how much more then are the said particular churches like to flourish and prosper under such a form of ecclesiastical government wherein the Christian magistrate is become to be, as the chief member of the church, so the chief governor of it ; to keep as well the said archbishops within their bounds and limits, as all the rest of the clergy, and Christians, bishops, ministers, and parishioners, that every one, in their several places, may exe- cute and discharge their distinct oflices and duties which are committed unto them. We shall have fit occasion hereafter to speak of the au- 263 thority of Christian princes in causes ecclesiastical ; here we do only still prosecute the government of the Church when temporal kings and princes were her great and mortal ene- mies, and the folly, if not the obstinacy of our adversaries, who either see it not or will not acknowledge it, that peace and quietness may as well be preserved in all the churches in the world by archbishops and bishops, without one pope overall's convocation book. 211 to govern them all, as by kings and sovereign princes in all book the kingdoms and temporal governments in the world, with- — — : — out one temporal monarch to rule and oversway them. For our adversaries shall never be able to prove that it may be ascribed, as we have before said, more to any want of dis- cretion and due providence in our Saviour Christ, that He hath not appointed the pope to govern the Catholic Church, than that He hath not assigned the government of the whole world to one king or emperor. Rather it is to be attributed to their audacious temerity and presumption that will either enforce our Saviour Christ to be contented with that form of government in His Church which they think good to assign unto Him, and so make Him to divide stakes, as the phrase is, with the bishops of Rome, or else to be reputed amongst them for a person of little discretion and providence, and to have dealt absurdly in ordering and settling the external government of His Church as He had ordered and settled the external government of His universal kingdom over all the kings and princes in the world. Which profane, wicked, and blasphemous proceedings with Christ, will, no doubt, in short time receive an heavy judgment, in that, although the man of sin hath long wrought in a mystery and taken upon him for his time, and so every one of his successors during their lives, f to sit in the temple of God/ vaunting that the [2Thes. 261 said temporal or spiritual kingdom of Christ is wholly at his command, yet now he beginneth to be revealed and disclosed to be that impostor that by the assistance of Satan hath with power and signs and lying wonders, in all deceivableness and unrighteousness, long abused the Christian world, and is consequently to be consumed by our Saviour Christ with the spirit of His mouth. In the meanwhile, and till this work be throughly effected, we are not to censure Christ either for His discretion or divine providence, but indeed to admire and magnify them both : considering that by His govern- ment, both of the universal world as He is the Son of God, and of His Catholic Church as He is the Redeemer of it, in such manner and form as we have before expressed, by seve- ral kings and priests within their kingdoms, provinces, and dioceses, He hath left unto them certain general rules and motives, which, being diligently observed, do tend to the uni- p2 212 book versal good and preservation both of the one and the other, '- — though they have no assistance therein from the bishops of Rome. For as it is an apt and good reason to persuade all kings and kingdoms to live quietly with their -neighbour princes and nations, and to be at a firm league and friend- ship with them, because they have all but one heavenly King, are members and subjects of one universal king- dom, have, or ought to have, but one moral faith, one rule of justice, one square for equity, one nature of truth, one moral law, one kind, form, and nature, of all the several virtues, both moral and intellectual, one natural instinct, to know God and to worship Him, and one form and rule of mutual love and affection; so the particular churches dis- persed over the world, when they had small comfort from the civil magistrate, held themselves bound to have a special care one over another, that matters of religion might pro- ceed by one rule, with mutual agreement and uniformity, 265 for avoiding of schisms ; in that they well knew they had all but one Redeemer and Saviour, one heavenly spiritual King or Archbishop, were all of them members of one mysti- cal Body, whereof Christ was the Head, had all of them but one faith, one baptism, one spiritual food, one hope, one bond of charity, one redemption, and one everlasting in- heritance in the life to come. Which were such arguments of mutual consociation in those days, as when any great matters of importance did fall out in any one country, through the wilfulness and obstinacy of heretics and crafty seducers of the people, which perhaps were countenanced ■ with some of strength and greater power than could easily be withstood, their neighbour churches adjoining did some- times assist them by their letters with the best counsel they could give them, and sometimes did send some especial learned men unto them for the better suppressing of those evils; and sometimes, when occasions fell out thereunto moving, sundry archbishops and bishops of several countries, with other learned priests and persons of principal note, did, as they might for fear of danger, meet together, and upon due and mature deliberation did so order and determine of matters as thereby heresies and contentions were still sup- pressed, and the churches in those countries received great overall's convocation boor. 213 comfort and quietness. And if in those troublesome times BOOK the peace of the Church were thus preserved, how much — more now under Christian magistrates may it be strength- ened, upheld, and maintained, without the pope; not only within their several kingdoms, but likewise, throughout, in effect, all these western parts of the world, if Christian kings and sovereign princes would agree together for a general council, to the end that all those heresies, errors, impostures, 26«and presumptions, wherewith the Church of Christ hath been long, and is now miserably shaken and disturbed, might be at the last utterly suppressed and extinguished ? Many other means might here be alleged to shew how the state of Christian religion is to be upheld and maintained without any assistance from the bishop of Rome. But our purpose being in this place to resemble and compare the government of the Catholic Church with the universal go- vernment of the Son of God over the whole world, we hold it sufficient to observe that every national church may as well subsist of herself without one universal bishop, as every kingdom may do without one general monarch. Never- theless we acknowledge that in this particular tractate we have been very tedious, and [it] may be thought perhaps by some that our pains therein is altogether superfluous, because many of our adversaries do, in effect, acknowledge that there is the like necessity of one emperor to govern all the world, as there is of one pope to have the oversight and ordering of the whole Catholic Church. Indeed, upon the sifting of the usurped authority of the bishops of Rome, our adversaries finding that by their arguments to bolster up his said autho- rity, the erection of one man to govern the world in temporal causes is as necessarily to be inforced as of one pope to govern the whole Church in ecclesiastical causes, they are grown to this most admirable insolency and most high pre- sumption as that they dare affirm and do take upon them without all modesty to maintain it, that the pope is both the monarch of the Catholic Church and the emperor of all the world. Which mystery of theirs is thus managed, and by piecemeal unfolded after this sort, viz. that to ease the pope, lest he might be oppressed with multitude of affairs if he should take upon him, in his own person, to govern the 214 overall's convocation book. book whole world, as he doth direct the especial affairs of the 267 : — Catholic Church, they do assign unto him power and au- thority to create and delegate under him, as his feudatory or vassal, this one supposed emperor, to whom, they say, he may commit the especial execution of his temporal sword, to be drawn and put up at his direction and commandment. And for this one base emperor over all the world, many t are now as busy as others are to maintain the pope's supremacy over the whole Catholic Church. Now to prove that the pope hath universal dominion over all the world temporaliter, temporally, and likewise sufficient power to institute and appoint one emperor under him, as his substitute, to rule the whole world, they use this argument : Summits pontifex instituit ac confirmat imperatorem, sed imperator habet domi- nium universale temporaliter in toto mundo ; ergo et papa habet hoc idem dominium temporaliter : ' The bishop of Rome doth ordain and confirm the emperor, but the emperor hath uni- versal dominion temporally in the whole world; therefore the pope hath the very same temporal dominion.' And about ten years since one Andrew Hoy, the Greek professor at Doway, made an oration, De nova apud Europeeos monorchia pro tempore utilitate; taking upon him to prove that the king of Spain was the fittest person of all the kings and . princes in Europe to be advanced unto this great monarchy. But what should we trouble ourselves with this point ? The king of Spain, we suppose, will greatly scorn to be the pope's vassal ; and the emperor that now is or that shall suc- ceed him hereafter, as likewise all the kings and princes in the world, may see most evidently how grossly and shamefully they are abused and how notably they neglect the greatness of their own callings ; especially they who have been hereto- fore or shall be hereafter emperors, in that they do inter- 268 meddle any thing at all with the pope or receive from him either their confirmation or coronation, in that thereby he presumeth most ridiculously and without any shew of truth, to challenge them for his servants and vassals. It hath been before shewed by the judgment of the cardinalized Jesuit, that the bishops of Rome have no temporal possessions at all but such as they have received from the emperor and other * Dr. Marta de Jurisd. par, 1. c. 20. Carerius. [See note 4 D.] overall's convocation book. 215 kings and sovereign princes. In consideration whereof, book seeing that now they insult so notably over them all, both — princes, kings, and emperors, being so far from acknowledg- ing themselves to be the emperor's subjects, or to hold their said possessions either of him or of any king that bestowed them upon them, we do verily think that the said princes, kings, and emperors, who have been, so beneficial to the said bishops, shall never shew themselves to be of that princely magnanimity and prowess which their high places do require, nor free their sceptres from the thraldom and base subjec- tion to their usurped authority, until either they take from them what before they gave them, or bring them to a more dutiful acknowledgment of their duties unto them. And what we say of the popes we likewise do hold concerning all the clergy besides in Europe, or elsewhere ; that if they shall either withdraw themselves from their subjection unto their temporal sovereigns under whom they live, or deny to hold the possessions of their several churches of their said sove- reigns, or to do them homage for the same, they may lawfully, in our judgments, not only resume the said possessions into their own hands but likewise proceed against them as rebels and traitors, according to the form of their several laws. But this is a digression. For in the beginning of this chapter we undertook to deal with those only who, though they main- 269 tain the pope's general supremacy over the Catholic Church, yet they deny, upon many weighty reasons, that God did ever ordain any one emperor to govern all the world. But how long they will deny it we know not, in that the principal Jesuit himself writeth thus : Utrum expediret omnes provincias mundi, etc. ' .- ' Whether it were expedient that all the pro- vinces in the world should be governed by one chief king in things politic, although the same be not necessary, it may be a question ;' mihi tamen omnino expedire videtur, si possit eb perveniri sine injustitid et bellicis cladibus ; ' yet it seemeth to me expedient, if such a monarchical government over all the world might be gotten without injustice and such calamities and miseries as usually follow war.' What this Jesuit doth incline unto, it is hereby evident ; but in that he confesseth that such a monarchical civil government is not necessary, * Bell, de Bom. Pont, lib. i. cap. 9. § Utrum. [See note 4 E.] II. 216 overall's convocation book. BOOK that is enough for our purpose ; because thereby it likewise followeth, as before we have shewed, that the government of the pope over the whole Church is, in every respect, as little necessary. CANON X. 270 gJnd therefore if ang man shall affirm, under colour of ang thing that is in the Scriptures or that can be trulg grounded upon natural reason or philosophg, that our Sabiour Christ should habe sDefocd f^imself to babe had no discretion except |^e had left one chief bishop to habe goberned all the churches in the world ; or, that except f^c bad appointed one to the said end, f^e should, as a person boid of probidence, habe left f^is faithful people in a miserable confusion and foithout ang gobernment at all ; or, that ang of all the arguments that mag " be deduced from philosophg and natural reason, to probe that one man ought to habe the gobernment of the whole Catholic Church in spiritual causes, are not as forcible to probe that one King or emperor ought to jjabe the rule and gobernment ober the whole world in causes temporal; or, that ang of the philosophers cber meant to habe their reasons, alleged bg them to probe that in eberg particular countrg the monarchical form 271 of temporal gobernment was the best, to be extended to probe that there ought to be either one bishop ober all the Catholic Church, whereof theg had no Knowledge, or one emperor ober all the world ; or, that, because all men habe their beginning from &dam, it doth not as well folloh) that there ought to be one emperor to gobern all the world, as one bishop ober the whole Catholic Church ; or, that &aron mas ang more a figure of §bt. $eter and his successors, that theg seberallg in their times should gobern the whole Church, than Ring Babtd mas of Augustus the emperor and his successors, that theg seberallg in their times should habe committed unto them the gobernment of the whole foorld; or, that the resemblances in the Scriptures, of the Church unto an host foell ordered, to a human bodg, to a Kingdom, to a overall's convocation book. 217 foltr, to a bouse, to a sbip, mag not fitlg be applieti as book well to tbe unibersal feingtrom of ©brist ober all tbe foorltr — — — as unto tbe ©burcb, antr so consecjuentlg as foell to our Sbabiour ©brist as ?^e is tbe ffiobernor of tbe fobole foorltr, 272 tbat |^e ts tbe ffieneral of tbat bost, tbe f^eatr of tbat botrg, tf>e Hing of tijat feingtrom, tbe S>bepbertr of tbat flocu, tbe f^ouseboltrer of tjbat familg, antr tbe ^ilot of tbat sbip, as mag tbese titles lie ascribed unto ff^im as f^e is tbe onlg &rcbbisbop of t^e fobole ©burcb, bi?. tbat f^e is tbe onlg CGeneral of tbis bost, tbe onlg f^eatr of tbis botrg, tbe onlg 3&ing of tbis fciugtrom, tbe onlg Sfcbepbertr of tbis flocfe, tbe onlg f^ouseboltrer of tbis familg, antr tbe onlg plot of tbis . sbip ; or, t&at tbe saitr unities concerning tbe unibersal feing- trom of GDbrist are not of as great balitritg to probe tbat tfiere ougbt to be one temporal lung un&er f^im to gobern f^is uht= bersal ftingtrom ober all tbe foorltr, as are tfie otijer unities toucfiing tfie ©fiurtfi, to probe tbat tfiere must be one bisbop untrer f^im to gobern all tfie particular cburcbes in tbe foorltr ; or, tbat, because feings foben tbeg babe occasion to be absent from tbeir feingtroms, tro commonlg appoint some bicerog to rule tbeir people until tbeir return, it thereupon follofoetb tbat ©brist, supplging f^is corporal absence from f^is spiritual feingtrom tbe ©burcb, bg tbe comfortable presence of tbe f^olg 273 ©bost, mas of necessitg to leabe one carnal man to be f^is bicar=general ober ?^is saitr spiritual feingtrom ; or, tftat see= ing our Sbabiour ©brist beltr it expedient for f^is ©atbolic ©burcb tbat f^e sboultf Uepribe ber of f^t's corporal presence tbat sbe migbt be ruletr bg tbe f^olg ©bost, it is not to be tbougbt great presumption for ang man to tell us tbat bis cor= poral presence is necessarg for tbe gobernment of tbe saitr ©atbolic ©burcb, as if be meant to put tbe f^olg ffibost out of possession ; or, tbat eitber tbe saitr one unibersal feingtrom of ©brist, tbe Hing antr (Creator of it, is otberfoise bisible upon tbe eartb tban bg tbe particular feingtroms antr seberal feintrs of gobernments in it, antr perbaps in a sort antr bg re- presentation, foben some neigbbour fetngs, eitber in person or bg tbeir ambassadors, mag be met together for tbe gootr of tbeir 218 book seberal feingifomg ; or, tfiat tbe saftr one CDatboIic ©ljurcfi of 11 ©firigt, as ffie i% it cbief 23ig&op otier all, ig otfierfoige bigible on t&e eartlj tftan 6g tfie geberal an& particular cljurcfies in it, antf sometimeg bg general anij free councilg lafofullg agsembletf ; or, tfiat ft is a tetter tongequent tbat if tfje ©a- 274 tfiolic ©fiurcf) Ijabe no bigible fieatf, all otber bigfiopg, fcoctorg, pagtorg, antf mimgters are neeblegg, tfoan if one gfioulto gag, ftecauge tfiere ig no one feing to gobern all tfie foorltf, therefore tbere ig no uge of emperorg, feingg, an& gobereip princeg or ribil magigtrateg ; or, tfiat it ftotfi more follofo tfiat ©firigt sfioultf fiabe left f^is faitfiful people in a confused anarcfig except |^e fiatr left jbt. $eter anlr fiis gttcteggorg to gobern tfie fofiole ©fiurcfi, tfian it irotfi tfiat tfie fofiole foortof fiatfi been left bg ?^im in a confugion, foitfiout ang gobernment in it, in tfiat ||e fiatfi not left one unibergal emperor ; or, tfiat tfie in= tolerable pritie of tfie bisfiop of IRome, for tfie time still being, tfirougfi tfie a&bantement of fiimself hg mang sleigfitg, gtrata- gemg, an& falge miracleg, ober tfie (ffatfiolic ©fiurcfi, tfie tem- ple of ©oil, ag if fie mere (Stab f^imgelf, trotfi not argue fiim plainlg to be tfie Jttan of gbtn, mentioned bg tfie Apostle ; or, tfiat eberg national cfiurcfi, planted according to tfie ^postle'g platform, mag not, bg tfie meang fofiicfi ©firist fiatfi or&aineft, ag well gubgigt of itself without one unibergal bisfiop, ag eberg 275 feingirom mag &o unirer tfie gobernment of tfieir geberal lungs foitfiout one general monartfi, be &otfi greatlg err. CONCERNING THE GOVERNMENT OF GOD'S CATHOLIC CHURCH, AND THE KINGDOMS OF THE WHOLE WORLD. 277 BOOK THIRD, CHAPTER FIRST. "In pursuing our intended course throughout the Old Tes- book tament and until the destruction of Jerusalem, we overslipt — and passed by the fulness of that time wherein the Son of God, the Maker and Governor of all the world, our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, was conceived by the Holy Ghost and born of the Virgin Mary. So as now we are to return back to and prosecute our said course as we find the true grounds thereof laid down, confirmed, and practised in the New Tes- tament. At our entrance into which course we confess our- selves to be indeed greatly astonished, considering the strange impediments and mighty stumbling-blocks, which, through long practice and incredible ambition, are cast in our way, [ b in that we find the estate of that church, which would rule over all, to be degenerated in our days as far in effect from her primary and apostolical institution and rules, as we have shewed before, the estate of the Jewish church to have swerved through the like pride and ambition from that ex- cellent condition wherein she was first established and after- • [A line in red chalk has been these words : ' Supra, postea.' A.~\ drawn through the whole of this chap- b [The words in the text enclosed ter in the Durham MS. as if for ob- within brackets are not found in the literation, and a hand, apparently Durham MS., but are inserted on the Overall's, has inserted in the margin authority of £>.] 220 overall's convocation book. book ward preserved and beautified by Moses and king David, with the rest of his most worthy and godly successors.] For except we should condemn the Old Testament, as many an- cient heretics formerly have done, and thereupon overthrow all which hitherto we have built; and not that only, but either furthermore approve of their gross impiety who so read the Scriptures of the New Testament as if they were falsified 278 or corrupted, and receiving and rejecting as much of them as they list, do prefer before them, as not containing in them all truth d , certain apocryphal writings ; or should ourselves impiously imagine that the New Testament, as now we have it, was but a rough draught e and project compiled for the time by the Apostles, and to be afterwards better ordered, polished, and supplied with certain human traditions f by some of their successors ; B we can see no sufficient warrant or probable rea- son why the bishop of Rome should take upon him, as he doth, so eminent and supream authority over all the king- doms and churches in the world, to rule them, direct them, bestow them, and chop and change them under pretence of religion, as he from time to time shall think fit. Sure we are, if the Scriptures may retain their ancient authority and con- tinue to be true rules and principal directors to all apostoli- cal bishops, that in them there will not be found any shadows or steps of those so high and lofty conceits. To the proof whereof before we address ourselves, we have thought it very ex- pedient, for the carriage of our course more perspicuously and clearly, to make it apparent 11 by what degrees and practices the bishops of Rome have proceeded in aspiring to that sove- raignty and greatness which now they have attained. PLACET EIS. JOHN OVERALL, Prolocutor. e August, de litres, cap. 46. [See here inserted in the margin of the Dur- note A.] ham MS. these words : 'begin here.'] d [all necessary truth for man's sal- h [The passage to the end of "the vation, certain obscure and apocryphal chapter is bracketed off in the MS., writings. C] and in the margin is written, in red ' [draught and a lit project. Z».] chalk, ' The sum of the Chapter fol- 1 [traditions and doctrines. D.J lowing.'] fc [The writer above mentioned has overall's convocation book. 221 279 CHAP. II. As it was said long since, 'Religion brought forth riches and the daughter devoured the mother' ;' so may it very truly be said in these days, 'the empire begat the papacy, and the son hath devoured his father,' For, as we suppose by the effects, no sooner did the bishops of Rome, even in the first times of persecution, get any rest and courage, but they began to think with themselves that they were as able to govern all the churches in the empire as the emperors themselves were to govern all the kingdoms and nations then subject unto them; and that Rome was as fit a seat for such a bishop as it was for so great an emperor. Some seeds of this ambition began to sprout there when Victor presumed to threaten the Greek churches", concerning the feast of Easter ; although Irenseus, then living, did greatly dislike it ; and the bishops of Asia, little regarding him in that behalf, said they nothing cared for such his threats. 'And it was not, we suppose, an idle conceit of one, who writing an abstract of the bishops of Rome, and comparing those that were before Victor with those that followed, saith thus : In his papis abundat spiritus, in posterioribus malesuada caro m : ' The Spirit abounded in the former popes, but in those that succeeded him, the se- ducing flesh.' n Some more light whereof, as also of the said undermining ambition, brake out, little above fifty years after Victor, in Cornelius, the twenty-second bishop of Rome ; who notwith- standing the great trouble he had at home with his fellow- counter-pope Novatianus, could find such leisure, under pre- tence of importunity and threatenings, as to entertain a com- plaint against St. Cyprian, which was preferred unto him by 280 one Felicissimus, a priest, sent to Rome from Fortunatus, an usurping and schismatical bishop ; whom, together with Feli- cissimus, St. Cyprian, with other African bishops, had lawfully i [Instead of 'Religion,' 'the "■ Geo. Vicel. Epit. Rom. Pontif. Church' was originally written in A.~] [See note C] k Euseh., lib. v. cap. 24. Id. ib., c. - [The paragraph here beginning, 23. r See note B.] anfl w l"°h en(ls witn tne w °rds ' other ' [The passage from ' And it was,' bishops,' is placed in the Durham MS. to ' flesh,' is written in the margin of on a slip of paper inserted between the the MS. as a contemporary addition.] leaves.] BOOK III. 222 OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. BOOK excommunicated for sundry their lewd and ungodly actions. — With which injurious course St. Cyprian being made ac- quainted and somewhat moved, he writ to Cornelius an epistle" wherein he justifieth his proceedings and disliketh those of his adversaries, first, because there was a decree amongst them, and that also equal and just, that every man's cause should be there heard where the fault was committed. Secondly, for that a portion of the flock was committed to several bishops, which every one of them was to rule and govern, being to yield an account of his actions to God. Whereupon he inferreth thus, saying, f It doth not become those over whom we bear rule, to run gadding about, nor by their crafty and deceitful rashness to break the united con- cord of bishops ,• but there to plead their cause where they may have both accusers and witness of their crimes ; un- less,' saith he, ' the authority of the bishops of Africk doth seem unto a few desperate and outcast persons to be less than the authority of other bishops/ It appeareth furthermore, that for the better government of the churches in those times of persecution it was thought fit that there should be four patriarchs, wto were to take upon them the inspection and especial charge of all the bishops, priests, and churches that were severally assigned unto them p . In which distribution the bishops of Rome got the first place ; it being then thought convenient to seat their chief bishops in the principal cities of the Romans, and to grant unto them q authority in causes ecclesiastical, much resembling 1, the pre- rogatives which those cities had in causes temporal. Of all the eastern lieutenantships, that of Syria was the chief; and therefore Antioch, being the principal city of that province, was made also the seat of one of the said patriarchs. After- 281 wards likewise Alexandria, exceeding much in honour the city of Antioch, another patriarch was there placed ; who, according to the dignity of that city, had precedency of the patriarch of Antioch. Whereby we judge that the patriarch or bishop of Rome had the first place amongst the rest of the " [See note D.] thority,' was originally the reading ol p Wolfgang. Lazius Comment Reip. A.~] Rom., lib. ii. Baron., torn. i. Ann. 39. ' [Originally written, 'agreeable to [See note E.] the prerogatives.'] i [' unto them more eminent au- OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. 223 patriarchs, because Rome was then the chiefest city in the BOOK world and the seat of the empire. Which point is yet more L r J: manifest by these words of the council of Chalcedon: Sedi Veleris Roma Patres merito dederunt primatum, quod ilia civitas aliis imperaret". Howbeit, this primacy or precedency notwithstanding, the bishop of that see, before the council of Nice, confirmed by Constantine, the emperor, was little more respected than any other of the patriarchs ; as a principal person, afterwards of that rank, testifieth, saying : Ante con- cilium Nictenum ad Romanam ecclesiam parvus habebatur re- spectus* ; ' before the council of Nice there was little respect borne to the church of Rome" ;' although we doubt not by the premises but that the bishops thereof endeavoured what they could to equal the primacy of that patriarchship to the honour and dignity of that imperial city, as by their subse- quent practices it will more plainly appear. PLACET EIP. JO. OVERALL. 282 CHAP. III. Constantine the emperor having received the Gospel, did in his zeal greatly advance the dignity of the bishops of Rome by endowing of that bishopries with great honour and temporal possessions. "Besides, whether it grew from the cunning of those bishops and their especial instru- ments, or through the zeal of the people, or by both those means, it is apparent that within some forty-seven years after Constantine's death, that bishoprick was grown to so great wealth, as when it was void, many troubles, garboiles, and contentions arose for the obtaining of it. After the death of " [See note F.] ten on a slip inserted between the 1 jEneas Sylv. Ep. 288. [See note pages. The text stood originally thus : Ql ' honour and temporal possessions, " [Here the chapter originally end- which being added,' &c. A marginal ed, the remainder being added in the note, afterwards struck out, continued margin by another but contemporary it thus : ' though not in such sort as scribe.] the donation forged under the em- x [The passage beginning here and peror's name doth pretend.'] ending, ' plenty and delicacy,' is writ- 224 OVERALL S CONVOCATION BOOK. book Liberius, the second bishop after Constantine, such were the - — tumults in Rome betwixt Damasus and Ursicinus in striving for that place, as there were found in the church of Sicininus, slain on both sides in one day, one hundred and thirty-seven persons, and great labour was taken before the people could be appeased. ( Whereat,' saith the writer of that history y, ' I do not marvel, and that men should be desirous of that pre- ferment ; considering that when they have got it, they may ever afterwards be secure, they are so enriched with the oblations of matrons, they ride abroad in their coaches so curiously attired, and in their diet are so delicate and profuse/ ut eorum convivia reg ales super ent mensas, ' as their feasts exceed the fare of kings/ Insomuch as a desperate heathen man was accustomed, in scorn towards Damasus after he had gotten the victory against his adversary, to cast out these words : Facite me Romance urbis episcopum, et ero protinus Christianus z , ' make me bishop of Rome, and I will presently become a Christian.' Which alluring plenty and delicacy being added to the primacy of that place and to the aspiring humours of those bishops, their ambition began to shew itself daily more and more. Insomuch as they hardly en- dured that any of the other patriarchs should have any ex- traordinary reputation, being ever most jealous of their own. The Fathers of the Greek church met together in the gene- ral* council 'at Constantinople about forty years after the death of Constantine, finding themselves grieved, of likeli- hood, with the proceedings of the bishops of Rome, and that the bishops of Constantinople were not so much regarded in Rome as they ought to have been, Constantinople being then the chief seat of the empire, did define, with one consent b , ' that as causes did arise in any province, the same should be determined in the council of the same province.' And fur- thermore they made this canon : Constantinopolitance civita- tis episcopum habere oportet primatus honorem post Romanum pontificem, propterea quod sit nova Roma. With these pro- v Ammiau. Marcell. lib. xxvii. Alph. are inserted above the line in A. by a Chiaecon. in vita Damas. [See note H.J different hand.] z Hieron. ad Pammachium. [See b Tripart. Hist, lib. ix. cap. 13. note I.] Cone. Constant, i. can. 5. [See note • [The words 'Fathers of the Greek I.] church met together in the general,' overall's convocation book. 225 ceedings the bishops of Rome were afterwards", as one noteth, book much discontented ; as fearing, we suppose, lest by these be- : — ginnings New Rome might in time more prejudice Old Rome than they could well brook or endure. But that all causes should be tried in the provinces where they did arise, it was no marvel though they disliked it. Therefore to meet with that inconvenience, as they might, after some distance of time one Apiarius, being excommunicated in Africk and thereupon appealing to Rome, Zosimus the bishop there did very readily embrace his cause, and without hearing of the other side, pronounced him innocent, and so absolved him. Which fact of his was afterwards approved by Boniface the First d and Ccelestinus the First ; pretending, as it seemeth, that as in all civil causes for these western parts there lay appeals to the city of Rome, so in all ecclesiastical causes, when men received, as they thought, injury under any of the patriarchs or other bishops, they might, if they would, appeal 284 to the bishop of that see. And to justify that their am- bitious challenge, they forged a canon of the council of Nice, as it was directly proved in the African e council f holden at Hippo about the year 423. Whereupon the bishops of the said council, in which number St. Augustine was one, per- ceiving what the bishops of Rome meant by that sleight, viz. that if once they might obtain a power to receive appeals from all the churches within the empire, they would shortly after grow to challenge some universal authority over all the said churches ; did, to prevent the same, make two decrees, ' That if any clergyman would appeal from their bishops, they should not appeal but to the African councils, or to the pri- mates of their province;' adding this penalty B , 'That if any did appeal to the transmarine parts, a nullo intra Africam in eommunionem suscipiatur h - And their second decree is thus set down by Gratian: prima sedis episcopus non appelletur Princeps Sacerdotum, vel Summits Sacerdos, aut aliquid hujus- modi, sed tantum Prima Sedis Episcopus ; Universalis autem, c Annot. in cap. v. Concil. Constant. ' [Originally written, ' in the Coun- edit. Venetiis, 1585. Surius in Concil. cil of Carthage,' in A.~\ Chalced. Can. 28. [See note K.] s Cone. Afric. Can. 92. [See note •> [' the First' added above the line.] M.] 6 Concil. Afric. per Surium. cap. h Distinct. 99. Primse. [Seenote N.] 101. [See note L.] OVERALL. Q 226 overall's convocation book. BOOK nee eliam Romanics pontifex appelletur. It is strange to con- : — sider how the bishops of Rome were vexed with this council, and how from time to time they sought to discredit it ; as also what shifts and devices ^their late proctors' have found out to the same purpose ; but all in vain, for the truth of that whole action is so manifest as it cannot be suppressed by any such shifts or practices whatsoever. PLACET EIS. JO. OVERALL. CHAP. IV. 285 Although the said council of Africk troubled the bishops of Rome, as is above mentioned, yet shortly after some other new occasions happened which stung them more sharply. For about the year 451, when the city of Constantinople was grown to be in very great honour, it seemed good to the Fathers of the Greek church and others assembled in the general council holden at Chalcedon, to make this canon following k : ' The ancient Fathers did justly grant privileges to the throne of Old Rome, because that city bare then the chief sway ; and with the same reason one hundred and fifty godly bishops being moved, did grant equal privileges to the throne of New Rome, rightly 1 judging that the city of Constantinople, which was then honoured with the em- pire and senate, should enjoy equal privileges with Old Rome ; and that in matters ecclesiastical she ought to be ex- tolled and magnified as well as Rome, being the next after her.' Against this canon™ pope Leo stormed exceedingly, and the whole council itself, in respect of the said canon, is of later years sought to be discredited. But the great and main quarrel betwixt New Rome and ' Praefat in Concil. Afric. vel Car- 28. [See note P.] thag. 6. in Concil. edit. Venetiis. 1585. ' [The word 'rightly' is added above Sander, de Visib. Monarch., lib. vii. the line by a different scribe.] Turrian. lib. iii. pro Epistolis Pontif. m Surius in Can. 28. Concil. Chal- [See note O.] ced. [See note Q.] k Concil. Chalced. per Surium Can. overall's convocation book. 227 Old Rome began about the year 586, when John the patri- book arch of Constantinople, not contenting himself to have equal — - — '— privileges with the bishops of Rome, would needs be accounted the universal bishop" ; which challenge did the rather move the bishops of Rome, because they found that Mauricius the emperor inclined greatly to his desire. "Whereupon Pelagius the Second, and after him Gregorius the First, as fearing the issue that might ensue of that contention to the great preju- 286 dice of the church of Rome, they blew successively both of them a hasty retreat, and pretended very earnestly that it was utterly unlawful for any bishop to seek so great an au- thority over all other bishops and churches. And first Pela- gius, opposing himself against the said John, patriarch of Constantinople, wrote thus to certain bishops : ' Let none of the patriarchs ever use this so profane a word ; for if the chief patriarch be called universal, the name of the other patriarchs is derogated from them ; but far be it from the mind of every faithful man so much as to have a will to challenge that to himself whereby he may seem, in any respect, how little soever, to diminish the honour of the rest of his brethren .' But Gregory in this point exceedeth p . He telleth Mauricius the emperor and others, in sundry of his epistles, 'that it is against the statutes of the Gospel for any man to take upon him to be called universal bishop ; that no bishop of Rome did ever admit of that name of singularity and profane title q ; that John his endeavour therein was an argument that the times of Antichrist drew near ; that the king of pride was at hand, and that an army of priests was prepared for him.' And thus he concludeth : ' I do confidently affirm that who- soever calleth himself universal bishop, or desireth so to be called, he doth in his pride make way for Antichrist r .' After Gregory succeeded Sabinianus, who had so hard a conceit of Gregory, his predecessor, that he was purposed to have burnt his books, rather, as we suppose, because he had written so much against the title of universal bishop, than for either of " [In the margin of A. is the ' Greg., lib. iv. Epist. 32. Ibid. Ep. following cancelled memorandum: 36.38. TSee note S.] ' Quaire an hie titulus datus sit Joanni « Ibid. Ep. 36. Ibid. Ep. 38. [See in Synodo.'] note T.] _ ° 1 Epist. Pelag. II. torn. ii. Concil. ' Id. lib. vi. Ep. 30. ad Mauricmm. [See note R.] [See note U.] q2 228 OVERALLS CONVOCATION BOOK. BOOK the conjectures which Platina mentioneth". But the issue of : — the said contention was this ; Mauricius the emperor being slain by Phocas, his servant, and Phocas himself having got- ten the empire, Boniface the Third prevailed so far with him, after much and great opposition, as the emperor gave order that the church of Rome should be called and accounted, caput omnium ecclesiarum t . Which another" man of great account amongst them in these days reporteth after this sort. 287 ' The contention betwixt the patriarch of Constantinople and the bishop of Rome, for the primacy, was again determined by Phocas the emperor pronouncing out of the old councils and Fathers that the church of Rome should be the head of all churches.' For his ' again' he might well have left it out, as also his phrases of councils and Fathers ; and therefore we prefer in this point* Platina before him, who making neither mention of councils nor Fathers, dealeth more truly, and saith that the church of Constantinople, sibi vendicare cona- batur, that place which Boniface obtained? from the emperor Phocas ; and that the same was obtained upon these grounds, viz. 'that whereas the bishop of Constantinople insisted, eb loci primam sedem esse debere ubi imperii caput esset ; it was answered by the bishop of Rome and his agents, that Con- stantinople was but a colony deduced out of the city of Rome, and therefore that the city of Rome ought still to be ac- counted caput imperii ; that the' Grecians themselves in their letters termed their prince the emperor of the Romans, and that the citizens of Constantinople were called, not Grecians, but Romans/ Indeed Platina further saith, being peradven- ture of our mind, that he will omit how the keys of the king- dom of heaven were given to St. Peter, and so to the Roman bishops, his successors, and not to the bishops of Constanti- nople; and we likewise, following his example, as a thing impertinent to our purpose, will here omit the same. Only we do observe that the contention betwixt the bishop of Rome and the bishop of Constantinople was de primatu ; and that the bishop of Rome obtained that place by Phocas his means, which the bishop of Constantinople did challenge to ' Plat, in Vit. Sabin. I. [See .note III. [See note X.] V.] x Platin. in Bonifac. III. [See note « Plat.de Bonifac. III. [See note W.] Y.] Genebrard. Chronol. de Bonifac. y [Originally, ' had obtained,' in A.~\ overall's convocation book. 229 himself. Whereupon we offer to men's considerations these book two arguments : Whosoever taketh upon him that primacy, or place in the Church, which John, the bishop of Constanti- nople, did challenge to himself, is the forerunner of Antichrist; 288 but the bishops of Rome do take upon them that primacy and place ; ergo. Again : Those priests which do adhere unto him that taketh upon him that place and primacy which John, the bishop of Constantinople, did challenge to himself, are an host prepared for the king of pride ; but all priests that do adhere to the bishop of Rome, do adhere unto him that taketh upon bim that primacy and place which John, the bishop of Constantinople, did challenge to himself; ergo. But our purpose is not to dispute 2 ; only this we add, that till this time that the bishop of Rome had prevailed so far with Phocas, as is afore mentioned, his predecessors, notwithstand- ing their great authority, after Constantine's reign and favour with the emperors succeeding*, they behaved themselves duti- fully towards them, and acknowledged them to be their lords and masters. But afterwards, in short time, they left those phrases, and began to call the emperors their sons. To which alteration a very worthy man b taking exception, he is answered by another of many good parts, it must be con- fessed, after this sort ; ' St. Gregory might call Mauricius his lord, either of courtesy or of custom ; and yet our holy father, Pius the Fourth, shall not be bound to do the like, in con- sideration that the custom hath long since been discontinued.' PLACET EIS. JO. OVERALL*. 289 CHAP. V. Although when the bishops of Rome, after much oppo- sition, had obtained their desires for their primacy before z [Here the chapter ended originally; b Bishop Jewel's Defence of his -what follows is inserted in A. by the Apol. Part-4. Dr. Harding, ibid. [See same scribe in the space which had been note 2 A.] left between the chapters.] " [The ' placet eis' and the signature 1 Innocent. III. Episc. Atinacensi in are in A. at the bottom margin of the lib. v. Decret. Constitut. [See note page, and not at the end of this chap- Z.] ter.] 230 overall's convocation book. book mentioned, they might well enough, as we suppose, have : — been contented ; yet forasmuch as still they remained in greater subjection to the emperors than they thought was agreeable with their greatness, their aspiring mind rested not there, but began shortly after to cast about how they might in their places be independent and absolute. For the compassing whereof they took hold of every occasion that might serve, or be wrested and drawn to that purpose. At the first receiving of the Gospel, men are ever, for the most part, very zealous and great favourers of the ministry. In Acts 4. 34. the Apostles' times they 'sold their lands and possessions, and laid the price of them at the Apostles' feet.' St. Paul Gai. 4. 14, was received by the Galatians as an angel of God ; yea, as Jesus Christ : and such was their love towards him that to ' have done him good they would have plucked out their eyes and given them unto him.' When the emperors of Rome became Christians, they did exceed in this behalf, especially towards the bishops of that see, bestowing upon them very great riches and ample possessions. Of all which zealous disposition, benefits and favours, they ever made, above all other bishops, their greatest advantage, by employ- ing the same to the advancement of their greatness. Wherein they were furthermore very much helped and furthered by the authority which the emperors gave unto them in tem- poral causes ; holding them for their gravity, learning, and discretion, very meet and fit persons, in their own absence from Eome, to do them that way very great service. Besides, if we shall deal sincerely and truly, as we hold 290 ourselves always bound, and more strictly in a cause of this importance, we must needs confess that it hath been the manner of divines, from the Apostles' times almost, to mag- nify and extol the worthiness and excellency of their own calling ; which was a very commendable and necessary course in many, the ordinary contempt of the ministry con- sidered, and had been so in all of them, if they had not therewith depressed too much the dignity and pre-eminence of kings and princes. Comparisons in such cases were d ever worthily held to be odious. Bishops and priests might without any just reprehension have been resembled to gold, rt [was. J.] OVEKALl/s CONVOCATION BOOK. 231 to the sun, and to what else is excellent, without comparing BOOK the highest magistrates, under God, in respect of themselves, IIL — to the moon, to lead, and to some other things of such like base estimation. And we doubt not but that they would have refrained from such comparisons, if they could have foreseen how the bishops of Rome would, to the disgrace and dishonour of civil authority, have wrested and perverted them ; notwithstanding that their inferences thereupon have ever had more show and probability than substance and truth ; except we shall say that the callings of schoolmasters and physicians are in dignity to be preferred before all other temporal callings because the end of the one is the instruct- ing of men's understandings, and of the other, health ; which either ought to be, or are, both of them in'their kinds, of greater estimation than any other things whatsoever. We shall not need to trouble ourselves with the citing of any authorities to prove how eagerly the bishops of Rome, especially after Boniface the Third had obtained of Phocas the said supremacy, have pressed the same comparisons ; it is so evident, both in their own writings and likewise generally in all their treatises, who from time to time have laboured with all their force and might to advance, above all other authority upon earth, the sovereignty of that see. PLACET EIS. JO. OVERALL. 291 CHAP. VI. Albeit the former occasions, as they were handled, and particularly the device last before specified, wrought very much in the hearts of the simpler sort to the debasing of the imperial and regal authority in respect of the spiritual, and that it was therefore prosecuted and amplified with all the skill and rhetoric that could be; yet there was another matter which troubled the bishops of Rome exceedingly, and never gave them rest until they had prevailed in it, as if 232 overall's convocation book. BOOK without it they had gained little by their primacy. It seemeth : — that Constantine the Great, when he left Rome, notwith- standing his especial benefits and favours to the bishops of that see, did in his wisdom think it fit that none should be advanced to that bishoprick without the emperor's consent. For the better manifestation whereof it is to be observed, that whilst the bishops of Rome were labouring so earnestly for their supremacy till Phocas' time, the city of Rome had been four times surprised by divers barbarous nations; anno 41 3 e , by Alaricus, the second king of the Goths, Inno- centius the First being then bishop ; anno 457, by Gensericus, the leader of the Vandals, Leo the First being then bishop ; anno 470, or thereabouts, by Odoacer, Simplicius being then bishop ; anno 493, or thereabouts, by Theodoricus and the East Goths, Gelasius the First being then bishop; and was again by Belisarius, the captain of Justinian the em- 292 peror, recovered out of their hands about the year 537, Sylverius being then bishop. By all which attempts of the said barbarous nations, although the empire received great detriment, yet the bishops of Rome had leisure to contend for superiority; because the said barbarous nations, being Christians and very superstitious, did sometimes greatly honour them, and rather admired their pomp and state than sought any ways to impeach it. "Which caused, as it seem- eth, that the bishops of Rome, at the last, began to favour them more than they did their emperors. Insomuch as anno 536 the said Sylverius obtained that bishoprick, as one noteth', Theodahato Gothorum rege jubente ; cum antea non regum sed imperatorum autoritas soleret intervenire, ' by the commandment of Theodahatus ; whereas before, in the choice of the bishops of Rome, the authority of the emperors, and not of those kings, had been usually obtained.' Whereupon when Belisarius had recovered the city from the Goths g , and was informed by certain sworn witnesses that the said Syl- verius was plotting how he might render it again unto the Goths, he, the said Belisarius, removed him from that see, e Genebrard. Ckronol. an. 413. [See 2 C] note 2 B.] s Id. ibid, ex Anastas. Procop. de ' Alphons. Ciacco. de Vit. et Gest. BelloGoth. lib. i. Evagr. lib. iv. cap. 18. Roman, in Vita Sylverii. [See note [See note 2 D.] OVEUALl/s CONVOCATION BOOK. 233 and placed Vigilius in his room. Whereof the emperor BOOK being advertised 11 , did approve greatly that which Belisarius : — had done, and took a strict order with Vigilius that no bishop of Rome should thenceforward be consecrated until the emperor had approved of him and confirmed his election, so as thereby the emperors, having then their residence at Constantinople, might be always assured of the qualities and dispositions of the new bishops, whose authority then began to be great; lest otherwise some factious person or enemy of the emperor's being advanced to that see, the city of Rome, and Italy itself, might perhaps by his means revolt from the east empire, as a great friend to Rome hath very 293 well observed ; who furthermore addeth thereunto s , that this custom did afterwards continue until the time of Benedict the Second, that is, for a hundred and fifty years ; in which space Gregory the Great and Boniface the Third, who had prevailed with Phocas for the supremacy of Rome, and eighteen bishops more successively enjoyed that bishoprick. It was but touched before how in the time of Sylverius the authority of the bishops of Rome was grown great, whilst by the incursions of the said barbarous nations into Italy the power of the emperors in this west part of the world was greatly decayed. And although Justinian the emperor re- covered in some good sort the former estate of the empire in these parts, yet not many years after, the Lombards, setting foot into Italy, did greatly impair the same. But the utter ruin of it did principally proceed, for aught we find to the contrary, from the bishops of Rome. For when about the year 686 the emperor Constantine the Fourth, greatly favour- ing Benedict the Second k , gave the clergy and people of Rome licence to choose and admit from that time forward their bishops without any further expectation of the emperor's authority to approve and confirm the same, little remember- ing the wisdom and providence of Justinian ; they, the said bishops, grew to great presumption and boldness against their succeeding emperors ; until by their means, Rome, Italy, and the western parts of the empire were utterly cut h Onuphr. in Vita Pelagii II. [See k Platin. in Vita Benedict. II. [See note 2 E.] note 2 G.] ' Onuph. ubi supra. [See note 2 F.] 234 BOOK off from the east empire ; which Justinian and his successors, by keeping the bishops of Rome in some due subjection through their authority in their preferments to that see, did seek to have prevented. No sooner had the said emperor given the bishops of Rome this immunity and freedom, but, — to omit what dangerous quarrels arose amongst the citizens of Rome in the choice of their bishops, — scarce twenty years were passed before they began to insult greatly over the emperors. It is noted for a great commendation in pope 294 Constantine the First 1 , because he was the first that durst take upon him openly to resist Philippicus, the next emperor after the said Justinian, in os, ' to his face.' But the opposi- tion which Gregory the Second made against Leo the Third, the next but one to the said Philippicus, is indeed very memorable. He proceeded so far against him for giving commandment throughout all his empire, that, for the avoid- ing of idolatry, images should be removed out of all churches, as by. his letters sent abroad, far and near" 1 , he procured such passing hatred against Leo, especially amongst the Italians, as they brake out in divers places into open rebellion. Wherein they went so far, that every city and town rejected the magistrates appointed by the emperor's authority 11 , and created magistrates of their own whom they called Dukes; entering into a course to have abrogated the empire of Con- stantinople and to have set a new emperor in Italy. From which course although the pope dissuaded them , as disliking, we suppose, to have an emperor so near him; yet he took such order as both Rome and the rest of the Italians with- drew from that time forward their customs and tributes, which had beforetimes been paid to the emperor ; and their rebellion so increased every day against him that the Romans forsook him and submitted themselves by an oath to the said Gregory the Second?, to be ordered and governed by him in all things. Whereby Rome and the dukedom thereof was violently taken from the emperor of Constantinople and bestowed upon the bishop of Rome. In respect of which 1 Onuphr. in Vita Constantin. I. [See note 2 J.] note 2 H.] °Papir.Masson.lib.iii.invit.Greg.II. m Sabellicus Ennead. 8. lib. vii. [See Blondus, ibid. [See note 2 K.] note 2 I.] p Alphons. Ciaccon. inVit Gregor. II. " Blondus Decad. 1. lib. x. [See [See note 2 L.] overall's convocation book. 235 most irreligious and unbishoplike proceedings, the patrons of BOOK that see do greatly commend him. One of them saith, ' that '■ — the bishops of Rome are either beholding to him, or to none, for their principality* 1 / For, as he in the same place further affirmeth, he made his successors great princes ; the beginning 295 whereof was hard, the progress more easy, and the event prosperous and happy. Tantas molis erat Romanam condere [Virgin. gentem ; It was a matter of so great difficulty to erect the u papacy. Indeed it is behoveful for them to measure the pope's dealings by their success and events, for otherwise they were in themselves very abominable ; every pope growing still one more insolent than another, as appeared by the practices of Gregory the Third, persisting in his predecessor's steps against the said emperor, and of Stephen the Second against Constantine the son of Leo. Now whilst these famous popes were playing their parts on the one side, as we have shewed, against the emperors, to withdraw the hearts of the Italians from him, the Saracens were as busy against him on the other side; which might have moved their holiness, if they had had the fear of God before their eyes, rather to have procured some assistance from the Italians to the emperor in a case of that nature, than to have drawn his own subjects from him. But their course was bent another way. For the Lombards beginning to trouble Rome, and they being ashamed to crave aid from the said emperor whom they had so abused, they left their own sovereigns, under pretence that in regard of their wars with the Saracens they were not able to assist them, and procured assistance from France ; first by Carolus Martellus and then by Pepin his son r , the said Stephen the Second having bound the said Pepin, as it seemeth, by an oath, that if he overcame the Lombards, all that appertained to the exarchate of Ravenna s , which had lately been the emperor's, might be annexed to the bishoprick of Rome; which was afterwards by him performed accordingly. Suitable hereunto were the proceedings of pope Adrian the First 1 , who being again troubled with the Lombards, i Papir. Masson. in Vit. Gregor. II. 8 Alphons. Ciaccon. inVit. Steph. III. [See note 2 M.] [See note 2 O.] 1 Platin.inVit.Steph.il. [See note ' Marian. Scotus. Herman. Contract. 2 N.] Platin. in Adrian. I. [See note 2 P.] 236 overall's convocation book. book obtained help from Carolus Magnus, by whose coming into ' — Italy the Lombards were shortly subdued, and the pope's 296 estate greatly advanced; but the emperor's was in effect utterly overthrown, concerning his interest and authority which he had before in those parts. For the said Carolus having vanquished the Lombards, and none else there being able to resist him, he caused the said pope to anoint his son Pepin king of Italy, and so returned into France" 1 . But four years after, Leo the Third being pope, and afterwards fallen into so great hatred amongst the Romans as he hardly escaped them with his life ; he, the said Leo, used such means as that he brought the said Charles again to Rome, before whom Leo purged himself by his oath from those accusations wherewith the Romans charged him. In requital whereof, and the rather, because at that time Irene the empress and wife of Leo the Fourth, reigned at Constantinople after her hus- band's death, which the Romans disliked; the said Charles was in Rome created emperor over the western parts ; which belonged before to the ancient empire. Touching which point, an ancient historiographer x writeth in this sort ; ' The Romans, who in heart were long before fain from the emperor of Constantinople, taking this occasion and oppor- tunity that a woman had gotten the dominion over them, did with one general consent proclaim king Charles for their emperor, and crowning him by the hands of Leo the Third, saluted him as Caesar and emperor of Rome.' And this was the fruit of the exemption which was granted to the bishops of Rome by the emperor Constantine the Fourth for their preferment to that see without the emperor's appro- bation ; Rome and Italy are cut off from the ancient empire, a new empire is erected by the practices and treacheries principally of the bishops of Rome, it being in a sort neces- sary that so notable a treason against the said ancient empire should be especially effected by such notorious instruments. PLACET EIS. JO. OVERALL. » Sigibert. ann. 781. Otho Frising. Leon. III. [See note 2 Q.] lib. v. cap. 28. Sigibert ann. 800. * Sigibert. anno 801. [See note 2 R.] Otho Frising. lib. v. cap. 30. Platin. in 237 BOOK III. 297 . CHAP. VII. Charles the Great having possessed himself, jure belli, of the greatest part of Italy, and made his son king thereof, although he bestowed much upon the church of Rome and used pope Urban very honourably, yet, he being a very wise and a provident prince, could not be ignorant how insolently the bishops of Rome had behaved themselves towards their former emperors, and how traitorously they had long sought to make them odious in Italy after they had gotten themselves to be released from the emperor's authority in their advance- ment to that see. That he might therefore prevent the like dangers for the time to come, and secure both himself and his posterity in that behalf, he so used the matter with the said Urban, as he brought the popes to their former sub- jection. The relation whereof is thus recorded by a principal upholder of that see. ' Carolus being returned to Rome/ saith he, ' appointed a synod there with pope Adrian in the patriarchal palace of Lateran; which synod was celebrated by one hundred and fifty-three religious bishops and abbots. At what time Adrian the pope, with the whole synod, de- livered or yielded to Charles's interest and power of choosing the bishop of Rome, and of ordering the apostolical see. Moreover he, the said Adrian, defined that all the archbishops and bishops through all particular provinces should receive from the said Charles their investiture ; and that none should be consecrated by any, except he were first commended and invested bishop by the king, under pain of excommunica- tion V Howbeit 2 , when Charles being dead, his son Ludovicus was, as it seemeth, so wrought upon through the softness of his 298 nature, as he was contented that the Romans" according to their own judgment should create and consecrate their new bishop, so it were done without tumult or bribery ; always provided that the new bishop should advertise him by his legates as touching his consecration, and conclude a peace j Distinct. 63. Adrianus. [See note 2 T.] 2 S.] * Alphons. Ciaccon. in Vita Pasch. I. z Platin. in Vit. Pasch. I. [See note [See note 2 U.] 238 overall's convocation book. BOOK with him; or, as another saith b , that legates should be directed unto the emperor and to his successors, kings of France, to make a league of friendship, love and peace, be- twixt them and the bishops of that see. With this order, though it tended much to the prejudice of the empire, the bishops of Rome were not long satisfied, as brooking no show of any superiority over them, but were still shifting, as they might, to cast off likewise that yoke ; which Otho the First well perceiving, when he came to the empire, sought to re- form, as knowing how dangerous their ambitious humours were to his estate, by causing Leo the Eighth, with all the clergy and people of Rome, to decree in a synod about the year 964 : ' That he, the emperor, and his successors, should have the power of ordaining the bishops of Rome ; that if any should attempt aught against this rule, he should be subject to excommunication ; and that if he repented not, then he should be punished with irrevocable banishment, or be put to death c .' Afterwards, also about the year 1046, Henry the Third, finding those bishops still to persist in their said aspiring course of exempting themselves from the em- peror's authority, and that thereby there grew divers schisms and quarrels in their elections, he held a council at Sutrium d , not far from Rome, wherein it was determined that the Romans should no more intermeddle with the choice of their bishops, but that the same should be always referred to the emperor. At what time also, the emperor made the Romans to swear, that from thenceforward they would neither choose nor consecrate any pope, but such a one as he should tender unto them. By these and such like other means, from the time of 299 Charles the Great hitherto, for about the space of 236 years, the emperors kept the bishops of Rome in some reasonable good obedience towards them; but not without their own great trouble, and much kicking and repining by those bishops at it, as growing daily worse and worse ; insomuch as there being sixty of them, if not more, who succeeded in that see, within the compass of the years before mentioned, b Distinct. 63. Ego Ludovicus. [See 2 W.] note 2 V.] •> Sigebert. Genebr. Chronol. [See c Distinct. 63. In Synodo. [See note note 2 X.] overall's convocation book. 239 about fifty of them did so degenerate from the virtues of book their predecessors, as a great friend in his time to the papacy reporteth H , that they rather deserved to be termed apotactaci apostaticive, potius quam apostolici, ' unruly, or renegates, than apostolical bishops/ The last of which number was Leo the Ninth, who within five or six years after the said council of Sutrium, renounced the emperor's favour, whereby he was preferred to the papacy, being persuaded by one Hildebrand that it was unlawful per manum laicam f to take upon him that government, and was thereupon again chosen and admitted pope by the Romans, contrary to their former oath and to the decree of the said council. This Hildebrand, being a man both of a great wit and courage, and having an eye himself unto the papacy, made his way in that behalf by thrusting five or six bishops successively into opposition against the emperor ; of purpose that if it were his fortune to come to that place, he might find the ice broken by them to his own rebellion and most traitorous designments. The said Leo became a warrior and general of the field against some troublesome persons in Italy called Normans, by Hilde- brand's means, as it seemeth, Cujus consiliis et nutu, pontifi- catus munus perpetub administravit g . The like sway he also bare with pope Nicholas the Second, who made him arch- deacon of Rome, in requital for his helping of him to the popedom; and by whose advice the said Nicholas held a 300 council in the church of Lateran, wherein it was ordained, that from henceforth the bishops of Rome should be chosen by the cardinals with approbation of the clergy and people of Rome h . Also the said Hildebrand opposed himself against the emperor, and prevailed therein for Alexander the Second, the emperor having appointed Honorius the Second to that place; which Alexander, so advanced, made a decree 1 , that no man should in time to come receive any ecclesiastical living or benefice from a layman, because it was then called simony so to do. And thus these popes by Hildebrand's instigation decreed and did what they list, to the great prejudice of the c Genebr. Chronol. Seculo 10. [See [See note 3 A.] note 2 Y.] h Alphons. Ciaccon. in Vit. Niool. II. ' Otto Frising. lib. vi. cap. 33. Platin. Genebr. Chronol. [See note 3 B.] in Leo. IX. [See note 2 Z.] ' Alphons. Ciaccon. in Vit. Alexand. t Alphons. Ciaceon. in Vit. Leon. IX. II. Genebv. Chronol. [See note 3 C] III. 240 overall's convocation book. book emperor and of his authority ; the same being now, in respect : — of former times, almost at the last cast. PLACET EIS. JO. OVEEALL. CHAP. VIII. 301 It was great policy in the emperors, as we have shewed, to do what they could for the maintenance of their authority in placing of the bishops of Rome, and in bestowing of other bishopricks and abbacies within their dominions; but such was the ignorance, hypocrisy and superstition of those times, so far spread by the inferior bishops and priests, and so rooted every where in men's hearts by k the bishops of that see, under colour of religion and of their pretended supre- macy derived by them from St. Peter, as they feared not to attempt any thing against any whosoever, so the same might tend to the advancement of their own authority. Again, it was a great oversight in Charles the Great, con- sidering his wisdom and that he well knew the proud and aspiring minds of those bishops, that after his own corona- tion at Rome by Leo the Third, he did not provide for the benefit of his successors, that none of them after that time should ever be crowned there or by the bishop of that place. For that slip and omission, being not well looked to and reformed by any that did succeed him, became at the last the great bane of the empire. Besides, the state of the emperors shortly after the days of the said Charles, did very greatly decay ; insomuch as within about sixty years, Ludovicus the Second had but the ninth part of the empire 1 , the rest being diversely and by sundry distractions and divisions rent and drawn from it. "Which weakness of the empire being throughly known to the bishops of Rome, and it discerned by them to decrease more and more, they grew more insolent than ever they were, k [as the bishops. A.~] tefrid. Viterbiens. Chronol. part. 17. 1 Otho Frising. lib. vi. cap. 1. Go- [See note 3 D.] overall's convocation book. 241 302 and began to insist upon their preeminence and great supe- book riority over the emperors ; because, forsooth, they received at '- — their hands the diadem and crown imperial. These things will appear manifestly by the proceedings of those succeeding bishops if we shall begin with Hildebrand before mentioned, who after he had procured six bishops of Rome to be poisoned by one Brazutus, as many thought, was, upon the death of Alexander the Second, anno 1073, or thereabouts, made pope himself and termed Gregory the Seventh, with the consent of Henry the Fourth then emperor, as some say, without it, say others™. But whether with it or without it, when he had gotten that place, so long by him expected, he ruffled and bestirred himself very notably in it. About that time there was a great rebellion against the em- peror in Germany by the Saxons ; who very well knowing the pride and violent disposition of the pope against the emperor, and how apt he would be to take any occasion that might tend to his own glory and to the honour of his place, desired his assistance, depraved the emperor very shamefully; and the rather to allure the pope unto them, told him by their agents that the empire was but beneficium urbis ; and there- upon moved him that he and the people of Rome would together with them administer the empire, and take order by a decree of council and agreement of princes, who should be emperor. Grata admodum Gregorio isthcec fuere" ; 'These things pleased Gregory exceedingly,' as a friend to Rome affirmeth. He thought that in such a whirling of things he was not to sit idle, as being persuaded that a fit time was come when he might free the bishops of Rome from servitude, shake off the yoke of the emperor, his abilities being dimi- nished, abrogate his authority, lawfully translate the whole power to himself, and so establish the pontifical principality. And nothing seemed more glorious for him, than, fear being 303 taken away, to stand in dread of no mortal man and to enjoy the liberty of the Church as he list himself; there being an emperor whose arms and force were not to be feared, as who m Benno Cardinal in Vita Hildebr. Reb. German. [See note 3 E.] Balseus in Greg. VII. Functius in " Aventin. Annal., lib. v. [See note Comment. Chronolog. lib. x. Platin. in 3 F.] Greg. VII. Lamb. Scbafnaburg. de 242 overall's convocation book. book did reign but at the pleasure of the bishop of Rome. Which : — points thus debated with himself and probably resolved, he joined friendship with the said rebels and traitors, promising them his best assistance agreeably to their own desires ; and thereupon being furthermore strengthened by the amity which he likewise had entertained with certain other rebels in Italy, and by the purse of a great lady in that country, one Machtilda, his concubine", as it was supposed, he fol- lowing the traitorous humours stirred up by himself and maintained a long time in sundry of his predecessors, did prosecute the emperor with admirable malice, pride and con- tempt, because he opposed himself in his own right and for his own defence against him. Which the pope took in such scorn as he cursed him by his excommunication?, released his subjects from their oaths of allegiance, and stirred them up by all the means he could to take arms and to enter into any wicked practices that might tend to the emperor's overthrow. Noluit enim, etc., 'For he would not endure it,' as one saith"!, ' that his consent should be required in the election of the bishop of Rome j nor that the emperor according to his will should have the bestowing of the bishopricks that were included within the limits of the empire.' Surely it might have pleased him to have endured both the one and the other, as sundry popes, his equals, had done before him. And howsoever this attempt of Gregory is eagerly maintained in these days and held to be apostolical, yet then it seemed very strange to many. Thereof an ancient historiographer writeth in this sort'. Lego et relego Romanorum regum et imperatorum gesta, etc. ; ' I read over and over again the acts of the Roman kings and emperors, but can find in no place that any of them before Henry the 304 Fourth was s ever excommunicated by the bishop of Rome or deprived of his kingdom.' And again' : ' The empire was the more vehemently moved with indignation through the novelty of this attempt, because such a sentence against the emperor of Rome was never beard of before those times.' ° Lamb. Sehafnaburg. anno 1077. note 3 K.] [See note 3 G.] * [was excommunicated, fl.] p Platin. in Greg. VII. Abbas Urs- « Otho Prising, de Gestis Fred., lib. i. pergen. [See note 3 H.] cap. 1. Sigibert in anno 1088. Vin- i Genebr. Chronol. [See note 3 I.-] cent, in Spec. Hist, lib. xxv. ca. 84. ' Otho Prising., lib. vi. cap. 35. [See [See note 3 L.] overall's convocation book. 243 And another more ancient than the former, and almost of B o o K . in eight hundred years standing, doth not only term the said 1 — fact of the pope, a novelty, hut saith in effect that it was an heresy. These are his words : ' Surely this novelty, I will not call it heresy, was never before heard of in the world, viz. that priests should teach the people that they owe no subjection unto evil kings; and that, notwithstanding they have taken an oath of fidelity unto them, yet they owe them no fidelity, nor are to be accounted perjured that violate the said oath; nay, that if any obey their king in that case, he shall be held for an excommunicate person; and he that attempteth any thing against such a king, shall be absolved both from the offence of injustice and of perjury.' To this heretical novelty and most insolent attempt, which since hath had many false colours cast over it u , to cover the lewdness and deformity of it, we might add the said pope's very admirable pride in permitting the said emperor, when he came unto him to be absolved from the said excommuni- cation, to stand bare-footed in the frost and snow, three days at his gates. But that which ensued this novelty or heresy, this unpriestly and inhuman dealing with so great a person, is most remarkable above all the rest, viz. how he wound himself, like a cunning serpent, into the interest of the empire, and upon a slight occasion. The said rebels of Germany in their fury against the emperor having suggested unto him that the empire was a benefit belonging to the city of Rome*, to be bestowed where she thought fit ; although 305 they added therewith that the same was to be done by the bishop and by the people of Eome with the consent of other princes ; yet hej finding what would serve his turn and was most available to his own designment, did afterwards, of him- self and by his own authority, take upon him to dispose of the empire, as being void, by virtue of a second excommuni- cation, and did accordingly send a crown of gold to Rodulphus duke of Suevia, now also grown a traitor, with this inscrip- tion: Petra dedit Petro, Petrus diadema Rodolpho y ; • Abbas Urspergens. Lamb. Sohaf- 3 N.] naburg. anno 1077. Plat, in Greg. VII. ! Aventin. Anna]., lib. v. Matth. Paris. [See note 3 M.] in Gulielmo I. Paul Langius, ann. 1078. » Aventin. Annal., lib. v. [See note [See note 3 O.] R 2 244 overall's convocation book. J3 o o k ' Christ gave St. Peter authority to make emperors, and I, his -^- successor, do thereupon send you this crown, and by my authority from St. Peter, do give you the empire.' It is plain and evident that many emperors in former ages bestowed the papacy, and sometimes took it from one and gave it to another ; but that ever pope there, before this man, did so dispose of the empire, we do not find it in any approved author. Neither can we conceive or easily believe, that Christ ever gave St. Peter any such authority as is here dreamed of. Only we observe, by the report of one *, no pro- testant, that Gregory, to justify and colour his said presump- tion, bragged above measure that the West Empire was his ; that all power was in himself a ; that he was both bishop and emperor, Christ having imposed upon him those two persons ; that he had no equal, and much less any superior; that he might take all right and honour from other men, and transfer the same unto himself; and do much more than here we will mention. But touching any proof for all these great pre- rogatives, we find none, except this will serve his turn, that St. Peter received power to bind and loose, which we hold insufficient, notwithstanding that the papists now-a-days do allow them all, and admire him for it. It hath been a usual custom for the pope's friends to extol 306 those bishops of Rome most who shewed themselves, whilst they lived, the greatest practitioners and traitors against the emperors. Agreeably whereunto one saith of him b , that he was a man worthy of the pontificalship, because he depressed the insolency of politics, terrified monarchs with the glory of his name and zeal, and delivered the Church from the cap- tivity and servitude which it endured under princes; and that, of all the bishops of Home, he was one of chief zeal and authority, and a man vere apostolicus, ' truly apostolic/ and most to be praised. Proceres et populum Sacramento prcestito sancte solvit, et, ut Rodolpho adhcereant, sanctius imperat ; ' he did godly absolve the noblemen and people from their oath of allegiance to the emperor, and did more holily command them not to obey him.' What was thought long since of " Aventin. Annal., lib. v. [See note power was in himself.'] 3 P.] b Genebrard. Chronol. [See note ■ [D. omits the clause, ' that all 3 Q.] overall's convocation book. 245 these so godly and holy practices we have above touched ; b O O K and we must also of necessity confess that to be true which 1IL this author and his fellows do write, of Gregory's greatness. For it is further recorded of him c , that he did first erect imperium pontificium, ' the papal empire.' But touching his virtues, if an ancient cardinal, that wrote his life, did know him, there is no cause why any man should be in love with them. And as concerning this new and before unheard-of pontifical empire, if we may believe another of their own authors' 1 , it brought with it into the west empire, wars, bloodshed, homicide, parricide, hatred, whoredom, theft, sacrilege, dissension and sedition, both civil and domestical, corruption of the Scriptures, , false and sycophantical inter- pretations, with many more mischiefs there by him men- tioned ; and yet, saith he, Gregory's successors did uphold it by the space of four hundred and fifty years, invito mundo, invitis imperatoribus, ' in spite of the world and of the 307 emperors,' and thereby drew both heaven and hell into their subjection and servitude. Again e ; 'In former times, God, as a most indulgent father, did often chastise the western Christians by Saxons, Huns, Normans, Venetians, Lombards and Hungarians, men differing from us in religion ; but now, as if God were become an angry father towards us, and we were neglected and disinherited by Him, we have, for above four hundred years, tyrannised amongst ourselves, worse than Turks ; we deceive, we circumvent, we kill, we turn our weapons into our own bowels, we are left to our own lust, we live as we list, we behave ourselves proudly, covetously, without punishment, and we are not ashamed to give God the lie.' PLACET EIS. JO. OVERALL. c Aventin. Annal., lib. v. Benuo Car- d Aventin. ubi supra. [See note 3 S.] dinalis. [See note 3 R.] " Ubi supra. [See note 3 T.] 246 overall's convocation book. BOOK III. CHAP. IX. 308 It were impertinent to our purpose, to enter into any par- ticular relation of the great stirs and troubles which, through the pride of the bishops of Rome after Gregory the Seventh's time, were moved throughout all Christendom during the said term above mentioned of four hundred and fifty years, whilst the emperors with their adherents endeavoured still to have retained their ancient authority, both in the choice of the said bishops and of bestowing of other ecclesiastical prefer- ments in the empire, which the popes with their friends did withstand with all their might and possible means and practices that they could devise and put in execution by their excommunications and stirring up the emperors' subjects to rebel against them. In which garboils and bloody oppo- sitions when the emperors prevailed, the popes were deposed and others set up in their rooms ; betwixt whom, the parties displaced, to recover their dignity, and the others, possessed of it, to retain it, no cruelty or cunning stratagems were omitted. And on the other side, when the popes got the upper hand of the emperors, for the most part by treason and rebellion, and always by constraint and violent usurpation, they did not spare to use them most dishonourably, and with all the reproach and contempt that might be well devised. Some examples whereof may be these. Whereas before pope Paschal the Second his time, the former bishops of Rome were accustomed to add the years of the emperors to their bulls, epistles, and libels, he, the said Paschal, a little after Gregory the Seventh's days, altered that course*, and withdrawing the years of the emperor Henry 309 the Fifth, whom he had otherwise greatly vexed, added the number of his own papacy ; which was a very insolent and a proud attempt, and yet ever since, for alight we remember, the same hath still been continued by all his successors. Innocentius the Seconds, having brought Lotharius the em- peror to some dishonourable compacts and conditions before he would crown him, caused the story thereof, not without a ' Aventin., lib. vi. [See note 3 U.] cap. 10. Alphons. Ciaccon. in Vita In- * Radevicus de Gestis. Feder., lib. i. nocentii II. [See note 3 V.] 247 great blemish to the imperial majesty, to be painted on the BOOK wall of his palace, with these two reproachful verses under it : — — — Rex venit ante fores, jurans pritis Urbis honores; Post homo fit papa; ; sumit, quo dante, coronam. Alexander the Third h , when Frederick the emperor was driven through rebellion of his subjects to come unto him for his absolution, set his foot upon his neck, and applied these words of the Psalm unto himself ; Super aspidem et basiliscum [Ps.91.13j ambulabis, et conculcaMs leonem et draconem. It is reported of Coelestinus the Third, that with his feet he set the crown upon the head of Henry the Sixth, and with one of them struck it off again ; shewing thereby that he could make and unmake emperors at his pleasure. But we will omit these insolent facts, as also the great and dishonourable servitude whereunto by extremity they brought the emperors, and whereof the pope's Records and Books do make mention 1 ; as of carrying up their first dish, giving of them water, bearing up their trains, leading their horses, holding their stirrup, and kissing their feetj and will apply ourselves to the consideration of their divinity, how they have dealt with the Scriptures to uphold these presumptions, and apostatical, and no way apostolical, seditions, rebellions, murders and treasons. One of their own friends observing, how shortly 310 after Gregory the Seventh his time, his successors, by his example, behaved themselves in this behalf, writeth thus k : 'The most holy philosophy delivered from heaven by the Holy Ghost, they make apt or fit to their own conditions ; by their interpretations they compel it to serve their ambition ; the determinations and decrees of Christ they will not keep, but make them to serve their own humours. 1 "We have shewed before how by sundry councils it was decreed that the emperors should have the investing of bishops within their own dominions ; and Paschal the Second himself yielded as much to Henry the Fifth ', being then present ; but after his departure from Borne the case was altered, for then he could affirm with show of great devotion, that such a privilege h Canon. Chron., lib. iv. Alphons. Ceremoniale Rom., lib. i. [See note Ciaccon. in Vita Alexand. III. Genebr. 3 X.] Chronol. Rannlphus in Polychron., lib. k Aventin., lib. vi. [See note 3 Y.] vii. [See note 3 W.] ' Abbas Urspergens. Aventin., lib. vi. ' Pontif. Rom. Giegor. XIII. par. i. [See note 3 Z.] ' 248 overall's convocation book. BOOK was against the Holy Ghost. And another bishop, as it were, — — : — to uphold him therein, affirmed that it contained wickedness and heresy. To which purpose, we suppose, some places of the Scriptures were notably perverted. In which course Hadrian the Fourth presumed very far, when he durst write thus : ' Whence hath the emperor his empire but from us ? By the election of princes he hath the name of king ; by our consecration he hath the name of emperor, Augustus, and Caesar. Ergo, per nos imperat ; therefore he reigneth by us, and that which he hath, he hath from us. Behold, it is in our power to bestow the empire on whom we list m .' And how doth he prove all this ? Forsooth, by the words of the Lord Jer. i. 10. to the prophet Jeremy ; Proptereb, constituti a Deo, etc. ; ' We are, to that end/ saith he, ' placed by God over nations and kingdoms, that we may destroy, and pull up, and build, and plant.' Herein Innocentius the Third likewise had an especial gift ; for, speaking of Sylvester, he saith, he was both a bishop and a king"; relying not only upon the Scriptures, where Rev. 19. Christ is called King of kings, and Lord of lords, but upon l Pet. 2. 9. another place of St. Peter, ' You are a chosen generation and royal priesthood;' which words, he affirmeth, may be spi- ritually understood of Sylvester's successors, because, saith he, ' the Lord hath chosen them to be both priests and kings.' 311 And to prevent an objection, lest any man should ask where it might be found that the Lord had so chosen them to both those great dignities, he telleth us that Constantine by a divine revelation gave unto Sylvester, with a crown of gold, the whole kingdom of the west. But yet he hath some better proofs to this purpose. For whereas Christ said unto Luk. a. 4. St. Peter, Due in altum, ' Launch out into the deep,' this deep, saith Innocentius °, is Rome, which had then the pri- macy and principality over all the world; and therefore, where the Lord saith, ' Launch out into the deep,' it is as though He should have said, Vade Romam, ' Go to Rome,' the seat both of the priesthood and the empire. Again, ex- Wat. 24.45. pounding these words, ' Who is a faithful servant and wise, whom his master hath made ruler over his house?' he m Aventin., lib. vi. [See note 4 A. J » In Fest. SS. Petri et Pauli, Serm. ii. " Innocent. III. in Festo. D. Sylvest. [See note 4: C] Papae Serm. i. [See note 4 B.] overall's convocation book. 249 applieth them to St. Peter ; and therefore thus testifieth of B o K himself; ' Of truth, I am appointed over this family ; hut who : — am I, to sit higher than kings and to hold the throne of glory ? Mihi namque dicitur in prophetd, etc. ; For to me it is said in the prophet, I have appointed thee over nations Jer.i. 10. and kingdoms, that thou mayst pluck up, and root out, and destroy, and throw down, and build, and plant P.' And a little after ; ' You see, who is this servant, even the vicar of Christ, the successor of Peter, the Christ of the Lord, the God of Pharaoh ; one placed in the midst betwixt God and man; short of God, but beyond man; less than God, but greater than man.' Likewise from St. Peter's walking on the water, he maketh this inference. ' Forasmuch,' saith he, ' as many waters are many people, and the congregations of waters are the sea; in that St. Peter did walk upon the waters of the sea, he did demonstrate his power over all the world i.' Further, this Innocentius having written a malapert letter to the emperor of Constantinople, his majesty, in answer of it, putteth him in mind how St. Peter commandeth all men [i Pet. 2. to be subject to kings 1 ; whereunto the pope replied, saying, ''' 312 that St. Peter wrote so to his own subjects, and did not therein include himself; and that moreover he might not only have remembered that it was not said to any king, but to a priest, 'Behold I have placed thee over nations and [Jer.i.io.] kingdoms,' and so followeth the words of the text ; but like- wise, that as God made two lights in the firmament of [Gen. l. heaven, a greater and a less, the one for the day, the other for the night ; so for the firmament of the universal Church He made two dignities, the pontifical and the regal; the pontifical resembling the sun, which is the great light, and the regal the moon, which is the less light ; to the end that thereby it might be known that there is as great difference 8 betwixt pontifical bishops and kings, as there is betwixt the sun and the moon. But here we must a little digress, to observe that this pope, » In Consecrat. Rom. Pontif., Serm. ii. r Innocentius Xertius Imperatori [See note 4 D.] Constant. [See note 4 F.] i Innocent. Patriarch. Constant. Epist. ' [there is a great difference. D.] Decret., lib. ii. [See note 4 E.] 250 overall's convocation book. book being swoln as big as the sun, cast his beams, not only into '■ — England and scorched king John exceedingly about the year 1212, by thundering against him and interdicting the king- dom, and by exciting his subjects to rebellion and treason, the weapons of those bishops ; but likewise fired Otho the emperor out of the empire, by raising up against him Fre- derick the Second'. And when he had played these two feats, amongst many other, he held a council at Lateran, anno 1215, wherein, to strengthen such traitorous proceed- ings, he caused it to be ordained, as it is pretended, ' that if any temporal lord, being admonished by the Church, should not purge his country from heresy, the metropolitan and other comprovincial bishops should excommunicate him ; and if within a year he did not give satisfaction in that behalf, the same should be signified to the bishop of Home, that so he, from thenceforward, might denounce his vassals absolved from their fidelity unto him, and expose his land to Catholics, to be, without contradiction, by them possessed 11 .' Upon this canon, many in these days do much rely; although 313 indeed it was but a project, amongst many other, to have been concluded in that assembly ; wherein nothing could be clearly determined, saith one of their writers x , because by wars it was broken off; which the pope labouring to suppress, died in that journey. And now we return from whence we digressed ; and leaving Innocentius, do address ourselves to Boniface the Eighth, who had as great dexterity as his said predecessor in expounding Luk. 22. of the Scriptures. For whereas the Apostles, upon a mis- taking of Christ's meaning, where He bade them provide bags and scrips for themselves, and that he who wanted a sword should sell his coat and buy one; they answered, saying, Lord, we have two swords ; this pope inferreth y , there is in the Church a spiritual sword and a temporal ; and that con- sequently they are both at the commandment of the bishops of Rome. Also to make the matter more clear touching the temporal sword, which should rule the world in all temporal • Matth. Paris in Johan. Abbas * Platin. in Innoc. III. [See note Ursperg. Genebr. Chronol. Plat, in In- 4 1.] hoc. III. [See note 4 G.] » Extrav. de Majoritate et Obed. " ConciL Lateral). can. 3. Oper. Innoc. Unam sanctam. [See note 4 J.] torn. i. [See note 1 H.] i 36,38. overall's convocation book. 251 causes, he, saith Boniface, that shall deny that St. Peter had BOOK this temporal sword, doth not well understand Christ's words, ITI- when He bade St. Peter, after he had cut off Malchus his ear, that he should put up his sword. Again; whereas the Apostle doth teach us that the spiritual man judgeth all iCor.2.15. things, but is judged by none, this good bishop doth ingross these words to the only use of the popes; and thereupon concludeth that they have power to judge and censure all earthly powers and authorities, but are themselves exempted from the checks and censures of any, as being only subject to God and to His judgment. And again ; that the spiritual authority may institute and judge the terrestrial, it is verified by the prophecy of Jeremy, ' Behold, I have placed thee this [Jer.1.10.] day over nations and kingdoms ;' for the perverting of which portion of Scripture both this pope and Innocentius the 314 Third, with all the popes that since have followed, were and are much beholding to Adrian the Fourth; he being the first 2 , for aught we find, that so did overstrain it. Lastly, that he might imitate, as he seemeth, the governor of the j hn 2. feast in the Gospel, that brought forth his best wine in the ^ l0 '^ end of the feast; and likewise such skilful rhetoricians as commonly do build their principal conclusions upon their most pinching arguments ; his Holiness relying upon the Scriptures, because it is not said, ' In the beginnings;' but, Gen. 1. 1. ' In the beginning God made heaven and earth ;' therefore except we will say with the Manichees that God did not Himself make all things, but that there was also another Creator as well as He, it must needs be confessed that there is but one, viz. St. Peter's successor, that is the chief and principal ruler of all the world ; and so he cometh to his irre- fragable conclusion, ' We declare, we define, and we pro- nounce, that it is of the necessity of salvation for all human creatures to be subject to the bishop of Borne.' "We may not therefore marvel that having thus notably made perfect the rough platform drawn out by Gregory the Seventh, rubbed over by Hadrian the Fourth, and amended by Innocentius the Third, of so infinite a .sovereignty, if he, the said Boniface, to make the honour and glory more con- 1 Aventin., lib. vi. [See note 4 K.] 252 overall's convocation book. BOOK spicuous and memorable to all posterity, after he had thrice IIL refused to yield the crown of the empire to Albertus Austria- cus, came forth one day amongst the people to be admired of them with a sword by his side, and a crown upon his head ; saying that he, and none but he, was Csesar, Augustus, em- peror, and lord of the world a . It had been plain dealing, if for the better strengthening of this his greatness, he had alleged the words in the Gospel for the honour of his lord Mat. 4. 9. paramount, ' All these will I give thee/ because he did so worthily by his said proceedings magnify his name and authority. PLACET EIS. JO. OVERALL. [Ma 20.] CHAP. X. sis We have hitherto followed the bishops of Rome through many windings, from their mean and militant condition like to their brethren, unto their glorious estate, and, as we may say, triumphant. We found them at the first little better than Mat. t« . their master, Who had not a place where to lay His head ; but now they are, as we see, become Caesars, emperors, and lords of all the world. It was long since very well said b , by a good friend of that see , Excellentia Romani imperii exMit papatum Romani pontificis supra alias ecclesias ; ' The excel- lency of the Roman empire did lift up the papacy above other churches/ Which exaltation and advancement of those bishops, he might well have added, hath been, as else- where we have said, the very bane and canker-worm of the empire itself, by their sucking out of it, for the strengthening of themselves, the juice and those vital spirits whereby formerly the vigour and glory of it did subsist, and all by rebellion and treason under the pretence of religion, and through their false glosses, applications, and violent inforce- a Juan. Maiius de Schism, part ii. b [long since said. D.~\ cap. 18. Cation. Chronica. [See note c Gab. Biel. Expos. Can. Miss. 4 L.] Lect. 23. ex Eusebio. [See note 4 M.] overall's convocation book. 253 mehts to a wrong sense of the sacred Scriptures. Wherein BOOK although they had an especial faculty, yet they could never - — have so greatly prevailed as they did against such an estate as the empire was, nor against so many great kings and other princes that were not subject unto it, if they had not been upheld in all their said wicked courses by sundry their flatterers and parasites, who imitating their examples in per- verting and wresting the Scriptures, did take upon them to make good and to justify whatsoever the said popes had 316 either done or said, were it never so impious, treacherous, or traitorous; as by that which followeth it will plainly appear. About the year 1140, which was upon the point of fifty- eight years after Gregory the Seventh's death, Theologia Scholastica sive Disputatrix, the Scholastical, or brabbling Divinity, as one calleth it d , began to peep into the world, when Peter Lombard writ his Books of Distinctions; and did not only himself thereby trouble the truth, as another saith e , with the mud of questions and streams of opinions, but also set many men after him on work in writing long commentaries upon his said Distinctions, to the hatching of infinite oppositions and difficult perplexities. In which number Thomas of Aquine bare the greatest sway; who entering into this course about forty years after Innocentius the Third his days, and finding how Gregory the Seventh, Paschal the Second, Innocentius the Second, Adrian the Fourth, Alexander 'the Third, and the said Innocentius the Third, with divers other popes, had ruffled with the emperors, and what a hand they had gotten over the Scriptures, became the chiefest champion of a schoolman that Rome ever had. Out of these words, 'Of His fulness we have all received',' Johm.i6. he was able to collect that there is in the bishop of Rome the fulness of all graces. Again, because Christ, Whom he maketh bishop of Rome, may be called, as he saith, a King and a Priest, he thereof inferreth it not to be inconvenient .that His successors should be so styled. Also, we know not how, but he hath found it out that when God said to Jeremy, 'I have set thee over nations and kingdoms,' He spake so [Jer.i.io.] d Genebrard. Chron. [See note 4 N.] ' Tho. Aquin. de Regimin. Princi- « Aventin., lib. vi. [See note 4 O.] pum, lib. iii. cap. 10. [See note 4 P.] 254 overall's convocation book. BOOK unto him, in persona vicarii Chrisli, 'in the person of Christ's : — vicar *.' Furthermore, in that Aristotle saith h , that the body hath his virtue and operation by the sonl, he supposeth it must needs follow, that the jurisdiction of princes hath her being, virtue and operation from St. Peter and his successors. For further proof whereof, as fearing it would be thought insufficient that he had said before, he buckleth himself to 317 certain facts of the popes and emperors ; saying that Con- stantine did give the empire to Sylvester ; that pope Adrian made Charles the Great emperor ; and that likewise Otho the First was created emperor by pope Leo. But at the last he striketh this point dead ; because, saith he, it is manifest that pope Zachary deposed the king of France, and absolved all his barons from their oath of fidelity; that Innocentius the Third took the empire from Otho the Fourth, and that Honorius, his next successor, dealt in like sort with Frederick the Second. And, as it were to make up all, speaking of the emperor's crowns, and the custom, as it seemeth, then in use, he saith that the emperor did receive a crown of gold from the bishop of Rome, and that the pope delivered it unto him with his foot, in signum subfectionis sua et fidelitatis ad Romanam ecclesiam, 'thereby to teach him his subjection and loyalty to the church of Home 1 .' But hitherto we have heard this great schoolman by way of discourse, wherein, peradventure, he is more remiss and dissolute than when he presseth his points logically, as the manner is in schools. "We will therefore trace him a little in that path ; if first we shall observe that it is his custom, when he handleth a question that doth concern the church of Borne, as soon as he hath propounded it, he first proceedeth with his videtur quod non, and bringeth sometimes both Scriptures and Fathers for the negative part; his purpose still being to encounter them with his sed contra est, 'but such or such a pope holdeth the contrary:' and then he cometh in first with his conclusion, and secondly with his dicendum est : wherein he so laboureth and bestirreth him- self, as that always the said Scriptures and Fathers are k Tho. Aquin. de Regimin. Princi- ' Tho. Aquin. de Regimin. Princi- pum, cap. 19. pum, cap. 20. [See note 4 Q.1 * Cap. 10. J 255 wrung and enforced to yield to the pope. As for example, BOOK -having propounded this question, 'Whether for apostasy — — — 318 from the faith a prince do lose his dominion over his sub- jects, and so consequently, if he he excommunicated V there heing the same reason for the one that there is for the other, as two great cardinals do affirm 1 , he falleth upon his videtur, saying, ' it seemeth that a prince for apostasy from the faith doth not lose his dominion over his subjects, but that they are still bound to obey him ; for St. Ambrose saith that Julian the emperor though he were an apostata, yet had under him Christian soldiers, to whom when he said, — Bring forth your army for defence of the commonwealth, they obeyed him. Therefore for the apostasy of the prince, their subjects are not absolved from his dominion. Moreover, an apostata from the faith is an infidel ; but some holy men are found faithfully to have served infidel masters, as Joseph did Pharaoh, Daniel Nebuchadnezzar, and Mardochee Assuerus ; therefore for apostasy from the faith, it is not to be yielded but that such a prince must be obeyed by his subjects. Sed contra est quod Gregorius Septimus dicit ; but Gregory the Seventh is of a contrary opinion, where he saith, We, keeping the statutes of our holy predecessors, do by our apostolick authority absolve from their oath those who are bound to excommunicate persons by fealty or the sacrament of an oath ; and do by all means prohibit them that they keep not their fidelity unto them, until they come to satisfaction.' Whereupon Thomas concludeth that all apostatas are ex- communicated, sicut et hceretici, as all heretics are ; and that therefore their subjects are delivered from their obedience and oaths of fidelity unto such lords and princes; and so addeth his dicendum est; where dallying and shifting with his distinctions, the answer which he maketh to the words of St. Ambrose is this; 'At that time the Church,— being in her minority, had not the power to bridle princes ; and 'that therefore she suffered the faithful to obey Julian the Apos- tata in those things quae nondum erant contra fidem, which 319 were not then against faith ; ut majus periculum fidei vita- retur, that the greater danger of faith might be eschewed/ k 2a. 2se. Qusest. 12. art 2. [See ' Card. Toledo. Card. Alanus. note 4 R.] 256 overall's convocation book. book And the second objection he more slightly passeth over, : — saying that there is not the like reason of infidels and apostatas. And thus this great schoolman, relying upon the authority of Gregory the Seventh, had adventured to oppose himself against the examples alleged out of the Old Testa- ment, against the practice of the primitive Church, and against the judgment of St. Ambrose, not caring how many thousands by this rebellious doctrine might come to destruc- tion, so as the bishops of Rome might have the world at their commandment. We here omit how as Thomas and divers others writ many large volumes upon Peter Lombard, the Master of the Sentences, his Distinctions ; so afterwards, and especially of later times, books upon books have been pub- lished upon his, the said Thomas', works ; all of them pur- suing, as they come unto it, this seditious and traitorous doctrine so clerk-like handled by their master. Only we observe this great schoolman's conscience, how in labouring to shift off the truth maintained by St. Ambrose, he could pass over a lie in Gregory the Seventh, where he saith that in absolving of subjects from their oath of obedience, and in prohibiting them from performing their duties and fidelity towards their sovereigns, he followed the statutes of his holy predecessors ; being himself the first that ever durst be so desperate ; as also that he confesseth it was not in St. Ambrose his time contra fidem for subjects to obey their sovereigns, though they were either infidels or excommu- nicate; and likewise how thankfully the bishops of Rome accepted and approved this man's travails, so resolutely undertaken on their behalf. Urbanus the Fourth did so admire him m , as he reputed his doctrine veluti coelilus de- lapsam, ' as to have fallen from heaven.' Innocentius so admired both him and his great learning, ut ei primum post canonicam Scripturam locum tribuere non dubitaverat, ' as he doubteth not to give unto him and to his works above all 320 other Fathers and writers", the next place after the canonical Scriptures : and John the Twenty-second made him a saint in the year 1329°, about forty-nine years after his death. m Aug. Hunnae Epist ad Pium V. thers and writers' are omitted in D 1 in Sum. Aquinat. [See note 4 S.] ° Surras de Sanctorum Histor. torn " [The words ' above all other Fa- ii. Martii 7. [See note 4 T.] overall's convocation book. 257 He was born during the reign of Henry the Third, king of BOOK England ; died about the second year of king Edward the : — First, and was canonized a saint in the time of king Edward the Second ; so ancient is this chief pillar of popery. PLACET EIS. JO. OVERALL. CHAP. XI. JustinianP the emperor, about the year 533, did so con- tract the civil law as he brought it from almost two thousand books into fifty q , besides some other which he added of his own. Howbeit shortly after, it grew out of use in Italy, by reason of the incursions of sundry barbarous nations, who, neglecting the imperial laws, did practise their own; till after almost six hundred years, that Lotharius Saxo, the emperor, about the year 1136 r did revive again in that country and in other places also the ancient use and autho- rity of it. Which course of the emperor did not much con- tent, as it seemeth, the bishops of Rome, because it revived the memory of the ancient honour and dignity of the empire. Whereupon, very shortly after, Eugenius the Third 3 set Gra- tian in hand to compile a body of canon law, by contract- ing into one book the ancient constitutions ecclesiastical and canons of councils ; that the state of the papacy might not in that behalf be inferior to the empire ; which work the said Gratian performed and published in the days of Stephen 321 king of England, about the year 1151, terming the same Concordia discordantium Canonum, ' A Concord of disagree- ing Canons/ Of whose great pains therein so by him taken, a learned man saith thus ; Gratianus Me jus pontificate dila- niavit at que confudiP ; 'that fellow Gratian did tear in piecea p Genebr. Chronol. [See note 4 U.] [See note 4 V.] '' [The remaining words of this sen- s Petr. Gregor. Partition. Juris Ca- tence are added in the margin of A. non., lib. i. cap. 1. [See note 4 W.] in a different hand.] l Arentin. lib. vi. [See note 4 X.] ' Abbas Ursperg. Carion. Chron. OVERALL. S 258 overall's convocation book. book the pontifical law and confound it ;' the same being in our '- — libraries sincere and perfect. But this testimony or any thing else to the contrary that might truly be objected against that book notwithstanding, the author's chief purpose being to magnify and extol the court of Rome, his said book got, we know not how, this glorious title, Decretum aureum Divi Gratiani"; ' The Golden Decree of St. Gratian ;' and he himself, as it appeareth, became, for the time, a saint for his pains. Indeed he brake the ice to those that came after him, by devising the method which since hath been pursued, for the enlarging and growth of the said body, by some of the popes themselves. Gregory the Ninth, about the year 1236, and in the time of king Henry the Third*, after sundry draughts made by Innocentius the Third y , and others, of a second volume of the canon law, caused the same to be perused, enlarged, and by his authority to be published ; and being divided into five books, is entituled, The Decretals of Gre- gory the Ninth. Boniface the Eighth, the great Augustus, as before we have shewed, commanded likewise another col- lection to be made of such constitutions and decrees as had either been omitted by Gregory, or were made afterwards by other succeeding bishops and councils ; and this collection is called, Sextus Liber Decretalium, ' The Sixth Book of the Decretals ;' and was set out to the world in the year 1298, in the reign of king Edward the First. Clement the Fifth, in like manner, having bestowed great travail upon a fourth work, comprehending five books, died before he could finish it z ; but his successor, John the Twenty-second, did, in the year 1317, and in the time of king Edward the Second, make 322 perfect and publish the same work of Clement, and gave it the name of The Clementines". Afterwards also came out an- other volume, termed The Extravagants ; because it did not only comprehend certain degrees of the said John the Twenty- second, but likewise sundry other constitutions made by other popes, both before and after him, which flew abroad uncertainly in many men's hands, and were therefore swept " Decret. Grat. impress. Paris, anno y Genebr. Chronol. [See note 4 Z.I 1510. [See note 4 Y.] '■ Prooem. Clementin. 1 Petr. Greg. ib. " In fine Clem. [See note 5 A.] overall's convocation book. 259 up and put together after the year 1478, into one bundle, BOOK called Extravagant Decretals b , which came to light Post Sex- LLL turn, ' after the Sixth/ By which title the compiler of this work would gladly, as it seemeth, have had it accounted the seventh book of the Decretals ; but it never attaining that credit, the same by Sixtus Quintus his assent is attributed to a collection of certain other constitutions made by Peter Matthew , of divers popes from the time of Sixtus the Fourth, who died in the year 1484. To all these books mentioned, there have beeu lately added three great volumes of Decretal Epistles, from St. Clement to Gregory the Seventh his days ; also a huge heap of the pope's bulls, from the said Gregory's time to Pius Quintus ; and lastly, no short sum of papal constitutions set forth a little before the said seventh book of the Decretals. So as all these volumes being put together, they exceed as far the body of the civil law, as the usurped dignity of the papacy exceedeth the mean estate of the empire. PLACET EIS. JO. OVERALL. 323 CHAP. XII. We have in the former chapter made mention of the new and later sort of decretals, bulls, and constitutions, not knowing what credit the popes will bestow upon them here- after; and therefore leaving them to their chance, we have thought it expedient to return to the ancient canon law, re- vived and approved not long since by Gregory the Thirteenth, where we find a new ocean of questions, disputations, quarrels and babblements. For as it happened with the civil law, that it no sooner was again renewed and restored by Lotharius d , but sundry great doctors began to write many books and com- mentaries upon it, to explain it, and to discuss the difficulties b Extrav. de. pcenit. et remiss. Etsi. stitut. praefat. ad Sixtum Quintum. Intitul. Extravag. [See note 5 B.] [See note 5 C] ' Petrus Matthasus in summa Con- d Genebr. Chvon. [See note 5 A.] s2 260 overall's convocation book. book which did arise in it ; so fell it out with the canon law, the '- — number being almost infinite of glossographers that made short notes upon it, and of canonists who set forth large dis- courses for the salving of contradictions and of many other ab- surdities. Amongst all which lawyers, doctors, glossographers, and canonists, assisted, as every man's fancy led him, with many schoolmen and sundry divines, such as they were, there did shortly after grow many great controversies and endless oppositions. The civilians of Italy, perceiving by the body of the civil law how far the empire was dejected from that royal estate and majesty which once it enjoyed, and finding also that many of the best reasons in their judgments, which the popes, the canon law, the glossographers, the canonists, the schoolmen and many more, had brought to prove that the pope ought to have jurisdiction over all the churches in the world ; (as, that bees had a captain, that beasts a leader, that one is fit to end controversies, that a monarchy is the 324 best form of government, and that one must be over all to receive appeals, to give direction unto all, to punish all rebellious persons, and many such like e ,) were fully as forci- ble and strong to prove that there ought to be one emperor over all the world ; they did very stiffly and resolutely insist upon that point, and went so roundly to work in it, by force of the said reasons and with many other arguments, that some of them would needs have it heresy for any man to hold the contrary ; alleging a text for their purpose, where it is Lu. 2. l. said, that ' in those days there came a commandment from Augustus Caesar, that all the world should be taxed/ Against those Italian civilians ultramontane, the civilians on this side the Alps, Frenchmen, Spaniards, and of other countries, opposed themselves f with all their force ; not in any dislike of the honour due to the emperors, but because other- wise their masters, the kings of France, of Spain, and of divers other kingdoms, who had freed themselves long before from the empire, should be brought again, de jure at the least, by the foresaid reasons to be subject unto it. Where- upon, in confutation of them, and to strengthen their own • Dominic. Soto de Jure et Justit. [See note 5 B.] lib. iv. QuiEst. 4. Artie. 2. Barth. Cas- f Barth. Cassan. ibid. Ferd. Vasquez. saneeus in Catalog. Glor. Mundi, par. Controv. lib. i. cap. 20, 21. [See note 5. censid. 29. Navarr. in cap. Novit. 5 C] overall's convocation book. 261 assertion, they alleged that one bee was never the captain BOOK over all bees, nor one crane the general of all cranes, nor one - beast the leader of all beasts ; that it was against the law of God, the law of nature and of nations ; that there were never any monarchs so great, but there were in the world many kings who were never subject unto them ; that the place of Scripture is to be understood of all the places in the world that were then under the Romans, and ought to be extended no further ; that a monarchy is then best, when it is contained within such limits as it may well be governed; that all monarchies hitherto had ever their bounds, which were well known ; that it is impossible for all men to fetch justice from 325 one place, or to receive thence any benefit by their appeals ; and so after many other such arguments they do conclude, that to think that the emperor ought to have the government of all the world is a vain, an absurd and an untrue conceit. Now we are to consider how in all these troubled disputa- tions and oppositions, the glossographers, canonists, school- men and parasitical divines, that were sworn to the pope, behaved themselves. As soon as the civil law began to flourish, as being read by the emperor's commandment in sundry universities, Gregory the Ninth 8 began to smell what was like to come of it, and therefore did afterwards forbid it to be read in Paris, being the especial place then h , as it seemeth, where it was most esteemed. But as touching the point so controverted, when these champions of the popes saw how the matter went, and that either they must hold that there ought to be but one emperor over all king- doms in the world, or else be forced to confess that there ought not to be one pope over all the churches in the world, the same reason being as pregnant for the one as for the other, they joined with the Italian civilians' that there ought to be but one emperor. Marry, how ? Forsooth, remem- bering Gregory the Seventh, Adrian the Fourth, Innocentius the Third, and that great Augustus Caesar, Boniface the Eighth, and divers other popes, how emperor-like they had demeaned themselves and what great authority they chal- et Carion. Chronic. [See note 5 D.] ' Ferdin. Vasquez. lit supra. Barth. h Genebr. Chronol. [See note 5 E.] Cassan. ut supra. [See note 5 F.] 26.2 overall's convocation book. book lenged ; the said pontifical champions fell to this issue, that : — the pope being Christ's vicar, who was ' Lord of lords, and King of kings,' it must needs follow that the pope was like- wise that one emperor who was to govern over all the world in temporal causes, as he did all the churches in the world in ecclesiastical causes. And thereupon they reasoned in this sort ; Christ is Lord of all the world ; but the pope is Christ's 326 vicar on earth ; therefore the pope is lord of all the world. Again, the emperor is the pope's vicar and his successor in all temporal causes; therefore the emperor is lord of all the world, all temporal jurisdiction being habitually in the pope, and from him derived to the emperor. And many of the Italian lawyers, especially such as mixed their studies with the canon law, were well enough content, that so as the em- peror might be lord of all, how and whence he had it, whether from God or from the pope, they stood indifferent. But for all this, the French and Spanish lawyers stuck to their tackling, and were peremptory that neither the pope nor the emperor had any such universal dominion over all the world. And divers likewise of the said Italian doctors that were not too much addicted to the canon law, were not afraid to hold and maintain that the emperor held as well from God the authority which he had, as the pope did his papacy. How- beit such was the clamour of the canonists, of the glossogra- phers, and of the schoolmen and divines, that took their part in the pope's behalf, upon whom all their preferment, credit, and countenance did depend, as they would needs by force carry the bell away ; though their opposites, each of them, were very confident that the common opinion swayed with their sides, more standing for them than were against them. We have before briefly touched the chief grounds and rea- sons whereupon the civil lawyers, divided amongst themselves, did insist ; and therefore that we may not seem partial, we thought it fit to hear the canonists with their adherents whilst they tell us that all the world is the pope's, at his dis- position, as well the emperor as any other the meanest per- son whosoever; 'Because (1.) that Christ had all power given Him. (2.) That the pope blesseth the emperor. (3.) 327 That the bishops of Rome do anoint them. (4.) That the Church triumphant hath but one prince. (5.) That Inno- OVERALL'S CONVOCATION BOOK. 263 centius told the king of France that he did not intend to B O O K abate his jurisdiction ; whereby it is collected, that if he had — _ — pleased, he might have so done k . (6.) That in the vacancy of the empire the pope hath the government of it. (7.) That the pope translated the empire from the Grecians to the Ger- mans. (8.) That the papacy exceedeth the empire as far as gold doth lead, or as men do beasts. (9.) That pope Nicholas saith, Christ gave to St. Peter, the key-carrier of eternal life, jura terreni simul et ccelestis imperii ; ' the authority both of the earthly and of the heavenly empire 1 / (10.) That optimum optima decent ; but the monarchical government is best, and so fittest for the pope. (11.) That no man giveth that to another which he hath not himself: but the pope giveth licence to choose the emperor and to govern in temporal causes. (12.) That as the body is for the soul, so temporal government is for the spiritual. (13.) That reason teacheth us, when an office is committed to any, that also is thought to be committed without the which it cannot be executed ; but except the bishop of Rome may rule all the world, he cannot discharge the office that is committed unto him. And lastly, to omit infinite such like collections, this argument is reserved, after many other, by a great clerk, that it might strike home, viz. because it is defined by Boniface the Eighth, that no man can be saved except he be subject to the bishop of Rome. Which argument is held so strong as it carrieth with it divers other of little less force than itself, as that St. Peter had a sword, because Christ bade him to put up 328 his sword. (2.) Ecce duo gladii, 'Behold here are two [Lu. 22.3a] swords •' one sword must be under another ; the temporal under the spiritual. (3.) It is not agreeable to the general course of things that they should have all equally their im- mediate being. (4.) The spiritual power ought to institute the temporal. (5.) The 'spiritual man judgeth all things/ [iCor. 2. and therefore what Catholic can deny that the bishop of Rome hath both swords, the one actually, the other habitu- ally, to be drawn at his commandment 111 .' We have not quoted the several authors that are parties k [Originally written, 'thatif helist, ' Stanisl. Orichovius in Chimoera. he could abate his jurisdiction.' The [See note 5 G.] alteration is made in the margin of the m Navarr. Relect. c. Novit. in 3. MS. by the original scribe.] Notabil. [See note 5 H.] 264 overall's convocation book. BOOK unto the particulars which we have touched in this chapter ; — because twenty such margents would not contain them. Only we refer ourselves, in that behalf, unto these few which we have noted and selected from the rest ; unto which number if we shall add John of Paris, Bellarmin, and Covarruvias, they" altogether will furnish a man with divers sorts of other authors, such as they are, who have disputed these points at large, and in that manner as we are driven into a great ad- miration that any men of understanding could be so sottish either to write as they have done, or to give any credit to such ridiculous j anglings ; or rather indeed that ever Chris- tian kings and princes should have endured such impostors so long to seduce their subjects, and presumptuously to shake and dishonour the royal authority given them from God to have bridled such insolency. PLACET EIS. JO. OVERALL. CHAP. XIII. 32?. Notwithstanding that the bishops of Rome, especially since Gregory the Seventh's time, have ruffled and tyrannized, as before we have shewed, and that still they have been supported in all their wicked attempts, partly by stirring up subjects to rebel against their sovereigns, and partly by the canonists, schoolmen, monks, friars, hirelings, and flatterers ; yet their hypocrisy, pride, covetousness and ambition, were never so closely covered and cloaked with St. Peter's name, and sundry other falsehoods, wringings and wrestings, but that their nakedness in that behalf, with all their deformities, were clearly discovered by the wiser sort; and there were always some that spared not, as there was occasion for the discharging of their consciences, to speak the truth. When the said Gregory did so proudly encounter with the empe- ror Henry the Fourth", he was condemned for a perjured ■> Johan. de Paris, tract, de potest. 2. part. Relect. § 9. [See note 5 I.] Regia et Papali. Bellarm. de sum. ° Abbas Urspergens. an. Pont, lib. v. cap. i. Didac. Covarruvias. Aventin., lib. f. [See note 5 J.] overall's convocation book. 265 person and deposed from his place by a council held at book Worms in the year 1076, by all the bishops of Germany — m -— almost, saving those of Saxony, who in his quarrel were become traitors to the empire. And afterwards also p , in the year 1080, the said Gregory was more roughly handled in another council of thirty bishops at Brixia ; wherein he was declared to be a perturber of the Christian empire, a sower of discord, a protector of perjury, a murderer, a necromancer, one possessed with a wicked spirit, a man altogether un- worthy of the papacy, and therefore to be deprived and expelled. Henry the Fifthi with his council did easily discern the packings both of Paschal the Second and of his predecessors ; 330 when he complained of their thrusting him into arms against his father; and how geridore oppresso, f his father being overborne/ they sought Ukewise his suppression and over- throw. He charged them with great unthankfulness in that, being made rich by the emperors, they were never satisfied, but under a religious pretence of ecclesiastical liberty desired still more and more, and that by shaking off from their shoulders all duties and subjection, they did affect the empire itself and would not cease until they had attained if. With this the emperor's plainness the said Paschal being incensed, made certain unlawful decrees against the said emperor; which decrees the divines of Fruxinum, who were accounted the most learned men in all Germany, did condemn and reverse, as being contrary to the word of God. Upon the insolent speeches of Adrian the Fourth's messenger, one that was present had slain the said messenger if the emperor had not stayed him. And two archbishops thereupon did write to Rome, accusing the priests there of pertinacy, pride, cove- tousness and faction against the empire ; requiring them to give Adrian their pope some better counsel 3 . Frederick the Second, in one of his letters to the princes of Christendom, in defence of himself against Gregory the Ninth, doth likewise most notably describe the ambitious aspiring hearts of the bishops of that see; affirming that p TIrspergens. an. 1080. Aventin., ' [' had it ended.' D.] lib. v. [See note 5 K.] " Aventin., lib. vi. [See note 5 M.] ' Aventin., lib. vi. [See note 5 L.] 266 overall's convocation book. book they sought the overthrow of the empire and to bring all 111: men in servitude under them, to the end that they them- selves might thereby be more feared and reverenced than Almighty God'. But the archbishop of Juvavia, now called Saltzburg u , in an oration which he made in a council of state during the said emperor's reign, exceedeth in this argument; where he affirmeth that those bishops, libidine dominandi, did trouble the whole world, audendo, fallendo, e/ 331 bella ex bellis serendo*. Also Otho regulus Boiorum, the prince of Bavaria, in the days of Innocentius the Fourth, told the bishops that joined with the pope, that as they grew to their greatness by discord, so being overcome with desire of honour, in stirring up wars, they were worse than Turks or Saracens. Moreover in the days of Honorius the Fourth, the bishop of Tube, when the pope would have set the emperor in war against the French, and under that pretence required by his legate, of all the clergy in Germany, non decimas sed quartos, ' not the tenth, but the fourth part of their livings/ moved the said clergy and many of the state then present, that they should no longer submit themselves unto the Romish vultures, who had very long tyrannized, and laboured nothing more than to thrust princes into war one against another ; adding thereunto, that the pope had armed the Scythians, Arabians, and Turks, against them ; and that he verily thought that the pope loved them better than he did the Germans. And what men thought?, when they durst speak, of the bishops of Rome and his priests, in the days of Nicholas the Fourth, it may appear by the words of a nobleman, one Menardus, earl of Tyrol, as we conceive, when he said, ' that he would never make himself a scorn to such effeminate antichrists and prodigious eunuchs ; who being indeed,' saith he, ' our servants, do fight for superiority, and would domi- neer over us that are their lords. They are worse than Turks, Saracens, Tartars, and Jews ; and do more injury to Christian simpbcity.' Dominationem arripiunt, ' they will by ' Matth. Paris, in Hen. III. Aven- * Munster Cosmogr., lib. iii. Aven- tin., lib. 7. [See note 5 N.] tin., lib. iii. [See note 5 O.] " [The words, ' now called Saltz- ? Aventin. ut supra. [See note 5 P.] burg,' are added above the line.] overall's convocation hook. 267 force overrule all.' In the time of Ludovicus Bavarus* the book emperor, although three popes successively opposed them selves against him with all the mischievous practices that they could devise, yet many learned men, both divines and civil lawyers, did justify the emperor's proceedings, and con- 332demn the popes. And some wrote books to that effect, saying to the emperor, Tu, nos pugnis, ense, ferro, &c. ; ' Do thou deliver us from the pope's servitude by force.' Nos te lingua, &c. ; ' And we will revenge our quarrel with our tongues, our pens, our letters, our style, our books and words a .' And thereupon accordingly, as their own author saith b , they proved by the testimony both of divine and human laws, Joannem libidine dominandi insanire, ' that John the pope was grown mad through his desire of principality and sovereignty.' Also the emperor himself , about the year 1324, speaking in scorn of the said John the Twenty-Second, saith, that the pope, in taking upon him to be both Augustus and Pontifex, shewed himself therein to be monstrum biceps, ' a monster with two heads ;' and that it was apparent by divinity and by all laws, that the bishop of Rome had no interest to both these dignities. Many notable things are contained in divers of this emperor's letters and decrees, as also in the said orations and writings above here mentioned, which are very worthy to be perused and made more known than they are; all of them labouring to suppress that in- solency of the bishops of Rome, in challenging to themselves the right of the empire and the authority to confirm the same as they thought good ; making the emperors thereby their vicars or substitutes. But it is most of all worthy the diligent observation, that in these later times, when the grossness of popery hath been more throughly looked into and scanned, the Jesuits them- selves are grown to be ashamed of the said most absurd and ridiculous challenge. And therefore Cardinal Bellarmin d hath written five chapters against it, wherein first he distin- guisheth them from Catholic divines who maintained that ' Marsil. Patavin. Jo. Gandaven. Patavin. [See note 5 R.] Lxvit. de Berbenburg. Andr. Bishop of b Aventin., lib. vii. [See note 5 S.] Fruxin. Ulric. Hangenor. [See note c Ibidem. [See note 5 T.] 5 Q.] d Bell, de Rom. Pont., lib. v. cap. 1. * Dante Aligerius. Will. Ockam. [See note 5 U.] Bona Gratis. Mich. Caesenates Anton. 268 overall's convocation book. BOOK opinion ; and then setting down these three propositions as '- — sure grounds of truth, viz. papam non esse dominum totius mundi; 'that the pope is not lord of all the world;' papam 333 non esse dominum totius mundi Christiani ; ' that the pope is not lord of all the Christian world ;' papam non habere ullam temporalem jurisdictionem directe ; ' that the pope had no temporal jurisdiction directly ;' he confuteth their arguments who are of another judgment. Where he shaketh off, very lightly, the chief places of Scripture and some other tes- timonies whereupon the said arguments are principally grounded ; as that of two swords ; and where Christ saith, [Mat. 28. ' All power is given to Me in heaven and earth ;' and the testimony likewise of pope Nicholas, affirming that Christ committed to Peter, the key-carrier of eternal life, terreni simul et ccelestis imperii jura, ' the interest both of the earthly and heavenly empire;' which he casteth away, either as an assertion forged by Gratian, the same being not found in the said pope's writings, or else to have another sense, this, as it is urged, being against the said pope's direct words in one of his epistles. His first proposition, ' that the pope is not Lord of all the world,' he justifieth in respect, (1.) That infidels are not his sheep. (2.) That he cannot judge infidels. (3.) That princes, infidels, are true and supreme princes of their kingdoms ; because dominion is neither founded in grace nor faith, as it appeareth, because God approved the kingdoms of the gen- tiles, both in the Old and New Testament. And upon these said reasons he inferreth it to be a ridiculous conceit for any man to think that God gave to the pope any right over the kingdoms of the whole world; considering that He never gave unto him ability to use any such right. And for the confirmation of his second proposition, 'that the pope is not lord of all the Christian world ;' he proveth the same by these reasons. (1.) Because if he had any such dominion, by the law of God, the same ought to appear 334, either in the Scriptures or by some apostolical traditions; but it appeareth by neither ; ergo. And his second reason is this ; Christ neither did nor doth take kingdoms from any to whom they do appertain, but doth rather establish them : therefore when the king becometh a Christian, he doth not overall's convocation book. 269 lose his terrene kingdoms which he lawfully before enjoyed ; book but he obtaineth a new right to the everlasting kingdom; : — otherwise, saith he, the benefit received by Christ should be hurtful to kings, and grace should destroy nature. Also he confuteth the ordinary distinction amongst the schoolmen and canonists, who affirm that the pope hath both powers in himself, but doth commit the execution of the civil power unto others ; and writeth thus ; ' Whatsoever emperors have, they have it from Christ ; and therefore, saith he, the bishop of Rome either may take from kings and emperors the exe- cution of their authority, as being himself the highest king and emperor, or he may not : if he may, then is he greater than Christ ; if he may not, ergo, he hath not in truth any regal power.' And he concludeth this point with this ob- servation ; ' As the sun did not institute or make the moon, but God Himself; so likewise the empire and the pontifical dignity are not one, neither doth the one absolutely depend upon the other.' Lastly, to prove his third proposition, ' That the pope hath no temporal jurisdiction directly/ he reasoneth in this sort. Christ, as He was man, whilst He lived here upon earth, neither took nor would take any temporal dominion ; but the bishop of Rome is Christ's vicar and doth represent Christ unto us, qualis erat dum hie inter homines viveret, ' as He was, whilst He lived here amongst men;' therefore the bishop of Rome hath no temporal dominion. Now before 335 he comes to the proof of the first proposition of this argu- ment, and that he might make the ground thereof more plain, he saith, (1.) That Christ was always, as He is the Son of God, the King and Lord of all creatures, in the same sort that the Father is. (2.) That His kingdom is eternal and divine, and neither taketh away the kingdoms of men, nor can agree to the bishops of Rome. (3.) That Christ, as He was man, was the spiritual King of all men, and had most ample spiritual power over all men, as well faithful as in- fidels. (4.) That this spiritual power of Christ, shall, after the day of judgment, be sensible and manifest. (5.) That the glory of this kingdom did begin in our Head, Christ, when He arose from the dead. Upon which grounds he maketh these inferences. (1.) That 270 overall's convocation book. book the said spiritual kingdom of Christ, the glory whereof began '■ — after His resurrection, is not a temporal kingdom, such as are the kingdoms of our kings. (2.) That the said spiritual kingdom of Christ over all men cannot be communicated to the bishop of Rome, because it presupposeth the resurrection. (3.) That Christ, as He was man, if He had list and had thought it expedient for Him, could have taken upon Him a kingly authority, but would not ; and therefore neither did receive any such authority, neither had not only the ex- ecution of any dominion or kingdom, but not the authority or power of any kingdom temporal. And so he cometh to the proof of his said proposition, saying, that if Christ had any such temporal kingdom, He had it either by hereditary succession, or by election, or by the law of war, or by the especial gift of God ; but He had it by none of these four ways ; ergo, He had no such dominion. For the proof of all which particulars he taketh good pains, and then cometh to 333 the explication of these words in his second proposition of the first argument concerning this point, viz. That the pope doth represent Christ unto us as He was, when He lived here amongst men ; and saith, (1.) We cannot attribute unto the pope those offices which Christ hath, either as He is God, or as He is an immortal and glorified man; but those which He had as He was a mortal man. (2.) Neither hath the pope all the power which Christ had, as He was a mortal man. For He, because He was both God and man, had a certain power which men call the power of excellency, whereby He ruled both faithful and infidels ; but the faithful only are committed to the pope. (3.) Christ had authority to institute Sacraments and to work miracles by His own authority, which the pope hath not. (4.) Christ had power to absolve men from their sins without the Sacraments, which the pope cannot do. e With Bellarmin, (that he may not bear this great burthen upon his own shoulders and undergo alone the envy thereof ensuing,) an army of writers, both old and new, do concur. He hath himself set down the names of some ; and for his better supportation we have thought it fit to assist him with * [The paragraph which licre.com- dispute of,' is written on a separate indices, and ends with the words 'you leaf.] overall's convocation book. 271 two more, viz. the archbishop of Compsa, one Ambrosius book Catharinus, and Boetius Epon, a count-palatine j whose book II 1- of Heroical and Ecclesiastical Questions, printed at Doway, 1588, a place wholly jesuited, is greatly approved by Tho. Stapleton, our countryman, and Balthazar Seulin, the dean of Amate, a licentiate of the pope's law, and the ordinary visitor or allower of such books as are thought meet to be published. Non desunt plerique, &c. ; ' There are many,' saith Catharinus f , ' who are not content with that, that is sufficient/ ne dicam nimium, 'that I may not say it is too 337 much, who either to flatter, or of too gross simplicity, do affirm that the temporal dominion of the whole world doth belong of right to the bishop of Rome, as being Christ's chief vicar in earth, in that Christ said, All things are given to Me of My Father.' Verum ridicula htsc profecto, quoe neque ipsimet pontifices auderent asserere : 'But assuredly these are ridiculous toys ; the popes themselves dare not for shame so affirm.' Quod autem papa sit vicarius Christi, &c. ; ' For that the pope is called Christ's vicar, what force hath it to persuade us that all the kingdoms in the world are com- mitted to be governed by him in temporal causes ? Nay,' saith he, ' it rather induceth us to believe that they are not committed unto him :' quoniam Christies abjecit ea, et ut homo erat, in rnundo non habuit ; ' because He cast them from Him, and as He was man, had them not Himself.' And the said Boetius Epon g , having set down the reasons why some have maintained the pope's said universal dominion in tem- poral causes, and given a touch of the Jews' error, and of the Apostles' oversight in that behalf, he saith thus, Neque nos forsitan Judceis multo vel meliores vel minus inepti sumus, dum, &c. ; ' And we perhaps are not either much better or less foolish than the Jews, whilst we do ridiculously mingle the temporal and earthly kingdom or empire with the kingdom ecclesiastical or spiritual, by wresting to that purpose the testimonies of the sacred Scriptures, which do nothing less than make either Christ, or Peter, or the pope, the temporal monarch, either of the whole world, or of the Christian world.' Digni profecto &c, 'We are certainly worthy of this f Catharin. in Ep. ad Roman, c. 13. c Heroic, qu. 5. [See note 5 W.] [See note 5 V.] 272 overall's convocation book. BOOK answer of Christ ;' Nescitis quid petatis, quidve disputetis ; : — ' you know not what you ask, nor what you dispute of.' And thus it appeareth what opposition there hath been ever since the days of Gregory the Seventh against the insolency of the bishops of Rome in challenging to them- selves such eminent and sovereign authority temporal over 338 all kings and emperors ; and how in these later times, through the light of the Gospel, men of any good parts or modesty, though otherwise our adversaries, are driven for shame to acknowledge the truth, notwithstanding all the vain and ridiculous conceits and janglings, either of the said glossographers, canonists, or schoolmen ; or the false, proud, and insolent vauntings of the popes themselves from the said Gregory the Seventh, pretending themselves to be Caesars and emperors h . It is true that Bellarmin laboureth after- ward to advance the pope's authority in temporal causes indirectly ; thereby to bring them so far within the compass of the pope's reach as that he may depose them, if they hinder the good of the Church. But his dealing herein is very indirect, that we use his own word, and cannot salve his former conclusions and inferences ; whereby he and the rest have so wounded the bishops of that see and disclosed their nakedness, as all their adherents will never be able to cure them. 'placet eis. Hcec omnia suprascripta ter lecta sunt in domo inferiori convo- cationis in frequenti synodo cleri, et unanimi consensu com- probata. Ita testor, JOHANiSTES OVERALL, Prolocutor. April. 16, 1606. b Henr. Quodl. 6. qu. 23. Jo. Driedo Potest Ecclesiastica. Cajetan. in Apol. lib. ii. de Lib. Christ cap. 2. Jo. de c. 13. ad 6. Fr. Victoria, de Pot Ec- 'J urrecremata Sum. lib. ii. 113. et seq. cles. q. 2. Dominic, a Soto in -1. Dis- Alb. Pighius, Hierarch. Eccles. lib. v. tinct 25. q. 2. Art. 1. [See note 5 X.] Tho. Waldens. lib. ii. Doct. Fid. art. 3. ' [The rest of the page is in the cap. 76, 77, 78. Petrus de Palude, de handwriting of Overall.] NOTES. Note A, p. 7. [Facta est terrarum orbis divisio inter filios et nepotes Noah. J — Func. Chron. [p. 9. edit. Witteb. 1578.] [Na>e yap traOeXs ano Tov KaTaKkvo~p>ov ) kg) rj avrov o"u/aj3ios o-vv rots rpttriv viols avrov, teal rpta\ vvfKpais, p,6vos hiaip&v rbv iravra koo-jxov rots rpiaXv viols avrov, ria 2fju., Ka\ Xap., kcu 'ld(ped SielXc.J — S. Epiphan. Adv. Hser. [lib. ii. torn. ii. § lxrsiii. Opp. vol. i. p. 703, edit. D. Petavii, fol. Par. 1622.] Note B, p. 33. [Diximus unde Gentilium fabulae soli eurrus et equos attribuerint, quas amplexi nonrralli ex regibus Juda, soli equos et eurrus in loco omnium sanctissimo consecrarunt. Quod etiam sub hoc ipsum tempus, et aliis postea seculis, fecere Gentiles. Nam Persse equos consecrarunt Soli, eosque in illius honorem totos concremarunt. Ita Xenophon lib. viii. Cyropsedise non semel, ubi eurrus ponitur Soli consecratus. Idem tradit Strabo, lib. xv; et Ovidius lib. i. Fasto- rum immolari canit equum Hyperioni, qui idem est Sol. Placat equo Persia radiis Hyperiona cinctum, Ne detur celeri victima tarda Deo. In pompa quadam junioris Cyri, tauri et equi inducuntur ; illi ut immolentur Jovi, hi autem Soli. ' Primum,' inquit Xenophon, supra, ' agebantur tauri Jovi ; post boves autem agebantur equi ad Solis sacrificium. Post hos autem educebatur eurrus albus coronatus jugo aureo, qui esset Jovi sacer ; post hunc agebatur etiam Solis eurrus candidus, et is coronatus ut anterior.' Sic puto ad Gentilicos ritus in templo fuisse eurrus egregio opere perfectos, et in his equos ex pre- tiosa materia et arte mirifica elaboratos, qui viderentur currum ilium T 274 NOTES. trahere, cui essent alligati ; quod Solis esset insigne, quod in templo ad aram excitatam Soli visebatur. Illi vero equi, qui ad introitum dicuntur esse templi ad exedram Nathanmelech, vivi erant, qui in stabulis illic nutriebantur, ut suis temporibus immolarentur Soli, et, ut de Persis nuper dicebamus, vivi cremarentur. — Casp. Sanctius m Quat. Libros Regum Comment, col. 1627, fol. Lugd. 1623.] Note C, p. 35. [Dico ergo, hunc terras motum contigisse anno vigesimo septimo Oziae .... Haec sententia est communis doctorum et interpretum, puta Hebraeorum, S. Hieronymi, Cyrilli, Remigii, Procopii, Ruperti, Hugonis, Lyrani, Clarii, et aliorum. . . . Porro, iidem omnes, excepto Tornellio et uno alterove, secuti Josephum lib. ix. Antiq. 11, addunt, hunc teirae motum contigisse ob fastum Oziae regis, quo ipse victoriis et secundis rebus inflatus, arrogavit sibi munus sacerdotale, obtu- litque incensum in altari thymiamatis. — Corn, a Lapide in Duodecim Prophetas Minores, p. 248, edit. Paris. 1630.] Note D, p. 49. [Antea enim de Attila aliqua sunt reseranda; atque illud in primis, ipsum ex prasdicatione cujusdam sanctissimi viri cognominari voluisse 'Flagellum Dei,' quod nimirum a Deo missus esset ultor scelerum peccantium Christianorum. — Baron. Annal. A.D.451, § 37.] Note E, p. 54. Jos. Antiq. 1. XI. c. viii. [. . Tov 8e SavafiahXeTOV . . . Xeyovros oIko- dofiTjireiv vabv, opaiov Svra ra ev tols 'lepoo-oXvfiois, ejri tov Tapi£e\v opovs, 6 Kara tt]V Safidpeiav opatv earw vtyrjkorarov, .... 1. xi. C viii. § 2 ; i. 501, edit. Hudsdn. fol. Oxon. 1720. ' Axpio-ravTO yap anavres irpbs tov Mayao-crr/v, tov SavafiaWeTOV X°P1~ yovvTos avrois Kai -j(pr\paTa, Kai ^atpav els yetopyiav Ka\ KaTOLKrjo~iv a7ro/ze- pl£ovros, Kai iravTi rpona t& yapfipa o-vittpikoKakovvros. — Ibid. TeXevrfjO-avTOs Sc ' AXe^dvSpov, 17 pev ap^rj els Toils SiaS6)(Ovs epepio-thj. to 8* 67ri tov Vapi£e)v Spovs lepbv epetvev* El de tis alTiav etrj^e 7rapa toIs 'lepoo-oXvfitTais Koivoayias, fj ttjs ev ro'ts 2a(3/3aVoir irapavofiias, rj twos aWov towvtov ap.apTrjp.aTos, ■napa robs Sua/uVas ev 'lovSaiav apjfiepea, o-vppa\lav Te avra nepmew, Ka\ dyopav to NOTES. 275 arpa.Tevit.aTt 7rapacr)(etv, Kal 8o~a Aapela wpdrepov ereXovv bapa rovra bibdvai, rr/v MaKebdvav (piXlav eXdpevov, ov yap peTavoijirew eirl tovtols. Tou 8' dp-^epeas diroKpivapevov rots ypapparotpdpots, as Spxovs elr] Aapela bebaKas, pr) ftaoTafciv &ir\a Kar airov, Kal tovtovs, las av fl Aapeins ev rots fwtri, pf/ 7rapajZr)o-eo~8ai (pr/o-avTos, aKovaas 'AXe^avbpos Ttapa^vvBr). Id. XT. viii. § 3 ; i. 502.] Note G, p. 59. Jos. Ant. I. XII. C. vi. L'Y7ro 8e rbv airbv Kaipbv diroBavdvTos Kal 'Oviov tov dp%Lepeas, T<5 dbeXcp^ avTOV 'irjaov ttjv dp%iepao-vvr]V bibao-t. 6 yap na'is, ov 'Ovias KaraXeXolffei, vtjmos yv en • . . . 'irjaovs fie, oiros yap r\v 6 dbeXcpbs tov 'Ovlov, ttjv dpxiepao-vvrjv dqttrjpeSr), irpoo-opyioSevTos avTW tov fiao-iXeas, Kal bovros airfjv Tip veardra airov dbeX(jia 'Ovla roivopa, llfxwvi yap oiroi Tpe'is eyevovro nalbes, Kal els roiis rpels ?]Kev 17 apxiepaavvrj, Ka&as bebrjXaKapev. 6 pev odv 'irjaovs 'ldo~ava eavrbv peravopao~ev- & he 'Ovias eKhr)8r) MeveXaos. — Id. XII. vi. § 1 ; i. 531. J Note H, p. 60. Jos. Ant. 1. XII. C. XVI. [ . . . . Kal Tavra TroHjcai, dviarpetyev els 'AvnSxeiav enayopevos 'Oviav rbv dp\iepea, bs Kal MeveXaos eKaXeTro. Avo-las yap o-vvef$ovXevo~e ra /3ao~iXei, tov MeveXaov dveXe7v, el ftovXerai Toils 'lovbalovs rjpepetv, Kal prjbev evo%\elv air&. tovtov yap api;ai rav KaKav, ireio-avT airov rbv irarepa tovs 'lovbalovs dvayKauai rrjv irdrpiov Bprjo-Kelav KardXmeXv- rreptyas ovv t6v MeveXaov 6 fiao-CXevs els Bepoiav rfjs 'SfVpias bie to edvos dvayKaxxavra irapaftrjval tovs Ibiovs vopovs. — Id. XII. viii. § 7 ; i. 547.] Note I, p. 60. Jos. Ant. ibid. [ . . . ■ dp%iepevs 8' iyevero jiera tov tov MeveXaov Bdvarov 'AXKipos, 6 Kal 'laxeipos KXrjdeis- — Id. XII. viii. § 5 ; i. 547. .... avo-rpacpevres 8c irpbs airbv 7roXXoi tSiv 'lovbaiav irovijpol Kal (pvydbes, Kal per avrav 'AXKCpos 6 dpxiepeiis, KaTt)y6povv tov eBvovs navTOs, Kal tov 'lovba Kal tS>v dbe\(pav airov, Xeyovres, i>s tovs (pCXovs airov rtavras aiseKTewav Id. XII. X. § 1 ; i. 548.] Note K, p. 61. Jos. Ant. XIX. viii. \jpovov 8' rjv rrdvra dvdnXea, Kal t&v 'lovbalav, 01 pev iiro 'Papdiav, oi be in aXX^Xwj' dvflpovvro .... etrecrov be, t£>v pev '\ovbaiav els pvpiovs Kal bia^Xlovs, 'Papdiav be irdvv oXtyoi. — Id. XII. iv. § 4 ; i. 614.] t2 276 NOTES. Note L, p. 62. Jos. Antiq. XVII. xiii. [? 3. § 6. Kai r)v yap pdpiov ti 'lovSa'Uav dvdpamav .... Qapurai Koiakovvrai, f3ao~i\evo~t 8vvdpevot pdkio-ra avri- 7rpdo~o~eiv, 7rpoprjde1s, ko.k tov irpovjiTov els to irokepxiv re Kai fikairreiv eTrr/ppevoi. — ii. 753.] Note M, p. 62. Jos. Ant. XIII. xxiii. ['0 he QA\e£av8pos) ovvefiovkevev airy f AXe- £dv8pa) neidecrdai pev ois VTro8r)o-eTai, irpbs to tt)v fiao-Ckeiav aa\Zs Kari- Xv reKvav, Kpinjrm 8e tov Bavarov avrov irpbs toxis OTpanaras, eas av e£e\rj to %apiov, eireira as av viKrjo-jj Xapwpats els Ta lepoo~6kvpa irapayevopevrj, toie oi)o~ai t<3 eOvei hut tovtovs e\eye, vftpio-Oevras Trap avrov. — Id. XIII. XV. § 5. i. 600. . ... to pev ovv ovopa ttjs j3aa"iXetas ei^ev ainr), tt)v be 8vvaptv ol (papuraloi. — Id. XIII. xvi. § 2 ; i. 601. J Note N, p. 63. Jos. de Bell. Jud. lib. VI. c. xi. [iroffev 8' r)pgdpeda 8ov\eias ; ap ov\i €K mdo-eas rav rrpoydvav, ore fj 'ApurrojSouXoti Kai 'YpKavov pavia, KaX ij 7rpos aXXqXoi/r epis HopTrrpov iirr)yaye rfj 7roX«, Kai 'Papalois bire- ra£ev 6 0ebs tovs ovk a^iovs ekevBepias. — Id. lib. V. [vi.] cap. xi. § 4. ii. 1243. But more apposite passages in support of the text will be found at pp. 623 and 628.] Note O, p. 64. Jos. Antiq. 1. XIV. c. xviii. xix. [MaXi^os Be tote SeiVas pdXurra tov AvniraTpov, eKTrohav eiroieiro. Kai irelcras dpyvpla tov 'YpKavov olvo%6ov, ■nap' a eKaTepoi eio-navro, (pappaKa KTeivei tov av8pa. — Id. XIV. xi. § 4; i. 637.] Note P, p. 64. lb. Cap. X. [Xpova 8e varepov 'AXe£dv8pov tt)v 'lovhaiav Kararpe- Xovtos tov 'AptoTofiovkov 7rai8os, orparnybs Tafiivios eK 'Papr/s els "Zvpiav r) K ev. — Id. lib. XIV. cap. v. § 2 ; i. 616.] NOTES. 277 Note Q, p. 64. lb. cap. xiii. [$o/3oipevos 8e tov 'YpKavbv, pi) to TrAJjo'os avra rr)v ftao-iXeiav aTTOKa.Tav, dnorepvet airov ra &ra, irpaypM.Tfv6p.cvos pr/Ker avdis els airbv dcpUetT&ai rqv dp^ie pma-vvrjv 8ta ro XeXcofirjo-dai, toO vdpov t£>v &XoK\ripa>v eivai ttjv Tipr/v d£wvvros.— Lib. XIV. xiii. § 10 ; i. 646.] Note R, p. 64. Jos. Alltiq. lib. XVIT. cap. xii. ^Ewel Kai 'Adpdyyrjs. . . . e'TdXprjo-ev ew\ fiaaiKelu Kppovfjcrai. — § 7. ii. 780.] Note S, p. 64. Id. de Bell. Jud. lib. II. cap. xvii. [Kov rovro> Mavd'ip6s ns. . . . ota df) @ao-i\evs ewdveto~tv els 'lepoo-oXvpa, /cat yevopevos ryyepibv rrjs crra- ceris bierao-o-e -ripi woKiopKiav. — § 8. ii. 1093.] Note T, p. 64. Jos. Antiq. lib. XVIII. cap. i. ii. [. . . . Xr/o-nipiav 8e peydXiov ewi- Beareai Kai 8ia£eiv. — ii. 1267.] Note X, p. 68. Jos. Ant. Jud. XVII. 18. [(8) 'HptoS^s be, tov re MarBiav ewewavKei Trjs dpxLepa>o~vv7]s, Kai tov erepov MarOlav, os eyjjyeptcet. ttjv cracrtj/, Kai av&pas ik tS>v eraipiov avTov eKavo-e £mvras. — il. 768.] 278 NOTES. Note Y, p. 68. Id. XV. xiii. [x. 10. § 4. i. 698.] Note Z, p. 68. Id. XVII. 13. [nan-ds yow tov 'lovbaiKov /3ej3a«afxovai>, ovrfs iircp il-aKur)(}kioi — XVII. xi. § 6. ii. 753.] Note AA, p. 68. Id. XVIII. i. ii. [torn. ii. p. 792, 793, 794.] de Bell. Jud. ii. 7. [torn. ii. p. 1060.] Note BB, p. 69. Jos. Antiq. Jud. XII. i. ["fyia 8e xal Kara to Upov 'EXeafapos vlos 'Avavia tov dp^iepeas, veavias Bpao-vraros, o-rpaTTjySiv Tore, roils Kara ttjv \arpeiav \eiTovpyovvras dvairei8ei, prj8evbs aXKocpvkov Saipov i) dvo-iav Trpoo-8exeo-0ai. — II. xviii. § 2. ii. 1091. J Note CC, p. 69. Id. de Bell. Jud. II. 17. [ToOro be rjv tov 7rpos 'Pa>pxiiovs 7ro\euov (cara/3oXi7. — II. xviii. § 2. ii. 1091.] Note DD, p. 69. Id. Antiq. Jud. XVIII. iii. [torn. ii. p. 795.] xx. 8. [torn. ii. p. 897.] NOTES TO THE SECOND BOOK. Note A, p. 80. Aug. de Hares, cap. xlvi. [De hares. Manichseorum Deum, Qui legem per Moysen dedit, et in Hebrais prophetis locutus est, non esse verum Deum, sed unum ex principibus tenebrarum. Ipsi- usque Testamenti novi scripturas tanquam infalsatas ita legunt, ut NOTES. 279 quod volunt inde accipiant, quod nolunt rejiciant; eisque tanquam totum verum habentes nonnullas apocryphas anteponant. — Tom. viii. col. 13. edit. Ant. 1700.] Note B, p. 81. [See Tourneley, Curs. Theolog. i. 431. edit. fol. 1752 ; Bellarm. de Christo, lib. iii. cap. i. seqq. ; Gerhard. Loc. Com. Theolog. loc. iv. cap. vi. § 84. torn. iii. p. 403. edit. Cottse; Gotti Theolog. Dogm. Scholast. xii. 105. edit. Bonon. 1732.] Note C, p. 81. [The following passage from Bellarmine, (de Incarnat. iii. ix. §. ' Catholica vero,' edit. Ingol. 1586) embodies the doctrine here ob- jected to. .... Ex unione hypostatica consecuta esse in Christi humanitatem multa dona creata et infusa ; ut gratiam excellentissimam, sapientiam maximam, potentiam singularem, et alia id genus ; quae tamen non sunt attributa Deitatis, nisi per participationem quamdam, quomodo etiam nos participamus Dei attributa per creatas qualitates, licet minus perfecte, quam Christi humanitas ea participet. Neque in his consistit communicatio idiomatum ; nam ilia communicatio est mutua : horum autem communicatio donorum non est mutua, nihil enim Deitati accessit. And he concludes the chapter thus. Pari ratione recte dicimus, Christus homo est omnipotens, seternus, ubique, &c. quia homo in concreto stat pro supposito humane] Note D, p. 81. [. . . . non possunt vera membra Ecclesiae vocari Lutherani et Cal- vinistse, etiamsi in Symbolo nobiscum convenirent ; nam prseter illam fidem requiritur subjectio ad legitimum caput Ecclesiae a Christo constitutum. — Bellarm. de Laicis, iii. xix. § ' Secundo.' And again, Respondeo, neminem posse, etiamsi velit, subesse Christo et com- municare cum Ecclesia coelesti, qui non subest pontifici et non com- municat cum Ecclesia militante. — Id. de Ecclesia Militante, iii. v. § ' Respondeo neminem.'] Note E, p. 86. [Hsec lege, haec crede, hsec retine ; huic fidei animam tuam sub- juga, et vitam consequeris et prBemium a Christo. Damasi Symbolum inter Opp. S. Hieronymi, Ep. xvi. torn. ix. p. 70, edit. Ant. 1579.] *°0 NOTES. Note F, p. 87. [Sanctam Catholicam et Apostolicam Romanam ecclesiam, om- nium ecclesiarum matrem et magistram agnosco ; Romanoque ponti- fici, Beati Petri Apostolorum principis successori ac Jesu Christi vicario, veram obedientiam spondeo ac juro. . . . Hanc veram catho- licam fidem, extra quam nemo salvus esse potest, quam in praesenti sponte profiteor et veraciter teneo, usque ad extremum vita? spiritum constantissime, Deo adjuvante, retineri et confiteri. . . . ego idem N. spondeo, voveo, ac juro. — Labb. Cone. xiv. 946.] Note G, p. 87. [See Cumel in 1 S. Thomse q. 23. art. 3. q. 2. prop. 3.] Note H, p. 96. [Nerians, i. e. priests of the Oratory, an order founded by St. Philip de Neri. Cardinal Baronius, and his contimiator Raynaldi, were amongst the most distinguished members of this congre- gation. See Heliot. Hist, des Ordres Monastiques, viii. 12; Par. 1719.] Note I, p. 97. Bellarm. de Sum. Pontif. lib. v. [cap. iii. § Jam vero. col. 1085. Id. cap. iv. § Superest nunc, &c. col. 1087, 1088, 1089, 1090, 1091.] Note K, p. 116. [Item locus D. Pauli ad Rom. cap. 13. esse obediendum ait Princi- pibus, de ethnicis non loquitur, sicut corrupte allegatur, sed quatenus de illis intellexerit ; Primo, loquitur Imperio Romano approbate ut dixi. Item textus seipsum declarat. Nam scribit ad Christianos, quibus consulit, obediendum esse Principibus ne peccent, nam Prin- cipes non sunt timor boni operis, sed mali, vis ergo non timere potestatem, bonum fac, &c. ergo non simpliciter mandat obediendum esse Principibus Ethnicis, sed ut secundum conscientiam bonum faciant, et ita ratio restringit dictum Eodem modo scribendi usus est D. Paul, in 1. ad Tim. cap. 6. Hortando servos, ut honorent dominos suos etiam infideles, propter rationes, de quibus per eum, ergo rationes attendendae, quae dictum NOTES. 281 generate restringunt". Sed ex illis monitionibus non fundatur justum dominium in personis Ethnicorum, nam Paulus qui hoc dicit non erat summus Pontifex. Tractatus de jurisdictione per, et inter judicem Ecclesiasticum et secularem exercenda &c. Doctoris Martse, Jurisconsulti Neapolitani, in Alma Urbe Advocati, p. i. cap. 24, n. 38 ; Avenona;, 1616.] Note L, p. 117. [Bellarm. de Sum. Pontif. lib. v. cap. ii. col. 1084.J Note M, p. 120. Calvin, Instit. lib. iv. cap. iv. § 4. [Quod autem singula; provincial unum habebant inter episcopos archiepiscopum ; quod item in Nicena synodo constituti sunt patriarchal, qui essent ordine et dignitate archiepiscopis superiores ; id ad disciplinse conservationem pertinebat. .... Verum si rem omisso vocabulo intuemur, reperiemus veteres episcopos non aliam regendee Ecclesise formam voluisse fingere ab ea quam Deus verbo Suo prsescripsit. — Edit. Amst. 1667. p. 286.] Note N, p. 132. [Magna de hoc discipulorum numero qusestio est, quia non solum Graeci plerique codices et Syriaci septuaginta solum legunt, sed etiam auctores veteres, maximeque Grseci, cum eos numerant, aut mentionem de illis quoquo modo faciunt, non nisi septuaginta solent ponere, ut Irenseus, Clemens, ut citat Eusebius, Ambrosius, Hierony- mus, Damascenus, Concilium Neocsesariense, Dorothseus. Maldonat. in Evang. S. Lucse, cap. x. ver. 1. See also Tillem. Memoir, torn. i. p. 436. edit. 4to. Par. 1701 ; Walch. Hist. Eccl. N. T. p. 302. 4to. Jena;, 1744 ; Buddei Ecclesia Apostolica, p. 683. 8vo. Jena?, 1729; Spanhem. Opp. ii. 299; Suicer. Thesaur. ii. 288.] Note O, p. 136. Jerom. in Ep. ad Tit. c. 1. [The editor has failed in discovering the passage here alluded to, although the Benedictine and several earlier editions have been consulted.] Note P, p. 145. [See Wolni Curaj Philolog. in ii. Tim. 4. 21. et Prolegom. in Ep. ad Tit. ; Tillem. Mem. torn. ii. par. 1. p. 257 ; Walch. Hist. N. T. pp. 306, 307 ; Mill. Nov. Test. p. 647.] » Here the text is evidently corrupt, and the editor is unable to correct it. 282 NOTES. Notb Q, p. 146. Tertull. contra Marcion. lib. v. [This reference has not been dis- covered.] Chrysost. Horn. 10. in 1 Tim. [MeXAgw Kanevai els rbv irepi tt/s emo-KOTnjs \6yov, SeUvvm Ka6aira£ otto'lov eivai xph T ° v iirurkmov, ovk iv Tafct tjjs irpbs Ti/ioBeov avro napaiveaeas iroi&v, aXX' as iracri 8uiKey6- ficvos, Kai Si ckcivov wdvras pv8p.L(a>v. — Opp. XI. 598. edit. Bened.] Ambr. in 1 Tim. c. vi. [Non sollicitus de cura Timothei, tarn cir- cumspectus est, sed propter successores ejus, ut exemplo Timothei Ecclesiae ordinationem custodirent; ipsi quoque futuris formam tra- dentes a semetipsis inciperent. — Append, ad Opp. S. Ambros. ii. 303. edit. Bened.] QEcum. in 1 Tim. C. vi. [Upos Tt/iodeov ypd(pav, be'iKviKTi. Ka66KiKa>s fmoiov elvai xpy tov eir'uTKtmov. — II. 224. edit. Par. 1631. See also Hammond, Dissertat. Quatuor de Episcop. Jur. p. 185. edit. 1651.J Note R, p. 146. Ambr. ibid. [Magna vigilantia atque providentia prsecepta dat rectori Ecclesise ; in hujus enim persona totius populi salus consistit. Non sollicitus de cura Timothei tarn circumspectus est, sed propter successores ejus, ut exemplo Timothei Ecclesise ordinationem custo- dirent ; ipsi quoque futuris formam tradentes a semetipsis inciperent. — Append, ad Opp. S. Ambros. ii. 303.] Note S, p. 147. Euseb. lib. iii. cap. 35. [torn. i. p. 270. edit. Heinichen.J — Iren. lib. iii. cap. 3. [edit. Massuet, p. 176. and Euseb. H. E. iv. 14.] — Euseb. lib. iii. cap. 23. [torn. i. p. 230.] Note T, p. 147. Euseb. lib. iii. cap. 4. [torn. i. p. 191.] Origen. in c. xvi. ad Rom. [' Salutat vos Caius hospes meus*. . . . Fertur sane traditione majorum quod hie Caius episcopus fuerit Thessalonicensis Ecclesiae. — Opp. Lat. fol. cexxiii. edit. fol. Par. 1512.] Ambr. in Coloss. c. iv. [' Et dicite Archippo, Vide ministerium .quod suscepisti in Domino, ut illud impleas.' Prsepositum illorum per eos ipsos commonet ut sit sollicitus de salute ipsorum ; et quia plebis solius causa epistola scribitur, ideo non ad rectorem ipsorum destinata est, sed ad ecclesiam. Post enim Epaphram, qui illos imbuit, hie accepit regendam eorum ecclesiam. — Append, ad Opp. S. Ambros. ii. 276.] NOTES. 283 Note U, p. 148. Iren. adv. Haeres. I. iii. c. 3. [edit. Massuet, p. 175.] Note V, p. 148. Tertull. de Prescript, adv. Hseres. [p. 213. edit. Rigalt.J Note W, p. 148. August, ep. 24. [This reference has not been discovered.] Note X, p. 149. Jerom. Ep. ad Evagrium. [Et, ut sciamus traditiones apostolicas sumptas de Veteri Testamento ; quod Aaron, et filii ejus, atque Levitse in templo fuerunt, hoc sibi episcopi et presbyteri et diaconi vindicent in Ecclesia. — Ep. 85. Opp. torn. i. p. 311. edit. Ant. 1578.] Note Y, p. 150. [See Bingham, II. iii. § 6. quoting Athan. Apol. ii. p. 732. (torn. i. p. 193. edit. Paris. 1698.)] Note Z, p. 150. [See Bingham, II. iii. § 7. quoting Cone. Constant, c. iv. (Concil. torn. ii. p. 947.)] Note AA, p. 151. [Presbyter cum ordinatur, episcopo eum benedicente et manum super caput ejus tenente, etiam omnes presbyteri qui prsesentes sunt, manus suas juxta manum episcopi super caput illius teneant. — Cone. Carthag. IV. cap. iii. ap. Bruns. 1, 141. See also Gratian. Dist. xxiii. c. 8 ; Ivo. par. iii. c. 12. cited in Bingh. Orig. Eccl. II. xix. § 10.] Note BB, p. 152. S. Cypr. lib. i. ep. iii. [Ep. 59. (ed. Pamel. Rigalt. Baluz. 55.) § 7. edit. Goldh.] Note CC, p. 152. Cypr. lib. 4. ep. 8. [Ep. 59. § 7.] Note DD, p. 152. Hieron. adv. Luciferanos [cap. iv. Opp. 11. 199. edit. Antv. 1578.] 284 NOTES. Note EE, p. 189. Calvin [Instit. lib. iv. cap. iv. § 4. quoted under note M. above.] Note FE, p. 159. [Nam, prasupposito quod omnis potestas, onme dominium et omnis principatus sit translatus in Christum, ut dixi . . . . et postea relictus sit Petro.— Marta, Par. 5. c. 5. § 6. p. 11.] Note GG, p. 159. [Nam Lucse cap. 12. dixit : Quis Me constituit divisorem inter vos ? Nihilominus duo tempora considerantur in Christo : Alteram ante passionem, et tunc propter humilitatem judicare recusavit, ut est dictum, (D. Ambros in libro 7. super textu Lucae cap 12. et Joan, cap. 18.) 'Regnum Meum non est de hoc mundo.' Alteram vero post resurrectionem, et tunc dixit, ' Data est Mihi omnis potestas in ccelo et in terra.' Mat. cap. ult. et Joan. cap. ult. Sed post resur- rectionem dedit potestatem Petro, eumque constituit Vicarium. — lb. c. 22. § 4, 5. p. 45.] Note HH, p. 159. [Imprimis potestatis plenitudo in Christo desumitur etiam ex Joan. cap. 13. Sciens quia omnia dedit Ei Pater in mamis. Et Luc. cap. 10. Omnia Mihi tradita sunt a Patre Meo. Et D. Paul, ad Heb. cap. i. Quern constituit haredem universorum. Et quia textus sacra paginse semper universaliter, et de omnibus loquuntur : Ideo D. Paul, ad Heb. cap. 2. exponens ilium Psal. 8. Omnia subjecisti sub pedibus Ejus : de Christo loquens, dixit, in eo quod omnia subjecit, nihil omisit non subjectum Ei. Et ad 1 Cor. cap. 15. Exponens eundem locum, ne quis putaret, per dictionem illam, omnia, etiam Ipsum Deum comprehendi, a Christi dominio et potestate Deum expresse excepit, dicens, cum dicat omnia subjecta sunt Ei, sine dubio, prater Eum Qui subjecit Ei omnia. Item Ps. 71. Dominabitur a mart usque ad mare, et a flumine, usque ad terminos orbis terra. Item Ps. 2. Postula a Me, et dabo Tibi gentes hareditatem Tuam, et possessionem Tuam terminos terra. — lb. p. 46.] Note II, p. 159. Carerius. [Nam Petrus hanc temporalem potestatem exercuit in sua propria natura temporaliter, nam in Actibus cap. 5. dicitur quod NOTES. 285 ipse condemnavit Ananiam et Saphyram pro crimine facti ad poenam civiliter. — De potestate Romani pontificis, adversus impios politicos hujus temporis hsereticos, libri duo. Auctore Alex. Carerio, Pata- vino, J. C. Col. Agrip. 1601.] Note KK, p. 159. Bellarmin. de Rom. Pont. 1. v. c. 3. [§ Item si (torn. i. col. 1085,) Item si papa est dominus totius orbis Christiani supremus, ergo singuli episcopi sunt principes temporales in oppidis suo episcopatui subjectis.] Note LL, p. 160. Bellarm. de Rom. Pont. lib. v. cap. 4. [§ Superest nunc. torn. i. col. 1087. et $ At regna, col. 1090.] Note MM, p. 160. Idem ibid. [§ Adde, quod. col. 1090. Adde, quod neque habet pontifex omnem potestatem prorsus, quam habuit Christus ut homo mortalis. Ille enim, quia Deus et homo erat, habuit quandem potestatem quam dicunt excellentise, per quam praeerat tam fidelibus quam infidelibus ; papse autem solum oves suas, id est, fideles, com- misit. Praterea, Christus poterat Sacramenta instituere et miracula facere propria auctoritate, quse non potest pontifex. Item, poterat absolvere a peccatis sine Sacramentis, quod papa non potest.] Note NN, p. 161. Bell, de Rom. Pont. lib. v. c. 9. § Quarto, qui [col. 1107.] Note OO, p. 162. Id. ibid. § Jam vero. [col. 1108. Jam vero quod jure habeat sum- mus pontifex eum principatum quern habet, probari posset facile, quia dono principum habuit.] Note PP, p. 162. Id. ibid. § Item Leo. [col. 1 108. Et exstant Romse authentica instrumenta harum et similium donationum. Sed etiamsi nihil horum exstaret, abunde sufficeret prsescriptio DCCC. annorum.] Note QQ, p. 1 62. Id. ibid. c. 10. [§ Tertio objicit. col. 1110. Tertio objicit Calvinus verba D. Bernardi 1. ii. de consid. ' Apostolus interdicitur dominatus. 286 NOTES. ergo tu et tibi usurpare aude, aut dominans apostolatum, aut aposto- licus dominatum. Forma apostolica haec est, interdicitur dominatio, indicitur ministratio.' Respondeo, Bernardum loqui de pontifice, ut pontifex est totius Ecclesiae, et secundum id quod habet ex Christi institutione.] Ibid. cap. 10. § Quarto objicit. [col. 1110. Quarto objicit ibid. § 14. verba B. Gregorii, qui, lib. 4. epist. 44. dicit anathema episcopo qui jubet alicui agro more fiscali titulum imprimi. Respondeo, nihil esse mirandum si Gregorius noluit episcopos, nee etiam praefectos patrimoniorum Romanae ecclesiae uti more fiscali in agris Ecclesiae recuperandis. Nam nondum habuerat Ecclesia politicum principatum, sed possidebat bona temporalia, ad eum modum quo privati cives possident. Itaque aequum erat ut agros, quos suos esse censebat Ecclesia, si forte ab aliis occuparentur, in judicio legitimo eos repeteret ; non autem more fiscali propria sibi auctoritate vendicaret.] Note RR, p. 162. Calvin. Inst. 1. iv. c. xi. [Si hac de re Christi auctoritatem quae- rimus, non dubium quin Verbi Sui ministros a civili dominatione ac terreno imperio arcere voluerit, quum diceret, ' Reges gentium domi- nantur illis, vos autem non sic' — § 8. p. 326. edit. Amst. 1667.] Note SS, p. 163. Bell, de Rom. Pont. 1. v. c. 9. § Denique probatur [col. 1108. Nam etsi absolute forte praestaret pontifices tractare solum spiritualia et reges temporalia, tamen propter malitiam temporum experientia clamat, non solum utiliter sed etiam necessario et ex singulari Dei providentia, donatos fuisse pontifici aliisque episcopis temporales ali- quos principatus. Si enim in Germania episcopi principes non fuissent, nulli ad hanc diem in suis sedibus permansissent. Sicut ergo in Testamento Veteri diu fuerunt pontifices sine imperio tempo- rah, et tamen ultimis temporibus non poterat religio consistere et defendi nisi pontifices etiam reges essent, nimirum tempore Macha- baeorum, ita quoque accidisse videmus Ecclesiae, ut quae primis temporibus ad majestatem suam tuendam temporali principatu non egebat, nunc eodem necessario indigere videatur.] NoteTT, p. 169. Bell, de Rom. Pont. 1. v. c. 5. § Sed occurrunt. [col. 1091. J NOTES. 287 Note UU, p. 170. Ibidem, § Secundo objiciunt. [col. 1091.] Note VV, p. 170.— [col. 1092.] Note WW, p. 170. [Ibid. col. 1092. Porro beatus Bernardus et Bonifacius papa mystice interpretati sunt hunc locum ; nee volunt dicere eodem modo habere pontificem gladium utrumque, sed alio et alio modo.] Note XX, p. 171. Bell, ibidem. § Ad testimonium. [§ Sed occurrunt. col. 1091. Utriusque autem regni claves Petro attribuit, ut Nicolaus ait in Epistola ad Michaelem, ' Christus,' inquit, ' beato Petro, vitse aeternse clavigero, terreni simul et ccelestis imperii jura commisit.'] Note YY, p. 171. [Bellarm. ibid. § Respondeo, potestatem.J Note ZZ, p. 171. [Bellarm. ibid. § Addo, secundo.] Note AAA, p. 176. [See the Life of Bellarmine in Bayle's Dictionary, note M, and the authorities there quoted.] Note BBB, p. 177. Bellarm. de Rom. Pontif. lib. v. cap. 6. [col. 1093. Papam habere temporalem potestatem indirecte.] NoteCCC, p. 178. Bellarm. de Rom. Pontif. lib. v. cap. 6. [p. 1093. § Explicanda. Quantum ad primum asserimus, pontificem, ut pontificem, etsi non habeat ullam mere temporalem potestatem, tamen habere in ordine ad bonum spirituale summam potestatem disponendi de temporalibus rebus omnium Christianorum.] 288 NOTES. NoteDDD, p. 178. Bellarm. de Rom. Pontif. lib. v. cap. 7. [col. 1095. § Hsec igitur.J Note EEE, p. 1 79. Chrysost. Horn, in c. xiii. ad Rom. [Kai detKvoiis Sn nairt ravra biararreTai, Kai lepeiiiri, kcu fiovaxois, oi^i rois 0iamKot? fiovov, ck npooi- p.iatv ai/ro drjKov iiroirjaev oura> Aeycoj/j natra ^fvxV *$ovcrlais virepexovfrats viroTacr, Kav 'A7to(tt6\os ys, Kav (iayyfXta'TfjS, Kav n ptXprjTrjs, Kqv oa-Tia-ovv — Horn. XXIII. Opp. torn. ix. p. 686. edit. Bened.] Note FFF, p. 179. Bell, de Rom. Pont. lib. v. c. 7. [§ Tertia Ratio, col. 1097.] Note GGG, p. 181. [Tertull. Apolog. § 36, 37. p. 107, 108. edit. Gersdorf.] Note HHH, p. 182. [Bellarm. de Rom. Pont. lib. vii. cap. 7. § Quod si Christiani, col. 1097.] Note III, p. 182. [' Judicari apud iniquos, et non apud sanctos.' Hie probatur Christianos tunc judices non fuisse, quia iniqui dicuntur. — S. Hieron. in 1 Cor. vi. Opp. torn. viii. p. 207. edit. Ant. 1578.] Note KKK, p. 182. [Constituit enim talibus causis ecclesiasticos Apostolus cognitores, in foro prohibens jurgare Christianos. — S. August. Enarr. in Ps. cxviii. Serm. xxiv. Op. torn. iv. col. 1004. edit. 1700.] Note LLL, p. 182. [Quia ergo sunt, inquit, sapientes fratres, aliqui horum eligantur ad judicandum, quorum judicium miretur mundus.— Opp. S. Ambros. Append, ad vol. ii. col. 129. edit. Bened.] Note MMM, p. 182. [S. Chrysost. Horn. XVI. in 1 Cor. Opp. torn. x. p. 138.] NOTES. 289 Note NNN, p. 182. Theodoret. m 1 Cor. 6. [_. . . . iravratv 8e xaXeiraraTOV, t6 kcu amara K^xpwSai KpiTfl, el&evcu fievroi. xpr), us ovk ivavria ravra tols irpos 'Pcopalovs ypcupeio-iv. oi yap avntsivuv KeXevti rots apxovtriv. aXAa rois j)biKr)p.ivois vo/iodfTe'i fir) Kcxpr)v ''Pafmlav airoKparopa, id est, Romanorum imperatorem vocent, ipsique Constantinopolitani etiam state nostra 'Pa/iaioi, non Grseci vocentur. Omitto quod Petrus Apostolorum princeps successoribus suis pontificibus Romanis regni ccelorum claves dedit, potestatem- que a Deo sibi concessam reliquit, non Constantinopoli, sed Romae. —P. 15.] Note Z, p. 229. Innocent. III. Episc. Atinacensi, in lib. v. Decret. Constitut. [Cum scire debeas Apostolicam sedem consuetudinem in suis litteris hanc tenere, ut patriarchas, archiepiscopos et episcopos, fratres ; ca;teros autem reges, principes, vel alios cujuscumque ordinis, filios in nostris litteris appellemus. — Decretal. Greg. lib. 5. De crimine falsi, Tit. xx. cap. 6, torn. ii. 1751. Lugd. 1618.] Note 2 A, p. 229. Bishop Jewel's Defence of his Apology, part 4, [Chap. 8. div. 2 and 3.] Dr. Harding, ibid. [p. 385, edit. Lond. 1609.] Note 2 B, p. 232. Genebrard. Chronol. an. 413. [See pp. 436, 445, 449, 452, 463.] NOTES. 297 Note 2 C, p. 232. Alphons. Ciacco. de Vit, et Gest. Roman, in Vita Sylvestri. [i. 167. The words here quoted from Ciacconius are copied by him from Platina, p. 75.] Note 2 D, p. 232. Id. ibid. [i. 168. See Platina, p. 75, Genebrard. Chronol. p. 464. J ex Anastas. [Bibliothecar. de vitis Pontif. Roman, inter Hist. Byzant. Script, torn. xx. p. 21. edit. Venet. 1729.] Procop. de Bello Goth, lib. i. [cap. 14 et 25. pp. 28 et 46, inter Hist. Byzant. Script, torn, ii.] Evagr. [Hist. Eccl.] lib. iv. cap. 18. [p. 588, edit. Basil. 1611.J Note 2 E, p. 233. Onuph. [Panvinius] in vita Pelagii II. [In eo quod Platina scribit, Pelagium pontificem injussu principis creatum, nihilque turn a clero in eligendo pontifice actum esse, nisi ejus electionem imperator ap- probasset, non ita curate rem hanc attigisse visus est, quae sic habet. Gotthis Italia omni per Narse patricium pulsis, eaque cum urbe Roma, orientalis imperii parte facta, sub Justiniano imperatore, ex auctoritate papse Vigilii novus quidam in comitiis pontificiis mos inolevit. Is fuit, ut mortuo papa, nova quidem electio more majorum statim a clero S. P. Q. R. fieret ; verum electus Romanus pontifex non ante consecrari atque ab episcopis ordinari posset, quam ejus electio ab imperatore Constantinopolitano confirmata esset, ipseque litteris suis patentibus licentiam electo pontifici concederet ut ordinari et consecrari posset, atque ita jurisdictionem pontificatus turn obti- neret .... Hoc autem ideo Justinianum imperatorem, vel ex ejus auctoritate Vigilium papam instituisse credendum est, ut imperator certus esset de conditionibus novi pontificis, cujus turn maxima esse auctoritas cceperat, imperatoribus prasertim Italia absentibus, ne aliquo pontifice factioso vel imperatoris hoste ordinato, urbs et Italia, eo auctore, ab orientali imperio deficeret, seque finitimis barbaris traderet, quod Silverium papam aliquando quresiisse sibi persuadebat. — Annotat. in Platin. Pelag. II. p. 80.] Note 2 F, p. 233. Onuph. ubi supra. [Perduravit heec consuetudo usque ad Bene- dictum Secundum.; — p. 80.] 298 NOTES. Note 2 G, p. 233. Platin. in Vita Benedict. II. [Ad hunc autem Constantinus im- perator, hominis sanctitate permotus, sanctionem misit ut deinceps quern clerus, populus, exercitusque Romanus in pontificem delegisset, eundem statim verum Christi vicarium esse, omnes crederent ; nulla aut Constantinopolitani principis aut Italiae exarchi exspectata aucto- ritate, ut antea fieri consueverat. p. 101. J Note 2 H, p. 234. Onuphr. in Vita Constantin. I. [Primus omnium Romanorum pontificum imperatori Graeco Philippico, qui Justiniano juniore, ortho- doxo principe occiso, imperium invaserat, in os resistere palam ausus fuit Constantinus papa. — Annot. in Platin. Vit. Constantdni Primi, p. 108.] Note 2 I, p. 234. Sabellicus Ennead 8, lib. vii. [p. 172, edit. Basil. 1659.] Note 2 J, p. 234. Blondus Decad. I. lib. x. [pp. 143, 144, edit. Basil. 1559.] Note 2 K, p. 234. Papir. Masson. lib. iii. in Vit. Greg. II. [fol. 126, vers. edit. Par. 1586.] Blondus, ibid. [p. 144.] Note 2 L, p. 234. Alphons. Ciaccon. in Vit. Greg. II. [i. 243.] Note 2 M, p. 235. Papir. Masson. in Vit. Gregor. II. [Vigilantia et sanctimonia Gre- gorii II. ex episcopis Romania magnos principes tandem faciet suc- cessores suos; cujus rei principium quidem difficile, progressus facilior, felix faustusque exitus fait ; ut merito possim Virgilianum illud usurpare, Tante molis erat Romanam condere gentem. Atque eum versum ad Pontifices trahere, qui principatum suum aut nulli aut huic Gregorio debent. fol. 126. vers. edit. Paris. 1596.] NOTES. 299 Note 2 N, p. 235. Platin. in Vit. Steph. II. [p. 114.] Note 2 O, p. 235. Alphons. Ciaccon. in Vit. Steph. III. [i. 256, whose narrative is founded on that of Platina in Vit. Steph. II. p. 115.] Note 2 P, p. 235. Marian. Scotus [ap. Struvii Rerum Germ. Script, iii. 634, edit. Ratisb. 1726.] Herman. Contract, [ad an. 773, in Canisii Lectiones Antiq. iii. 242, edit. Basnage, fol. Amst. 1725.] Platin. in Adrian. I. [p. 119.] Note 2 Q, p. 236. Sigebert. [Gemblac. Chronographia] an. 781. [ap. Struv. Rer. Germ. Script, iii. 781.] Otho Frising, lib. v. cap. 28. [edit. Pithoei, fol. Basil. 1569.] Sigebert. an. 800. [p. 784.] Platin. in Leon. III. [p. 123.] Note 2 R, p. 236. Sigebert. an. 781. [A.D. 801. Romani, qui ab imperatore Con- stantinopolitano jam diu animo desciverant, nunc accepta occasionis opportunitate, quia mulier, excoecato imperatore Constantino, filio suo, eis imperabat, uno omnium consensu, Carolo regi imperatorias laudes acclamant, eumque per manum Leonis papa; coronant, Csesa- rem et Augustum appellant ; Pipinum vero filium ejus, regem Italia; ordinatum collaudant. p. 785.] Note 2 S, p. 237. Distinct. 63. Adrianus [c. xxii. Ex Hist. JEcol. Deinde Romam reversus, constituit ibi synodum cum Hadriano papa in patriarchio Lateranensi in ecclesia S. Salvatoris, qure synodus celebrata est a cliii episcopis, religiosis, et abbatibus. Hadrianus autem papa cum universa synodo tradiderunt Carolo jus et potestatem eligendi ponti- ficem, et ordinandi apostolicam sedem. Dignitatem quoque patri- ciatus ei concesserunt. Insuper archiepiscopos et episcopos per sin- 300 NOTES. gulas provincias ab eo investituram accipere diffinivit, et ut nisi a rege laudetur et investiatur, episcopus a nemine consecretur ; et quicunque contra hoc decretura ageret, anathematis vinculo eum innodavit ; et nisi resipisceret, bona ejus publican praecepit. — Decret. Gratiani, col. 322. edit. Taur. 1620.] Notb 2 T, p. 237. Platin. in Vita Pasch. I. [p. 125.] Notb 2 U, p. 237. Alphons. Ciaccon. in Vita Pasch. I. [Idem quoque etiam concessit ut Romani novum pontificem, pro judicio suo crearent, modo sine tumultii et largitione, et creatum consecrarent ; dummodo pontifex se per legatos de sua consecratione commonefaceret, et pacem secum sanciret. i. 282. ] Notb 2 V, p. 238. Distinct. 63. Ego Ludovicus. [c. xxx. Et dum consecratus fuerit, legati ad nos, vel ad nostros successores, regem Francorum dirigantur ; qui inter nos et ilium, amicitiam et charitatem ac pacem socient.— Col. 329, edit. Taur. 1620.] Note 2 W, p. 238. Distinct. 63. In synodo. [c. xxiii. . . . Ego quoque Leo episcopus servus servorum Dei, cum toto clero et Romano populo, constituimus et confirmamus. . . . domino Othoni primo regi Tentonicorum. . . . facultatem eligendi successorem, atque summse sedis apostolicse pon- tificem ordinandi. ... Si quis contra hanc regulam et apostolicam auctoritatem aliquid molietur, hunc excommunicationi subjacere de- cernimus; et nisi resipuerit, irrevocabili exilio vel ultimis suppliciis aflici.— Col. 323.] Note 2 X, p. 238. Sigebert [A.D. 1046, p. 834.] Genebr. Chronol. [A.D. 1046, p. 584.] Note 2 Y, p. 239. Genebr. Chronol. sseculo 10. [Hoc vero uno infelix quod per annos fere 1 50 pontifices circiter 50, a Joanne scilicet 8, qui Nico- lao et Adriano 2. Sanctis pontificibus successit, ad Leonem 9 usque, qui primus a Deo vocatus velut alter Aaron, antiquam pontificum NOTES. 301 integritatem e coelo in sedem Apostolicam revocavit, a virtute majo- rum prorsus defecerint, apotactici, apostaticive, potius quam aposto- lici. p. 553.] Note 2 Z, p. 239. Otho Frising. lib. vi. cap. 33. [edit. 1569.J Platin. in Leon. ix. [p. 171.] Note 3 A, p. 239. Alphons. Ciaccon. in Vita Leon. IX. [i. 379.] Note 3 B, p. 239. Alphons. Ciaccon. in Vit. Nicol. II. [i. 396.] Genebr. Chronol. [Tunc primum Lateranensi concilio Romanorum pontificum electio ad Cardinales episcopos est delata, ita tamen ut a elericis Cardinalibus reliquoque clero et populo Romano compro- banda esset. p. 588.] Note 3 C, p. 239. Alphons. Ciaccon. in Vita Alexand. II. [i. 400.] Genebr. Chronol. [Statuit ne quis ecclesiastica beneficia ab ullo laico accipiat, quod tunc simonia dicebatur. p. 588.] Note 3 D, p. 239. Otho Frising. lib. vi. cap. 1. [fol. Basil. 1569.] Godefrid. Viterbiens. Chronol. Part. 17. [Vide> ad quantum de- fectum Romanum imperium devenerit, scilicet, ut in tres partes diviso regno Francorum, tertise partis tertia pars esset ejus imperium. Struv. Script. Rer. Germ. ii. 317.] Note 3 E, p. 241. Benno Cardinal, in Vita Hildebr. [ap. Ortv. Gratii Fascic. Rerum Expetendar. i. 78, edit. Lond. 1690.] Funccius in Comment. Chronol. lib. x. [A.D. 1074, edit. Witteb. 1578.] Platin. in Greg. 7. [p. 176.] Lamb. Schafnaburg. de Reb. German. [A.D. 1073, inter Rerum <5erm. Script, edit. Struv. i. 354, fol. Ratisb. 1726.] Note 3 F, p. 241. Aventin. Annal. [Boiorum, sive Veteris Germaniae,] lib. v. [p. 347. edit. Francof. 1637.] 302 NOTES. Note 3 G, p. 242. Lamb. Schafhaburg. an. 1077. [inter Rerum Germ. Script, edit. Struv. i. 418, 419.] Note 3 H, p. 242. Platin. in Greg. VII. [p. 178.] [Conradi a Licththenaw] Abbatis Urspergens. Chron. [p. 170, Argentorat. 1609. Note 3 I, p. 242. Genebr. Chronol. [Notuit enim pati ut istius voluntas requireretur in eligendo Romano pontifice, item ut episcopatus imperii terminis inclusos imperator pro suo arbitrio distribueret. p. 591.] Note 3 K, p. 242. Otho Frising. lib. vi. cap. 35. [edit. 1569.] Note 3 L, p. 242. Otho Frising. de Gestis Fred, [primi] lib. i. cap. 1. [edit. 1569.] Sigebert. [Gemblac] in an. 1085. [ap. Struv. Rerum Germ. Script, i. 847. Vincent. [Bellovac] in Spec. Hist. lib. xxv. cap. 84. [p. 1031, edit. Duac. 1624.] Note 3 M, p. 243. ( Abbas Urspergens. [pp. 169, 170.] Lamb. Schafnab. an. 1077. [ap. Struv. Rerum Germ. Script, i. 419.] Plat, in Greg. VII. [pp. 178, 179, 180.] Note 3 N, p. 243. Aventin. Annal. lib. v. [p. 351, 352.] Note 3 O, p. 243. Aventin. Annal. lib. v. [p. 354.] Matth. Paris, in Gulielmo I. [A.D. 1078, p. 8, edit. Par. 1644.] Paulus Langius, an. 1078. [ap. Struv. Rerum Germ. Script, i. 1144.] NOTES. 303 Note 3 P, p. 244. Aventin. Annal. lib. v. [p. 351, 352.] Note 3 Q, p. 244. Genebr. Chronol. [Vir dignus pontificatu ad deprimendum politi- corum supercilium. Monarcbos terruit nominis sui et zeli claritate. Captivitatem Ecclesise et servitutem quam a principibus patiebatur, restituit, ululantibus Centuratoribus. . . . Laudatissimus et zelo sin- gularis, vereque apostolicus. A.D. 1087. p. 591. Pontifex proceres et populum saeramento prastito sancte solvit, et ut Rudulpho adhaweant sanctius imperat. p. 592.] Note 3 R, p. 245. Aventin. Annal. lib. v. [p. 353.] Benno Cardinalis [de Vita et Gestis Hildebrandi, ap. Ort. Grat. Fascic. Rerum Expetend. i. 178.] Note 3 S, p. 245. Aventin. ubi supra [pp. 347, 349, 351.] Note 3 T, p. 245. [See Aventin. p. 358.] Note 3 U, p. 246. Aventin. lib. vi. [p. 387.] Note 3 V, p. 246. Radevicua de Gestis Frederici [Imp. I.] lib. i. cap. 10. [inter Urstitii Germ. Hist. Script, p. 482, edit. Francof. 1585.] Alphons. Ciaccon. in Vita Innocentii II. [i. 501.] Note 3 W, p. 247. Carion. Chron. lib. iv. [p. 623, edit. Genev. 1625.] Alphons. Ciaccon. in Vita Alexand. III. [p. 585.] Genebr. Chronol. [p. 622.] Ranulphus [Monachus Cestria?] in Polychron. lib. vii. [MS.] Note 3 X, p. 247. Pontif. Rom. Gregor. XIII. par. 1. [De processione ad ecclesiam Lateranensem. . . . Cum papa per scalam ascendit equum, major prin- ceps, qui prsesens adest, etiam si rex esset aut imperator, stapham equi papalis tenet, et deinde ducit equum per frenum aliquantulum. 804 . NOTES. .... Coram papa serviant laici majores et nobiliores, etiam si essent reges ; coram cardinalibus et aliis omnibus, familiares eorum digniores. —Pp. 49, 51, edit. Venet. 1582.] Ceremoniale Rom. lib. i. [sect. iii. Nobilior laicus, etiam imperator aut rex, aquam ad lavandas pontificis manus primo ferat, hoc ordine. .... Et si imperator aut rex aquam ferre debet cum aliquibus etiam principibus sociatus, imperatorem aut regem ad credentiam ducit. — Fol. 43. b. edit. Colon. 1572.] Note 3 Y, p. 247. Aventin. lib. vi. [Sacrosanctam philosophiam divinitus a Spiritu Sancto editam, interpretando suis moribus aptam faciunt, ambitioni suae servire cogunt ; scita decretaque Christi non servare sed servire sibi volunt. — p. 371. edit. Francof. 1627.] Note 3 Z, p. 247. Abbas Urspergens. [A.D. 1107. p. 193.] Aventin. lib.vi. [p. 374.] Note 4 A, p. 248. Aventin. lib. vi. [p. 390. Unde igitur habet imperium, nisi a nobis ? Ex electione principum suorum habet nomen regis ; ex con- secratione nostra habet nomen imperatoris, et Augusti, et Caesaris. Ergo, per nos imperat. . . . Imperator quod habet, totum habet a nobis. . . . Ecce, in potestate nostra est, ut demus illud cui volumus. Propterea constituti a Deo super gentes et regna, ut destruamus, et evellamus, et sedificemus, et plantemus, &c] Note 4 B, p. 248. Innoc. III. in festo D. Sylvest. Papa?, Serm. I. [Fuit ergo B. Syl- vester sacerdos, non solum magnus sed maximus, pontificali et regali potestate sublimis ; Illius quidem vicarius, Qui est Rex regum et Dominus dominantium, Sacerdos in seternum secundum ordinem Melchisedech, ut spiritualiter possit intelhgi dictum ad ipsum et suc- cessors illius quod ait B. Petrus Apostolus, primus et pracipuus predecessor ipsorum, * Vos estis genus electum, regale sacerdotium.' Hos enim elegit Dominus ut essent sacerdotes et reges. Nam vir Constantinus egregius imperator, ex revelatione divina per B. Syl- vestrum fuit a lepra in baptismo mundatus, urbem pariter et senatum cum hominibus et dignitatibus suis, et omne regnum occidentis ei tradidit et dimisit ; secedens et ipse Byzantium et regnum sibi re- tinens orientis. — P. 96. Opp. edit. Colon. 1575.] NOTES. 305 Note 4 C, p. 248. In Fest. SS. Petri et Pauli, Serm. II. [Altitudo maris istius de qua Christus dixit ad Petrum, ' Due in altum,' est Roma, quse primatum et principatum super universum seculum obtinebat, et obtinet. — p. 135.] Note 4 D, p. 249. In Consecrat. Rom. Pontif. Serm. II. [Equidem constitutus sum super familiam, ut sicut excellentissimus mihi est locus, ita sit et excellentissimum meritum. . . . Mihi namque dicitur, in Propheta, ' Constitui te super gentes et regna, ut eveDas et destruas,' &c. . . . Jam ergo videtis quis sit iste servus, qui super familiam constituitur, profectus vicarius Jesu Christi, successor Petri, Christus Domini, Deus Pharaonis ; inter Deum et hominem medius constitutus ; citra Deum, sed ultra hominem ; minor Deo, sed major homine ; qui de omnibus judicat, et a nemine judicata. — P. 189.] Note 4 E, p. 249. Innocent. Patriarch. Constant. Epist. Decret. lib. ii. [Nam cum aquae multse sint populi multi, congregationesque aquarum sint maria, per hoc quod Petrus super aquas maris incessit, super universos populos se potestatem accepisse monstravit. — Opp. ii. 514.] Note 4 F, p. 249. Innocentius Tertius Imperatori Constantinopol. [Opp. ii. 516.J Note 4 G, p. 250. Matth. Paris in Johan. [A.D. 1213, p. 170, edit. 1644.] Abbas Ursperg. [no such circumstance is there mentioned.] Genebr. Chronol. [p. 639] Plat, in Innoc. III. [pp. 214, 215.] Note 4H, p. 250. Concil. Lateran. [IV.] can. iii. [Si vero dominus temporalis requi- sites et monitus ab Ecclesia, terram suam purgare neglexerit ab hac hreretica fceditate, per metropolitanum et ca?teros comprovinciales episcopos excommunicationis vinculo innodetur. Et, si satisfacere contempserit infra annum, significetur hoc summo pontifici, ut ex tunc ipse vassallos ab ejus fidelitate denunciet absolutos, et terram exponat Catholicis occupandam, qui earn exterminatis hsereticis sine ulla con- tradictione possideant, et in fidei puritate conservent.] Oper. Innoc. torn. i. [Labb. Concil. xi. 148.] OVERALL. X 306 NOTES. Note 4 I, p. 250. Extravag. [Commun. lib. i.] De majoritate et obed. Unam Sanc- tam. [cap. 1. In hac ejusque potestate duos esse gladios, spiritualem videlicet et temporalem, evangelicis dictis instruimur. Nam dicenti- bus Apostolis, ' Ecce duo gladii hie,' in Ecclesia scilicet, cum Apo- stoli loquerentur, non respondit Dominus, nimis esse, sed, ' Satis.' Certe qui in potestate Petri temporalem gladium esse negat, male verbum attendit Domini proferentis, ' Converte gladium tuum in vaginam.' Uterque ergo est in potestate Ecclesiae, spiritualis scilicet gladius et materialis. Sed is quidem pro Ecclesia, ille vero ab Ecclesia exercendus. Die sacerdotis, is manu regum et militum, sed ad nutum et patientiam sacerdotis. Oportet autem gladium esse sub gladio, et temporalem auctoritatem spirituali subjici potestati. Nam cum dicat Apostolus, ' Non est potestas nisi a Deo, quae autem sunt a Deo ordinata sunt.' Non autem ordinata essent, nisi gladius esset sub gladio, et tanquam inferior reduceretur per alium in suprema. . . . Nam veritate testante, spiritualis potestas terrenam po- testatem instituere habet, et indicare, si bona non fuerit ; sic de Ecclesia et ecclesiastica potestate verificatur vaticinium Heremiae, ' Ecce, constitui te hodie super gentes et regna' et csetera qua? sequuntur. Ergo si deviat terrena potestas, judicabitur a potes- tate spirituali, sed si deviat spiritualis minor, a suo superiori ; si vero suprema, a solo Deo, non ab homine poterit judicari, testante Apo- stolo, * Spiritualis homo judicat omnia, ipse autem a nemine judicatur.' .... Quicunque igitur huic potestati a Deo sic ordinata? resistit, Dei ordinationi resistit, nisi duo, sicut Manichseus, fingat esse principia ; quod falsum et hseretieum judicamus, quia testante Moyse, non in principiis, sed in principio, coelum Deus creavit et terram. Porro subesse Romano pontifici omni human* creatura? declara- mus, dicimus, diffinimus et pronunciamus omnino esse de necessitate salutis. — Col. 207, edit. Taur. 1620.] Note 4 K, p. 251. — [See note 4 A.J Note 4 L, p. 251. Joan. Marius de Schism, part ii. cap. 18. [Bonifacius siquidem ter coronam imperii Alberto Austriaco denegaverat, et gladio accinctus dixerat se esse Caesarem Augustum, imperatorem, ac dominum mundi, nee alium quemquam. — Ad calcem Theod. a Niem. Hist, sui tem- poris, p. 617, edit. Argent. 1609.] Carion. Chronica [p. 667, edit. Genev. 1625.] NOTES. 307 Note 4 M, p. 252. Gab. Biel. Expos. Can. Miss. lect. 23, ex Eusebio. [Refert etiam Eusebius Csesariensis quod excellentia Romani imperii extulit papa- tum Romani pontificis super alias. — Fol. 39, b. col. 1. edit. Lugd. 1542.] Note 4 N, p. 253. Genebrard Chron. [A.D. 1133. Tunc et Theologia Scholastica sive Disputatrix de suo incremento meditator. — P. 613.] Note 4 O, p. 253. — Aventin. lib. vi. [p. 383.J Note 4 P, p. 253. Tho. Aquin. de Regim. Princ. lib. iii. cap. 10. [Propter quod opor- tet dicere in Summo Pontifice esse plenitudinem omnium gratiarum, ipse solus confert plenam indulgentiam omnium peccatorum, ut com- petat sibi quod de primo principe Domino dicimus, quia de plenitu- dine ejus nos omnes accepimus. — D. Thoma? Aquinatis Opuscula, p. 177, edit. Antv. 1612.] Id. ib. c. 19. [In duobus igitur casibus ampliatur ejus potestas, ut patet supra, vel ratione delicti, vel ad bonum totius fidei, quod ele- ganter nobis ostendit Propheta Heremias, cui in persona vicarii Christi dicitur, 'Ecce.'jnquit, 'constituite super gentes'. . . . id. p. 181. Sicut ergo corpus per animam habet esse, virtutem et operationem, ut ex verbis Philosophi et Augustini de Immortalitate Animae patet, ita et temporalis jurisdictio principum per spiritualem Petri et succes- sorum ejus. Cujus quidem argumentum assumi potest per ea quae invenimus in actis et gestis Summorum Pontificum et Imperatorum, quia temporali jurisdictioni cesserunt. Primo quidem de Constantino apparet, qui Sylvestro in imperio cessit. Item, de Carolo Magno, quem papa Adrianus imperatorem constituit. Idem de Ottone I. qui per Leonem creatus et imperator est constitutes, ut historian referunt, sed ex dispositione principum authoritate apostolica facta, satis apparet ipsorum potestas. Primo enim invenimus de Zacharia hanc potestatem exercuisse super regem Francorum, quia ipsum a regno deposuit et omnes barones a juramento fidelitatis absolvit. Item, de Innocentio III. qui Ottoni IV. imperium abstulit, sed et Frederico II. hoc idem accidit per Honorium Innocentii immediatum successorem. — Id. cap. 10. p. 177.] Note 4 Q, p. 254. Ibidem, cap. xx. [Secundam coronam, quse aurea est, a summo x2 308 NOTES. percepit Pontifice, et cum pede sibi porrigitur, in signum sua? sub- jectionis et fidelitatis ad Romanam ecclesiam. — P. 181. J Note 4 R, p. 255. 2 B 2 e q. 12, art. 2. [Utrum princeps propter apostasiam a fide, amittat dominium in subditos, ita quod ei obedire non teneantur. Videtur quod princeps propter apostasiam a fide non amittat dominium in subditos, quin ei teneantur obedire. Dicit enim Ambros. et habetur 11. q. 3. quod Julianus Imperator, quamvis esset apostata, habuit tamen sub se Christianos milites, quibus cum dicebat ' Producite aciem pro defensione reipublica?,' obediebant ei. Ergo, propter apostasiam principis, subditi non absolvuntur ab ejus dominio. 2. Praterea, apostata a fide infidelis est ; sed infidelibus dominis inveniuntur aliqni sancti viri fideliter servisse, sicut Joseph Pharaoni, et Daniel Nabuchodonosor, et Mardochseus Assuero, Ergo, propter apostasiam a fide non est dimittendum, quin principi obediatur a sub- ditis. . . . Sed contra est quod Gregorius VII. dicit, Nos sanctorum pra?de- cessorum statuta tenentes, eos qui excommunicatis fidelitate aut jura- menti sacramento sunt constricti, apostolica authoritate Sacramento absolvimus, et ne sibi fidelitatem observent omnibus modis prohi- bemus, quousque ad satisfactionem perveniant ; sed apostate a fide sunt excommunicato sicut et hseretici. . . . ergo principibus apostanti- bus a fide non est obediendum. Respondeo,. ... ad primum ergo dicendum quod illo tempore Ec- clesia in sui novitate nondum habebat potestatem terrenos principes compescendi, et ideo toleravit fideles Juliano apostata? obedire in his qua? nondum erant contra fidem, ut majus periculum fidei vitaretur. Ad secundum dicendum quod alia ratio est de infidelibus aliis, qui nunquam fidem susceperunt.] Note 4 S, p. 256. Aug. Hunnsep] Epist. ad Pium V. in Summa Aquinat. [Ur- banus sedis Apostolicse eximius antistes, istius viri excellentem doc- trinam admirans, et veluti coelitus delapsam, ad innatam humanis mentibus ignorantise caliginem depellendam, suscipiens, ad earn discendam gravissime hortatur; et Tolosana? academia? theologis ut in disputationibus, et suis de fide et moribus responsis, potissimum sequantur pnecepit. Innocentius vero in ejusdem sedis Apostolicse suprema dignitate locatus, tanti hujus, de quo loquimur, viri doctri- nam fecit, ut ei primum post canonicam Scripturam locum tribuere non dubitaverit. — Edit. fol. Antv. 1585.] NOTES. 309 Note 4 T, p. 256. Surius de Sanctorum Hist. torn. ii. Martii 7. [p. 84, edit. 1618. The Bull of Canonization is dated 7 Kal. Aug. 1323, see Bullar. Magn. 1, 226, Lugd. 1655 ; Bzovii Annal. A.D. 1274, § 20; Ray- nald. Annal. A.D. 1323, § 64.] Note 4 U, p. 257. Genebr. Chronol. [A.D. 533. Justinianus. . . . duo fere per eosdem librorum millia in 53 digessit et absolvit, an. 533, unde Digesta sive Pandectse.— P. 462.] Note 4 V, p. 257. Abbas Ursperg. [p. 209. in marg. edit. 1609.] Carion. Chron. [p. 337, edit. 1625.] Note 4W, p. 257- Petr. Gregor. Partition. Juris. Canon, lib. i. cap. 1. [Composuit - igitur vir venerabilis Gratianus monachus S. Felicis Bononiensis, ordi- nis S. Benedicti, vir in divinis Scripturis eruditissimus et mirabili studio flagrans, ingenio promptus et clarus eloquio, vita quoque et conversatione insignis, Decretorum volumen insigne ex veterum sta- tutis, sanctionibus et scriptis, quo juris canonici professores usque in prsesens utuntur in scholis, ab Eugenio papa tertio approbatum. — Gratiani Vita praefix. Decret. Gratiani, edit. Paris. 1531.] Note 4 X, p. 257-— Aventin. lib. vi. [p. 383.] Note 4 Y, p. 258. Decret. Grat. impress. Paris, anno 1510. [In the edition of Paris, 1531, the rubric prefixed to the first Distinction is this; ' Decretum Aureum domini Gratiani, in quo. est discordantium Canonum Con- cordia.' No notice of the edition of Paris, 1510, is found in Mat- taire's Annales Typograph., but he quotes (V. i. 453) the edition of Paris, 1518, which however reads 'domini Gratiani,' not 'divi Gra- tiani.'] Note 4 Z, p. 258.— Genebr. Chronol. [p. 641.] Note 5 A, p. 258. In fine Clem. [Hsec sane felicis recordationis Clemens papa V. predecessor noster prudenter attendens, et provide cupiens deforma- 310 NOTES. torum reformation! prospicere, solvere difficilia, ac sanctiones quaestio- nibus et negotiis imminentibus consonas promulgare ; dudum nedum in Concilio Viennensi, quin etiam antea et post ipsum Concilium, constitutiones plurimas edidit, in quibus multa utilia statuit atque salubria, et nonnulla dubia in judiciis et extra frequentata decidit. Et licet eas collectas in unum volumen, et sub congruis titulis collo- catas, mittere decrevisset, et dare in commune subjectis, assidua tamen occupatio circa magna, et sortis humanae conditio, quae ipsum de medio sustulit, in causa fuerunt quare suum in hac parte proposi- tum non implevit. — Prooem. in Decret. Clementis Papae Quinti, ap. Lib. Sext. Decretal. &c. col. 4, (second series of pages,) edit. Taur. 1620. J Note 5 A*, p. 259. Genebrard. Chron. [A.D. 1133, p. 612.] Note 5 B, p. 259. Intitul. Extravag. [Extravagantes Decretales, quae a diversis Ro- manis pontificibus post Sextum emanaverunt. — Liber Sextus Decretal. &c. col. 181, (third series of pages,) edit. Taur. 1620.] Extravag. de poenit. et remiss. Etsi. [Datum Spirae, A.D. m.cccc.lxxviii. Id. col. 359.] Note 5 B*, p. 260. Dominic. Soto de Jure et Justit. lib. iv. quaest. 4, artic. 2, [see this author in 4 Sent. Dist. 25, q. 2. art. 1, p. 607, edit. Duac. 1613;] Barth. Casanaeus in Catalog. Glor. Mundi,part. 5, consid. 29. [p. 240, edit. August. Taur. 1617] [Martini ab Azpiluceta, Doctoris] Navarr. in cap. Novit. [Opp. torn. ii. p. 99, edit. Col. 1616.] Note 5 C, p. 259. Petrus Matthaeus in summa Constitut. praefat. ad Sixtum Quintum. [The following is the title of the work here quoted. — * Septimus De- cretalium, constitutionum apostolicarum post Sextum, Clementinas et Extravagantes usque in hodiernum diem editarum continuatio, cum notis et scholiis.' 8vo. Franc, ad Mcen. 1590.] Note 5 C*, p. 260. Barth. Cassan. ibid. [p. 240.] Ferd. Vasquez, Controv. lib. i. cap. 20, 21. NOTES. 311 Note 5 D, p. 261. — Carion. Chron. [p. 677.] Note 5 E, p. 261. Genebr. Chronol. [p. 641.] Note 5 F, p. 261. Ferdin. Vasquez. ut supra. Barth. Cassan. ut supra. Note 5 G, p. 263. Stanisl. Orichovius in Chimsera. Note 5 H, p. 263. Navarr. Relect. c. Novit. in 3 Notabil. [Opp. torn. ii. p. 97.] Note 5 I, p. 264. Johan. de Paris, tract, de Potest. Regia et Papali [Edit. Paris. 1506, quarto.] Bellarm. de Sum. Pont. lib. v. cap. 1. [Nos ergo tria tractabimus. Primo, ostendemus pontificem jure divino non habere directe tempo- ralem potestatem. Secundo, habere eum aliquo modo, id est, ratione suk spiritualis monarchic summam potestatem etiam temporalem. Tertio, non esse contra jus divinum quod episcopi habeant etiam actu et directe jurisdictionem temporalem in urbes et provincias sibi donatas a regibus, vel alio justo titulo acquisitas. — Col. 1083.] Didac. Covarruvias 2 part. Relect. § 9. [p. 539. edit. Venet. 1588. Qua in re ut quod obiter attigimus summatim explicemus, est omnino et diligehter observandum, sic datam fuisse immediate a Christo Jesu summam potestatem Petro, ut et ab Ipso Redemptore nostro Petri successoribus immediate eadem potestas et idem primatus datus esse ex catholica doctrina constet. Ipsis vero Apostolis sic data fuit a Christo Jesu potestas ordinis ac jurisdictionis ipsi Petro principi summo subdita, ut in episcopos Apostolorum successores jurisdictionis potestas minime transmissa ex immediata Christi concessione censea- tur, sed ea ex summo pontifice Christi vicario ex ejus concessione ipsis episcopis competat, ac tandem eidem Romano pontifici sub- dita sit.] Note 5 J, p. 264. Abbas Urspergens. an. 1076. [p. 169.] Aventin. lib. v. [p. 349.] 312 NOTES. Note 5 K, p. 265. Urspergens. an. 1080. [p. 171.] Aventin. lib. v. [p. 355.] Note 5 L, p. 265. Aventin. lib. vi. [pp. 375, 376.] Notb 5 M, p. 265. Aventin. lib. vi. [pp. 375,376.] Note 5 N, p. 265. Matth. Paris, in Hen. III. [p. 239, 240, edit. 1644.] Aventin. lib. vii. [p. 412.] Note 5 O, p. 266. Aventin. lib. iii. [Deinde hujuscemodi orationem archimystam habuisse reperio. . . . Quos (sc. falsos prophetas) ex spinis atque ope- ribus, nempe avaritia, luxu, contentione, odio, invidia, bellis, dis- , cordia? malis, libidine dominandi, ambitione cognosci oportere docuit. .... Romani flamines arma in omnes habent Christianos, audendo, fallendo, et bella ex bellis serendo magni facti, oves trucidant. ... — Lib. vii. p. 420. Qui sitis, opera vestra ostendunt. Opes, potentiam, divitias, ho- nores, voluptates, munera concupiscitis, appetitis, adamatis; pro hisce victi cupiditate pejus Turcis, Saracenis armis decertatis. — Id. p. 423. In memoria habete quid ante duodecim annos ille sane egregius Decimus cum decimis egerit, idem Quartus cum quartJs aget, ut illas Gregorius vigilantissimus a nobis emungeret, Scythas, Arabes, Turcas, in nos armavit. Mentiar nisi hosce, nempe maximum vec- tigal, magis salvos quam nos esse velit. — Id. pp. 440, 441.] Note 5 P, p. 266. — Aventin. ut supra. [. . . . aliter nunquam committam ut tarn stultus videar ut e manu manubrium mihi eripi patiar, aut memet ultro atque meos ludibrio effeminatis Anticbristis atque prodigiosis eunucbis esse sinam, . Pejores Turcis, Saracenis, Tartaris, Judseis, sunt ; plus his omnibus Christiana? simplicitati officiunt ; libertatem Christi sanguine partam excindere conantur ; dominationem arripiunt. p. 444.] Note 5 Q, p. 267. Marsil. Patavin. Jo. Gandaven. Luit. de Berbenburg. Andr. bishop of Fruxin. Ulric. Hangenor. [Extant hujuscemodi consilia theolo- NOTES. 313 gorum in bibliothecis in membranis scripta, contra Vicesimum Secundum : libros quoque edunt hi amici Ludovici ; Marsilius Pata- vinus, Joannes Gandunensis, Luitpoldus de Bebenburg, Andreas Laudensis mysta Fruxinensis, Augustse magister epistolarum, Ulricus Hangenor Augusta ortus, sacro Csesaris scrinio prsefectus, Dantes Algerius Florentinus .... Iisdem diebus Wilhelmum Occamensem, Franciscanum Theologum prastantissimum atque dialecticum sua? tempestatis acutissimum, duos collegas ejus, Bonam Gratiam Bergo- mensem et Michaelem Csesenatem Franciscanorum antistitem prima- rium, sacrarum literarum, utriusque juris professores, cum sacris Antonii Patavini, Monachium ad Ludovicum venisse reperio. Wil- helmus is, Anglia ortus, sectam recentiorum peripateticorum, . . . ab omnibus academiis fere explosam instauravit. Ad Ludovicum dixisse ferunt, Tu nos pugnis, ense, ferro, armis, a servitute assere ; nos te lingua, calamo, litteris, stylo, libris, verbis vendicabimus. Atque illi omnes certatim diserti in Romanum pontificem invecti sunt : ratio- cinationes, captiones ejusdem confutant, argumenta diluunt ; testi- monio divini humanique juris probant Joannem libidine dominandi insanire. — p. 468.] Note 5 R, p. 267. Dante Aligerius, Will, Ockam, Bona Gratise, Mich. Catenates, Anton. Patavin. [See the last Note, where these authors are mentioned.] Note 5 S, p. 267. Aventin. lib. vii. [See the passage quoted in the preceding Note.] Note 5 T, p. 267. Ibid. [Monstrum biceps, mundanus et spiritalis esse contendit. — p. 447.] Note 5 U, p. 267. — Bellarm. de Rom. Pont. lib. v. cap. 1. [Secundo, objiciunt Scripturam Lucse 22, ubi Dominus duos gladios Petro concedit. Respondeo, ad litteram nullam fieri mentionem in eo loco Evangelii de gladio spirituali vel temporali pontificis, sed solum Dominum illis verbis admonere voluisse discipulos, tempore passionis suae in iis angustiis et metu ipsos futuros fuisse, in quibus esse solent qui tuni- cam vendunt ut emant gladium, ut ex Theophylacto aUisque Patribus colligitur. Porro beatus Bernardus et Bonifacius papa mystice inter- pretati sunt hunc locum, nee volunt dicere eodem modo habere ponti- ficem gladium utrumque, sed alio, et alio modo, ut postea exponemus. 314 NOTES. Bellarm. ibid. Sed occurrunt quidam atque objiciunt, primo, verba Domini, Matth. 28. Data est Mihi omnis potestas in coelo et in terra. Hinc enim colligi videtur Christum habuisse spirituale et terrenum regnum. Utriusque autem regni claves Petro attribuit, ut Nicolaus ait in epistola ad Michaelem, " Christus," inquit, " beato Petro, vitae aeternae clavigero, terreni simul et ccelestis imperii jura commisit." Respondeo, potestatem de qua hie loquitur Dominus, non esse potestatem temporalem, ut regum terrenorum, sed vel tantum spiri- tualem, ut beatus Hieronymus et beatus Anselmus exponunt, qui hunc esse volunt sensum eorum verborum : Data est Mihi omnis potestas in cmlo et terra ; id est, ut sicut in coelo Rex sum angelorum, ita per fidem regnem in cordibus hominum, vel (ut addit Theophy- lactus,) esse potestatem quandam summam in omnes creaturas, non temporalem, sed divinam, vel divines simillimam, qua? non potest com- municari homini mortali. Ad testimonium Nicolai dico inprimis, illud citari a Gratiano, distin. 22, can. Omnes, sed non inveniri inter epistolas Nicolai papse. Addo secundo, si revera ea sit Nicolai papas sententia, hunc habere sensum, Christus Petro terreni simul et ccelestis imperii jura commisit, id est, Christus Petro concessit, ut quod ille solveret aut ligaret in terris, esset solutum aut ligatum et in ccelis. AUusit enim Nicolaus ad verba Domini, Matth. 16. Nee possumus aliter exponere, nisi velimus Nicolaum secum pugnare, qui in epistola ad Michaelem diserte docet Christum distinxisse actus, officia, et dignitates pontificis et imperatoris, ne aut imperator jura pontificis, aut pontifex jura im- peratoris prsesumeret usurpare Id. p. 1084. Papam non esse dominum totius mundi .... Primum probatur, Papa non est dominus earum provinciarum quas obtinent infideles ; nam inprimis Dominus (Joannis ultimo) solum oves suas Petro commisit; infideles autem non sunt oves. Deinde, non potest papa judicare infideles, 1 Cor. 5. Quid ad me de his qui /oris sunt.judicare? Denique, infideles principes sunt veri et supremi principes suorum regnorum, nam dominium non fundatur in gratia, aut fide, sed in libero arbitrio et ratione, nee descendit ex jure divino, sed ex jure gentium, ut patet ex eo quod Deus approbat regna gentilium in utro- que Testamento .... Ridiculum autem est, dedisse Deum papa? jus in regna totius mundi, et non dedisse illi unquam facultatem utendi ejusmodi jure.J Note 5 V, p. 271. — Catharin. in Ep. ad Roman, c. 13. [Non desunt tamen plerique quibus non sufficit quod satis est, ne dicam nimium. Sunt enim qui, ut dixi, magno in Ecclesiam odio, vel NOTES. 315 pontificum moribus irritati, hunc gladium omnino negant et auferunt ab ecclesiasticis. Et sunt contra, qui sive id per adulationem faciant, sive per nimiam simplicitatem, aiunt ad summum pontificem de jure pertinere omnem totius orbis terra dominationem, etiam temporalem, cum sit summus Christi in terris vicarius. Domini autem est terra et plenitudo ejus, orbis terrarum, et qui habitant in eo. Addunt Christum dixisse, Omnia Mihi tradita sunt a Patre. Verum ridicula hsec profecto, quae neque ipsimet pontifices auderent asserere. Si enim ita esset, nulli ergo vere terrarum domini essent in temporalibus, sed solus pontifex dominus esset: et ceteri, etiam quoad temporalia, sub illo .... Quod autem papa sit vicarius Christi, quid habet momenti ut credamus data esse illi ad regendum omnia regna mundi in temporalibus ? Imo id potius efficit ut persuadeamur ei non data, quoniam Christus abjecit ea, et ut Homo erat, in mundo non habuit. — Comment, in D. Pauli Epp. p. 119. edit. fol. Venet. 1551.] Note 5 W, p. 271. [Boet. Epon.] Heroic, qu. 5. [Liber harum qusestionum quintus, qui est, ne clerici vel monachi secularibus negotiis si immisceant. Duac. 1588.] Note 5 X, p. 272. Henr. Quodl. 6. qu. 23. Jo. Driedo, lib. ii. de Lib. Christ, cap. 2. Jo. de Turrecremata Sum. lib. ii. 113. et seq. Alb. Pighius, Hierarch. Eccles. lib. v. Tho. Waldens. [torn, i.] lib. ii. Doct. Fid. art. 3. cap. 76, 77, 78. [The arguments of these chapters are as follows; Ad argumentum de regalia Christi temporali respondet, cap. lxxvi. Quod Christus convincitur rex non fuisse temporalis ex testibus veris, cap. lxxvii. Quod potestas et regalis auctoritas sit immediate a Deo donata, cap. lxxviii. Edit. Ascens. fol. Paris, 1532.] Petrus de Palude, de Potest. Ecclesiastica. Cajetan. in Apol. c. 13. ad 6. Fr. Victoria, de Pot. Eccles. q. 2. Dominic, a Soto in 4. Distinct. 25. q. 2. art. 1. [p. 607. edit. 1613.] VARIOUS READINGS From the manuscript copy of the first hook of Overall's Con- vocation Book formerly belonging to Bishop Barlow, and now in the Library of Queen's College, Oxford*. P. 1, 11. b. The Barlow MS. agrees with B. except that for ' Scripture' it reads ' Scriptures.' — 2, — c. Barl. omits the words ' or the devil' — 2, — e. The concluding words of the Canon in Barl. were originally, 'be he accursed,' but they are altered to ' he doth greatly err' by another hand. — 2, — f. ' To him that will carefully peruse the Scriptures.' Barl. — 2, — h. ' Ordaining by the very law of nature.' Barl. — 3, 1. 5. ' In the earth, that is mentioned in the Scriptures, although it was not then called' Barl. — 3, ii. ii. * And either.' Barl. — 4, — p. ' Duly serve.' Barl. — 4, — q. ' Besides the law of nature left in them.' This clause is omitted in Barl. — 5, — t. Barl. agrees with B. — 5, — c. ' Priestly' Barl. — 6, — £ ' Hidden from nature and in right manner.' Barl. — 6, — g. ' Lawfully teach.' Barl. — 7, 1. 4. ' Ordering them by virtue.' Barl. — 7, n. n. Barl. agrees here with A and B. — 7, — q. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 8, — r. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 8, — s. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 8, — t. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 9, — x. Barl. agrees with B. — 9, — y. Barl. agrees with B. — 9, 1. 9. ' Renewing unto them His promise' Barl. — 9, ii. b. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 9, — c. Barl. agrees with B. — 10, — e. Barl. agrees with B. — 10, — f. Barl. agrees with B. — 10, — g. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 10, — h. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 10, — i. Barl. agrees with A. — 11, — m. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 12, — p. Barl. agrees with B. — 12, 1. IS. ' Had fore-prophesied' Barl. — 12, u. q. Barl. agrees with B. — 12, — r. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 13, — u. 'Of Reuben or Ephraem' Barl. — 13, — y. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 13, — z. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 13, — b. In Barl. the arrangement of the Canons is the same as in A and B. — 13, — c. Here Barl. agrees with A and B, except that it reads, ' offspring, or not without their choice .... or in dividing.' — . 14, — d. So Barl., reading however ' or that the people took then upon them.' — 15, 1. 3. ' Together into one body' Barl. — 15, n. g. Barl. agrees with A and B. » The editor is indebted for these various Andland, Fellow of Qneen's College, Ox- readings to the kindness of the Rev. W. F. ford. VARIOUS READINGS. P. 15, n. i. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 16, — m. Barl. agrees with A and B. — last line. ' Without one chief head to govern them.' Barl. — 16, 11. n. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 17, — o. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 17, — p. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 17, 1. 23. ' To chose a prince' Barl. — 17, 1. 25. • And to their own destruction' Barl. — 17, n. q. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 17, 1. 26. 'When there was their greatest' Barl. — 18, ii. r. Barl. agrees with Auth. correct — 18, — s. Barl. agrees with A and B. — 19, 1. 5. ' Did foretell that it would come to pass, not only that the tribe of Judah should hear the sceptre, and that the kingdom of Judah' Barl. — 19, — 9. ' That the sceptre or government,' Barl. — 19, n. a. Barl. agrees with A. — 20, — c. Barl. agrees with A. — 20, — d. Barl. agrees with A. — 20, 1. 16. ' And name them.' Barl. — 20, 1. 25. ' That they held their kingdoms.' Barl. — 21, n. g. Barl. agrees with A. — 21, — i. Barl. agrees with A. — 21, L 9. ' Diminishing their own' Barl. — 21, n. j. Barl. agrees with A. . — 21, 1. 22. ' Of all the rest their predecessors' Barl. — 22, n. o. ' Against any of them whom God had set over to rule them, which He Himself did not securely revenge. When the people had — 23, — p. Barl. agrees with A. — 23, — q. Barl. agrees with A. — 24, 1. 11. 'Or depose them' Barl. — 25, ii. t. Barl. agrees with A. — 25, — u. Barl. agrees with A. — 25, — x. Barl. agrees with A. — 25, — y. Barl. agrees with A. — 26, 1. 1. ' If any man shall therefore' Barl. — 26, n. b. Barl. agrees with D. — 27, L 7. ' Both the priests, the Levites, and the prophets.' Barl. — 27, 1. 2. ' And therefore if any man shall ' Barl. — 27, 1. 25. ' properly subject to.' Barl. — 28, 1. 2. ' Sent unto them from God.' Barl. — last line. Barl. agrees with A. — 30, n. h. ' That they neither bowed down unto them' Barl. — 30, 1. 15. ' If they endeavoured, as much as they could, to do that' Barl. — 31, 1. 5. ' Made to themselves, or to blaspheme' Barl. — 31, 1. 11. ' Princes and governors.' Barl. — 32, n. k. Barl. agrees with A, proceeding, ' After he was consecrated High- Priest, both he himself and his two sons, Eleazar and Ithamar, did again amiss in burning the sin offering.' — 32, — m. Barl. agrees with A. — 32, — n. ' He was in duty compelled to send' Barl. — 32, — o. Barl. agrees with A, except that for ' priest had taken any pains,' it reads ' priests.' — 34, — u. Barl. agrees with A, reading, however, ' High-Priests' for High- Priest.' — 34, 1. 18. ' And in some other things' Barl. — 34, 1. 28. * As far as lawfully he might' Barl. — 34, 1. 31. ' But the priests.' Barl. — 35, 1. 1. 'Withstand the king' Barl. — 35, n. y. Barl. agrees with A. — 35, — z. Barl. agrees with A. — 35, — a. Barl. agrees with A. — 35, — b. ' With an earthquake (as some learned men have thought, taking their grounds from the Scriptures,) he was thereby driven.' Barl. VARIOUS READINGS. P. 35, 1. 14. 'As a viceroy.' Bar]. — 35, n. g. Barl. agrees with A. — 35, — h. Barl. agrees with A. — 36, 1. ]3. ' Any priests did resist.' Barl. — 38, ii. n. Barl. here agrees with D. — 39, — o. Barl. agrees with A. — 39, 1. 31. • Consequently in other cases.' Barl. — 40, 1. 1. ' Persons whosoever' Barl. — 40, 1. 13. • That as godly prophets.' Barl. — 40, 1. 16. ' As much duty and obedience.' Barl. — 42, 1. 3. ' That the examples' Barl. — 42, 1. 10. ' Anointing and designing' Barl. — 44, 1. 9. ' Otherwise but an inferior priest,' Barl. — 45, 1. 11. ' They knew it was not' Barl. — 45, 1. 19. ' Certain that He did so,' Barl. — 45, 1. 26. ' Did thus choose and authorize.' Barl. — 46, 1. 21 . ' The history of all the princes' Barl. — 46, 1. 28. ' Under colour of their examples' Barl. — 46, 1. 35. ' Lawful for any person whosoever.' Barl. — 47, 1. 32. ' Saying that God had called' Barl. — 49, 1. 29. ' And in carrying His own people' Barl. — 51, 1. 29. ' But not with that magnificence' Barl. — 52, 1. 1. ' And the said rulers.' Barl. — 53, 1. 15. ' By dealing in causes ecclesiastical.' Barl. — 54, 1. 3. ' That the High-Priests did easily oversway both their princes and the people' Barl. — 54, 1. 27. ' With the daughter' Barl. — 55, 1. 21. ' Albeit the kings.' Barl. — 56, 1. 14. ' And some other royal prerogatives.' Barl. — 56, 1. 29. * Were miserably on every side' Barl. — 60, 1. 27. ' The walls of the inward court,' Barl. — 61, 1. 19. ' Nor would afterwards.' Barl. — 62, 1. 14. ' Arrogant sort of men' Barl. — 62, 1. 33. ' Or, for that it is said.' Barl. — 63, 1. 1 . ' Should seek the law at his mouth' Barl. — 63, 1. 15. ' That the priests and the people.' Barl. — 64, 1. 19. ' The office of the High- Priest.' Barl. — 64, 1. 24. ' The love that they bare.' Barl. — 66, 1. 11. ' Qui haec, adversus fata, suadeo.' Barl. — 67, 1. 6. 'Or of any other cause.' Barl. — 67, 1. 9. ' Or that rebellion.' Barl. — 67, 1. 18. ' Where we have spoken .... and the success thereof, we made no' Barl. — 67, 1. 24. ' That utter desolation. But it happened otherwise. Two factions' Barl. — 72, 1. 34. ' The titles of monarchs' Barl. — 73, 1. 34. ' Or thereby to impeach the mild and temperate regal government.' Barl. — 74, 1. 1. ' Amongst the Jews, that He ever committed.' Barl. — 75, 1. 22. ' Fell upon Cain, for killing.' Barl. — 77, 1. 22. ' Neither do we read that ever Aaron.' Barl. — 78, 1. 14. The words ' Placet eis' do not occur in Barl. oxford : peinted by i. shkimpton. LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. Utiles. 1. That the Library consist of scarce and valuable Works, such as those of the Authors in the annexed List, maintaining and inculcating the Doctrines and Discipline of the Anglican branch of the Catholic and Apostolic Church. 2. That each Subscriber pay yearly One Guinea in advance, to be due on the first day of each year, which shall entitle him to a copy of each Book at one half the publication price ; or Two Guineas, which shall entitle him to all Publications, free of cost. 3. That all Subscriptions be considered due for the ensuing year, unless notice shall have been given by letter to the Secre- tary, before the first day of January, of the Subscriber's inten- tion to withdraw his name. 4. That the whole management of the Fund subscribed be entrusted to a Committee, consisting of not less than twelve nor more than twenty-four Subscribers, who shall fill up all vacancies that may occur in their own body. 5. That no alteration of any kind be made in the original Text of any of the Works re-published. 6. That no Subscriber be entitled to any Book, until his Subscription be paid. It is proposed to publish in each year Six Volumes, (of 400 pages on the average). Persons wishing to become Subscribers are requested to send their own names and those of their Booksellers to the Secretary, C. Crawley, Esq., under cover to the Publisher, Mr. Parker, Bookseller, Oxford. Subscriptions received by the Treasurer, or on his account by Mr. J. H. Parker, or by Messrs. Parsons, Thompson, and Co., Oxford: Messrs. Rivington, St. Paul's Church Yard, and Waterloo Place; Mr. Burns, 17, Portman Street, Portman Square j and Messrs. Coutts and Co., Strand, London : Messrs. Deighton, Mr. Stevenson, and Messrs. Mortlocks and Co., Cambridge : and Messrs. Grant and Bolton, Dublin. LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. LIST OF AUTHORS. Bishop Andrewes. Archbishop Bancroft. Bishop Beveridge. Archbishop Bramhall. Brett, Thomas. Brevint. Brown, Thomas, Bishop Buckeridge. Bishop Bull. Burscough. Cave. Bishop Cosin. Dodwell, H. Farindon, A. Bishop Feme. Bishop Gunning. Bishop Hall. Hammond. Heylin. Hickes. Hyde, Dr. Edward. Inett. Johnson, John. Kettlewell. Archbishop Laud. Leslie, Charles. L'Estrange's Alliance. Bishop Lloyd. Marshall's Penl. Disc. Mason, Fr. Maurice, H. Bishop Montague. Bishop Morton. Bishop Nicholson (Gloucester) Bishop Overall. Bishop Patrick. Bishop Pearson. Prideaux on English Ordina- tions. Rogers's, John, Vis. Church. Bishop Sage. Sail, Dr. Archbishop Sancroft. Bishop Sanderson. Saywell. Spelman, Sir H. Scrivener, Matt. Bishop Stillingfleet. Bishop Taylor, Jer. Thorndike. Walker, William, on Baptism. Bishop Webb. Wharton, H. Bishop White, Fr. (Ely). Wilkins's Concilia. . Bishop Wilson. Care will be taken to avoid interfering with the publications of the Oxford University Press. LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. VOLUMES FOR 1841. Bishop Andrewes' Sermons, Vols. I. to IV. 21. 2s. Archbishop Bramhall's Works, Vol. I. 10s. Qd. Bishop Bull's Harmony of St. Paul and St. James on Justifica- tion, 6s. new edition. for 1842. Bishop Nicholson's Exposition of the Catechism, 6s. reprinting. Archbishop Bramhall's Works, Vol. II. 14s. Vol. III. 12s Bishop Andrewes' Sermons, Vol. V. 14s. Bishop Beveridge's Works, Vol. I. 12s. reprinting. Bishop Bull's Answer to Strictures, and Apology for his Harmony. Now first translated, 12s. reprinting. FOR 1843. Archbishop Bramhall's Works, Vol. IV. 12s. Bishop Beveridge's Works, Vol. II. and III. 12s. each. Bishop Cosin's Works, Vol. I. 12s. Bishop Overall's Convocation Book. 8s. Thorndike's Works, Vol. I., Part I. 10s. for 1844. Thorndike's Works, Vol. I. Part II. 10s. Bishop Cosin's Works, Vol. II. Bishop Beveridge's Works, Vol. IV. 12s. Marshall — The Penitential Discipline of the Primitive Church, for the first 400 years after Christ. 6s. Bishop Gunning- — The Paschal, or Lent Fast ; Apostolical and Perpetual. Johnson — The Unbloody Sacrifice, and Altar Unveiled and Sup- ported, Vol. I. LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. ©ommfttce. Rev. R. S. Barter, D.C.L. Warden of Winchester College. Rev. Edw. Churton, M.A. Crayke, Durham. Rev. W. J. Copeland, M.A. Fellow of Trinity College, Oxford. Rev. William Gresley, M.A. Prebendary of Lichfield. Rev. W. F. Hook, D.D. Vicar of Leeds. Rev. R. W. Jelf, D.D. Canon of Christ Church. Rev. John Keble, M.A. Vicar of Hursley. Rev. W. H. Mill, D.D. Christian Advocate, Cambridge; Chaplain to the Lord Archbishop of Canterbury. Rev. G. Moberly, D.C.L. Head Master of Winchester School. Rev. J. H. Newman, B.D. Fellow of Oriel College. Rev. Wm. Palmer, M.A. Worcester College, O ford. Rev. E. B. Pusey, D.D. Regius Professor of Hebrew, and Canon of Christ Church. Superintending Editor^Rev. W. F. Audland, M.A. Fellow of Queen's College, Oxford. Treasurer and Secretary — Charles Crawley, Esq., Littlemore, near Oxford. Publisher — Mr. John Henry Parker, Oxford. The following gentlemen have consented to act as Secretaries in their respective districts. Cambridge . . Rev. J. Hemery, Fellow of Trinity College. Bath .. . . Rev. W. Bliss. Birmingham . . Rev. T. Nunns. Exeter .. . . Rev. C. Bartholomew. Kirkby Lonsdale Rev. J. H. F. Kendall. Northampton . . Rev. T. V. Barlow. Armagh . . . . Rev. R. Allot. Limerick . . Rev. C. Monsell SUBSCRIBERS. Those marked « are Subscribers of £2. 2s., f of £10 10s., ** of £21. * His Grace the Lord Archbishop of York * His Grace the Lord Archbishop of Armagh .* Right Rev. the Lord Bishop of Winchester Hon. and Right Rev. the Lord Bishop of Oxford Right Rev- the Lord Bishop of Ripon. ** Right Rev. the Lord Bishop of St. David's Right Rev. the Lord Bishop of Lichfield Right Rev. the Lord Bishop of Nova Scotia * Right Rev. the Lord Bishop of Calcutta * Right Rev. the Lord Bishop of Madras ** Right Rev. the Lord Bishop of New Zealand Right Rev. the Lord Bishop of Guiana * Right Rev. the Lord Bishop of Tasmania Right Rev. the Lord Bishop of Edinburgh Right Rev. the Lord Bishop of New Jersey •Aberdeen Diocesan Library •Abraham, Rev. C. J. Eton College •Abrams, Mr. Oxford Acland, Arthur H. Dyke, Esq. "Wollaston House, Dorchester, Dorset * A' Court, Hon. Cecilia •Acres, John, Esq. Theological College, Wells Adair, Viscount, Dunraven Castle •Adams, Rev. C. Merton Coll. Oxford Adams, Rev. D. Bampton •Adams, Rev. H. G. Dunsford, Exeter •Adams, W. D. Esq. Sydenham, Kent •Adams, C. C. Esq. Anstey, near Coventry •Adamson, Rev. E. Newcastle-upon- Tyne •Addison, Rev. Berkley, Curate of St John's, Edinburgh * Addison, Rev. "W. G. H. S. Cann, Dursley, Gloucestershire •Adcock, Rev. H. H. Humberston, Leicester •Agnew, Rev. J. R. Wootten * Alcock, Rev. J. P. Rochester Cathedral •Alderson, Rev. R. Ipswich, Suffolk •Aldred, J. T. F. Esq. Lincoln College, Oxford •Alexander, Rev. G. Drumerce, Porta- down •Alexander, Rev. John, Northumber- land-street, Edinburgh Allen, Rev. H. Lincoln •Allen, Rev. J. C. Beakesbourne, Canterbury •Alley, Rev. F.A.Castledermot, Ireland •Allies, Rev. T. W. Launton, Bicester * Allott, Rev. R. Precentor of Armagh •Ambler, A. Esq. Bristol ♦Amphlett, Rev. M. Lichfield •Anderdon, John L. Esq. 22, Tavis- tock-square Anderson, Rev. J. S. M. Brighton •Andrews, Rev. W. N. Bulwer, near Sudbury •Anson, Rev. G. H. Leeds •Anson, Rev. T. A. Billingford Rectory, Elmham, Norfolk *Anstey, Rev. A. Rock House, Mil- verton, Somerset •Antrobus, Miss, 146, Piccadily •Appleton, Rev. R. Liverpool LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. •Archer, C. Esq. Exeter Coll. Oxford •Arden, Rev. G. Powderham •Armagh, The Very Rev. the Dean of •Armitage, Rev. R. •Armstrong, Rev. John, Dinder, Wells •Armstrong, J. H. Esq. Dublin •Arnold, Rev. T. K. Lyndon, Rutland • Ashby de la Zouch Theological Library •Ashworth, Rev. J. H. Eastwoodhay, Newbury, Berks •Ashworth, Rev. I. A. Brasenose Coll., Oxford Astley, Sir F. D. Everleigh, Wilts •Atlay, Rev. J. Warsop, Notts •Atkinson, Rev. G. Stow, Gainsborough •Atkinson, Rev. Miles, Gloucester •Audland, Rev. W.F. Queen's College, Oxford •Austin, E. Esq. Portobello •Ayling, Rev. W. Tillington, near Pet- worth •Babb, G. Esq. Theol. Coll. Wells •Bacon, Rev. R. W. King's Coll. Camb. Badham, Rev. C. •Bagge, P. Esq. •Bagot, G. T. Esq. Ex. Coll. Oxford •Bagot, Hon. and Rev. H. All Souls College, Oxford •BaiUie, Rev. Evan, Panton, Lincoln- shire Baker, Rev. F. W. Bath •Baker, Rev. T. T. Tovil, Maidstone, Kent •Baker, H. W. Esq., Trinity College, Cambridge •Ball, Rev. T. J. Methowold, Norfolk •Ballard, Edward, Rev. Cavendish- crescent, Bath •Barclay, Rev. J. Ch. Ch. Oxford Bardin, Rev. Dr. •Barker, Rev. Ralph, M. A. Colling- ham, Hull •Barker, Rev. H. Raymond, Dagling- worth, Gloucestershire ••Barker, Rev. F. R. Oriel Coll. Oxford • Barlow, Rev. T. M. Shrewsbury • Barlow, Rev. T. W. Little Bowden, Northampton •Barnes, Rev. J. W. Kendal, West- moreland •Barnwell, C. F. Esq. 44, Woburn Place, Russell- Square •Barnwell, Rev. E. L. Ruthin •Barrow, Rev. J. Gueen's Coll. Oxford •Barter, Rev. Dr. Winchester •Bartholomew, Rev. C. C. Lympstone, Devon Bartholomew, Rev. J. Morchard, Cre- diton •Basevi, N.Esq.FitzroyFarm.Highgate •Bather, Ven.Archdeacon,Meole Brace, Salop •Bates, Rev. W. M.A. Christ's Coll. •Bathurst, Rev. S. Merton College •Bathurst, A. Esq. New Coll. Batten, Rev. H. Baxter, Rev. Arthur, Croydon, Surrey Baxter, Rev. R. W. Kingsthorpe •Bayfield, Rev. B. M.A. Halifax •Bayldon, Rev. J. Thiving, Bridlington Bayley, Rev. W. H. Ricketts, Stapleton Bayley, W. R. Esq. Bath •Bayliff, Rev. T. L. Stratford, Essex •Bayne, Rev. T. V. Broughton, Man- chester •Bazely, Rev. T. T. Rectory, Poplar, London •Beadon, Miss, Heytesbury •Beadon, Rev. H. W. Latton, Cricklade •Beatty, Rev. J. Conroy, Raphoe •Beaufort, Rev. D. A. 11, Gloucester- Place, London •Beaumont, Rev. J. A. Hunslet, Leeds •Beaver, James J. Esq. 16, Devonshire Place, London •Beck, Rev. James, Calne, Wilts •Beckett, Rev. H. F. Erdington, Bir- mingham •Beckwith, H. W. Esq. University College, Oxford •Bedford, Rev. Henry, Dunton Bassett, Leicestershire •Bedford, Rev. F. J. Willesford, Aw- liscombe •Beggars, Mr. D. •Belgrave, Rev. T., North-Kilworth, Leicestershire Bell, Rev. John, Oulton, near Leeds •Bell, T. Esq. Exeter College, Oxford ♦Bellamy, Rev. Dr. •Bellas, Rev. S. Aldermarlow, Reading Bellasis, E. Esq. 17, Bedford Square SUBSCRIBERS. •Benn, Rev. W. H. Lutterworth •Bennet, Rev. A. M. South Cadbury, Somerset •Bennett, Rev. Edward Leigh, Long Sutton, Holbeach, Lincolnshire •Benning, Messrs. & Co., Booksellers, London •Beresford, Rev. Charles C. Rector of Sermon, Dioc. Armagh •Berners, Rev. R. Erwarton, Ipswich •Bertie, Hon. and Rev. H. All Souls College, Oxford •Besly, Rev. Dr. Long Benton, Nor- thumberland •Bethune, Rev. A. N., D.D., Coburgh, Upper Canada •Bevan, Beckford, Esq. 16, Devon- shire-place •Biber, Rev. Dr. Coombe Wood Kingston-upon-Thames •Bickmore, Rev. C. Berkswell Hall, Merriden, Warwickshire •Biggar, Douglas, Esq. 66, Aldersgate Street, London •Bigge, Rev. H. J. Staverton, East Haddon, Northampton •Biggs, Rev. Michael, King's Col- lege, London •BirchinaU, Thos. Esq. Macclesfield Bird, Rev. G. Great Wyborough, Kelverdon, Essex •Birks, Rev. B. H. Ramsgate •Birley, H. H. Esq. Manchester •Biron, Rev. Edwin, Vicar of Lympne Hythe, Kent Birtwhistle, Mr. Halifax, Yorkshire •Biscoe, Rev.F. TurkDean.Northleach •Bishop, W. H. Esq. C.C.C. Camb. •Bishop, Rev. W. C. Northampton •Bisset, Rev. C. Wigan •Bisset, Rev. Thomas, East India Col- lege, Addiscombe •Black, Rev. A. W. York •Blackburn & Whalley Clerical Society •Blackburn, Rev. Peter, Steeple Lang- ford, Heytesbury •Blacker, Rev. Dr. Mullabruck, Mar- ket Hill •Blake, C. J. Esq. Lamas, near Norwich Blakiston, Rev. Robert, Cold Waltham, near Petworth Blathwayte, Rev. C. Langridge *Blew,Rev.W.J.Milton,nextGravesen.d •Bliss, Rev. James, Marden •Bliss, Rev. W. Bath •Bloxam, M. H. Esq. Rugby Boissier, Rev. P. E. Malvern, Wells •Bolland, W. Esq. University College •Bond, F. H. Esq. Exeter Coll., Oxford Bonney, Ven. Archdeacon, KingsclifTe, Wansford, Northamptonshire • Boodle, Rev. R. G. Compton Dando, near Bath • Booker, Rev. John, Vicar of Kill urin, Ireland •Borton, Rev. W. Blofield, Norfolk Bosanquet, S. Esq. East Woodhay, Newbury, Hants •Boulton, Rev. W. the School, Wem, Salop •Bourke, Rev. S. G. No. 3. Cavendish Square •Bowden, John, Esq. Roehampton •Bowden.T.A.Esq.Magd.Hall, Oxford •Bowdler, Rev. T. •Bowles, Rev. H. A. Willingale •Bowyer, Rev. W. H. •Box, Rev. H. A. Wadham College Boyce, Rev. E. J. Southampton •Bradley, C. R. Esq. Diocesan Coll. Chichester •Bradshaw, James, Esq. Stockport •Bradshaw, Job, Esq. Secretary to the Englishman's Library, Nottingham •Braithwaite, Rev. W.St. Peter's, Jersey •Braithwaite, Rev. F. St. Marylebone, London "Bramston, Rev. John, Witham, Essex •Brandreth, Rev. W. H. Standish •Branker, Rev. Henry, Padgate, War- rington •Bray, Dr. Associates of, 5 copies •Brett, Mr. Newington Green Brewin, Rev. George, York *Brewster, Rev. W. Hawarden, near Chester •Bridgss, Rev. A. B. Beddington •Bright, Mr. William •Brightwell and Son, Messrs. Book- sellers, Barnstaple •Brine, J. G. Esq. St. John's College Oxford •Briscoe, Rev. T. Jesus Coll. Oxford • Broadley, Rev. A. Bridport, Dorset LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. •Brodie, W. Esq. *• Brodrick, J. R. Esq. M.A. Reading •Browell, Rev. W. Beaumont, Col- chester Brown, Rev. Felix, Pulborough, near Petworth •Brown, Rev. H. St. James's, Shore- ditch, London •Brown, Rev. John Cave, Pratt Street, Lambeth •Brown, Rev. J. J. Beaumaris,Anglesea •Brown, E. G. Esq. Ashovne •Brown, Rev. I. L. Ashwellthorpe, Wymondham, Norfolk •Browne, Rev. E. H. Browne, Rev. J. M. Vicar of Standish •Browne, Rev. John, Haxey Vicarage, Lincolnshire •Browne, Rev.R.W.King'sColl. London •Browne, Rev. S. Dewy Hill, Calne •Browne, E. G. Esq. St David's Coll., Lampeter •Bruce, Rev. H. L. Knight, Abbots- ham, Bideford, Devon •Bruce, Rev. W. St Nicholas, Cardiff Brymer, Ven. Archdeacon, Bath Bubb, Rev. Henry Bagendon, Cirencester •Buckerfield, Rev. T. H. Little Bedwyn, Wilts •Buckland, J. R. Esq. Ch. Ch. Oxford •Buckle, W. H. Esq. Customs, Bridge- water •Buckley, W. E. Esq. B.N.C. Oxford Buckley, Rev. J. Badminton, Glouces- tershire •Buller, Rev. A. Tavistock •Bulley, Rev. F. Magd. Coll. Oxford •Bullock, Rev. G. M. St John's Col- Oxford •Bullock, W. Esq. Kilburn, Middlesex •Bunbury, Rev. J. R. North Marston, Winslow, Bucks •Bunt, Rev. T. H. B. "Burder, Rev. G. •Burlton, Rev. F. J. Taunton •Burney, E. K. Esq. •Bumey, Rev. C. Sible-Hedingham Halsted, Essex •Burns, Mr. 1 7,Portman-street, London •Burton, Rev. R. C. York Terrace, Peckham ••Butler, Rev. D. Clergy Orphan School, St. John's "Wood •Butler, R. Esq. Brasenose College •Bntlor, Rev. James, Grammar School, Burnley, Lancashire •Butt, Rev. P. J. Hampstead •Buttefield, Rev. J. Bradford, Yorkshire •Butterworth, G. Esq. Balliol College, Oxford •Byrne, Mrs. Henry, Worcester •Byron, Rev. J. Killingholme, Barton- on-Humber Calcutta, Bishop's College •Calley, C. B. Esq. Worcester College, Oxford •Caiman, J. J. Esq. Worcester Col- lege, Oxford •Cameron, Rev. Charles Campbell, Rev. C. Weasenham, Rougham, Norfolk •Campbell, Rev. J. J. Ashford,Wicklow •Camden, Viscount, Gainsborough House •Canham, A. J. Esq. Summer-hill, Tenterden, Kent •Canterbury Clerical Book Society •Capain, W. B. Esq. Horbury, Wake- field •Capper, S. J. Esq. Leyton, Essex •Carden, Rev. L. English Bicknor, Gloucestershire •Carey, Rev. Hewitt •Carey, Tupper, Esq. •Carshove, Rev. Jos. James, Cawn- pore, Bengal Carter, Rev. J. Frenchay, Bristol •Carter, Rev. T. T. Clewer Rectory, Windsor •Carter, Rev. W. A. Eton College •Carter, W. E. D. Esq. New College, Oxford •Carthew, Rev. James, Trengelos, Launeeston •Cartwright, Rev. W. H. Dudley •Case, Rev. T. Horton •Case, G. Esq. Brasenose College •Caswall, Rev. E. Stratfordsub Castle, near Salisbury •Cather, Rev. John, Wrexham •Cattley, Rev. S. R. Fullham *Cattley,R.Esq. Worcester Coll. Oxford SUBSCRIBERS. Cavendish, Hon. and Rev. A. Stanmore, Middlesex •Cavendish, Hon. R. Belgrave-square •Cavendish, C. Esq. Trin. Coll. Camb. • Chaffers, Rev. T. BrasenoseC oil. Oxford Chamberlain, Rev. T. Ch. Ch. Oxford • Chambers, J. C. Esq. Emmanuel Coll. Cambridge •Chambers, J.D. Esq. Oriel Coll.Oxford •Chambers, 0. L. Esq. 9, Church Row, Leeds •Champernowne, H. Esq. Trinity Coll. Oxford •Champernowne, Rev. R. Ch. Ch., Oxf. •Champneys, Rev. H. S. Mucklestone, Staffordshire •Chanter, Rev. J. M. Ilfracombe •Chermside, R. Seymour, Esq. Exeter College, Oxford. •Chesshyre, Rev. I. T. St. Martin's, Canterbury • Chester, Rev. A. Chichely Hall •Chester, Harry, Esq. Highgate •Chichester, Very Rev.theDean of Christie, Rev. J. F. Badgworth, Chel- tenham •Christ's College Library, Cambridge •Chunder, Rev. Gopel Mittre, Bishop's College, Calcutta •Church, Rev. R. W. Oriel Coll. Oxford •Churton, Rev. E. Crayke, Durham •Clark, Rev. Fran. F. Hartshill Parson- age, Newcastle Clark, Rev. H. D. Exeter Coll. Oxford •Clark, Rev. JohD, Grove Villa, Hunslet, Leeds •Clark, Rev. F. F. •Clark, Dr. Professor of Anatomy, Cambridge •Clarke, L. S. Esq. New Coll., Oxford •Clarke, Rev.W. H. Yarmouth, Norfolk •Clarke, S.,Esq. St. John's Coll. Oxford •Clark, J. Esq. Lanesfield, Evesham •Clayton, Rev. J. H. Farnborough Rectory, Hants • Cleather, Rev. G. P. Chirton, Devizes Clements, J. Esq. Oriel Coll. Oxford Clerical Society, Newcastle-on-Tyne •Clerical Society of the Deanery of Droxford, Hants •Clerke, Venerable C. C. Archdeacon of Oxford *Cleugh, Rev. J. Malta •Coates, Rev. R. P. 13, Gibraltar Place, Chatham •Cobbe, Rev. H. Kilmore, Armagh •Cobham, Rev. I. B. Walton, Somerset •Cockin, Rev. M. Norton, Gloucester Cocks, Somers, Esq. Lanreath, West Looe, Cornwall •Codd, Rev. E. T. St. John's College, Cambridge fCole.Rev.M. S. Wootton-under-Edge •Cole, Rev. G. E. Dorchester, Dorset •Coleridge, Hon. Mr. Justice •Coleridge, Rev. E. Eton College •Coleridge, Rev. T. Rector of All- hallows, Exeter Coles, Rev. G. Croydon •Coley, Rev. J. •Collier, C.,I. Esq. Magd. Hall, Oxford •Collings, Mr. E. Bath Collings, Rev. William •Collingwood, Miss A. Dissington Hall •Collins, Rev. R. Maize Hill, Greenwich Collinson, Rev. R. Holme Cultram •Collis, Rev. J. D. WorcesterColl. Oxf. •Colls, Rev. I. F. •Collyns, Rev. C. H. Ch. Ch. Oxford * Coltman, Rev. G. Stickney, near Boston •Colville, Rev. F. L. •Compton, Rev. J. Minstead Rectory, Lyndhurst •Connop, Newell, Esq. Whitehall •Conway, W. F. Esq. Dublin Coope, Rev. H. G. Clunn, Shropshire •Cooper, Rev. E. P. Burford, Oxon. •Copeland, Rev. W. J. Trinity College, Oxford •Cornish, Rev. C.L.Exeter ColLOxford * Cornish, Rev. S. W. D;D. Ottery St. Mary, Devon * Cornthwaite, Rev. T. Hornsey •Cosens, Rev. R. Dorchester * Cotton, Rev. W. C. •Cotton, Alexander, Esq. Hildersham Hall, Cambridgeshire •Courtenay, Lord, Powderham Castle •Courtenay, Rev. F. Exeter * Cox, Miss F. Spondon Hall, near Derby •Cox, Rev. I. Edm. 6, Oliver Terrace, Mile End Road fCox, Rev. J. Walgrave, Northampton •Coxon, Rev. M. Heswell, Cheshire LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. Crawley, Rev. C. Stowe, near Weedon •Crawley, C. Esq. Littlemore, near Oxf. ♦Crawley, G. A. Esq. Highgate • Crawley, Rev. R, Steeple Ashton, Trowbridge •Creek, Rev. E. B. Paignton, Devon •Crewkerne Deanery Clerical Society •Cripps, Rev. J. M. Novington, near Lewes Crompton, Rev. B. Unsworth, near Bury, Lancashire *Croome,Rev.T. B.Rendcomb Rectory, Cirencester "Crossley, James, Esq. Manchester •Crossley, Mr. John S. Leicester •Crosthwaite, Rev. J. C. Rectory, St. Mary at Hill, London •Crosthwaite, Rev. C. Lackagh Monas- terevan, Ireland •Cuppage, R J. Esq., Middleton Hall, Manchester •Currie, Rev. James •Currie, Miss •Currie, Rev. H. G. Cust, Hon. and Rev. H. C. Cockayne, Hatley •Dakeyne, Rev. J. Osmond, Boxmoor, Herts Dale, Rev. Henry, Bristol •Dalton, Rev. C. B. Lincoln's Inn •Dalton, Rev. \V. Kelvedon, Essex •Dalton, Mr. W. H. Cockspur St. •Dand, Rev. T. Queen's ColL Oxford •Daniel, Rev. George Fred. Denning- ton, near Chichester •Dankes, Henry, Esq. Caius College, Cambridge •Darby, Rev. J. Curate of Acton, Ireland •Darling, Mr. Little Queen Street, London ••Darnell, Rev. W. N. Stanhope, Durham Darnell, Rev. "W. Bambrough, North- umberland •Dartmouth, the Earl of, Sandwell, near Birmingham •Davenport, Arthur, Esq., Christ's Coll. Cambridge •Davidson, L. Esq. Rutland Square, Edinburgh Davie, Rev. George J. Brasted, Kent Davies, Rev. J. Abbenhall, Gloucester Davies, Rev. Richard, Stanton •Dawson, J. Esq. Exeter Coll. Oxford •Dawson, Charles, Esq. Baymont Lodge, Torquay •Day, Mr. John, Bookseller, Melton •Dayman, Rev. Chas. Great Tew, Oxon •Deacon, Rev. G. E. Rawmarsh, Rotheram, Yorkshire •Dean, Rev. E. B. Lewknor, Tetsworth •Dean, Rev. T. Colwell, Hereford Deane, J.W.Esq. St John's Coll. Oxford •Dearden, Mr. W. Nottingham Deedes, Rev. Gordon, Netherbury, Dorsetshire •Deighton, Messrs. J. & J.J. Cambridge •Demerara Clerical Library •Denton,Rev.R. A. King's ColLCamb. •De Porre, W. Esq. Magdalene Hall •De Sausmarez, Rev. H. Pembroke College, Oxford •De Tessier, G. F. Esq. C. C. C. Oxford •De Vere, Sir Aubrey, Currah Chase ••Dickinson, F.H. Esq. Upper Harley- street, London •Diocesan Library, "Wells, Somerset • Disney, Rev. E. O. Armagh, Ireland •Distin, Rev. H. L. Bythorne, near Thrapstone, Northamptonshire •Distin, Rev. J. W. High Harrogate, Yorkshire •Dixon, Rev. James, Thome's Parson- age, near "Wakefield Dixon, Rev. J. J. Abrams, near Man- chester •Dobson, B. Esq. Bolton •Dobson.T.W.Esq.C.C.C. Cambridge •Dodsworth, Rev. W. Ch. Ch. St. Pan- eras, London •Dolben, Rev. C. Ipsley, Warwickshire •Donaldson, Rev. J. W. Bury St Edmund's •Donne, J. Dornford, Rev. J. Plymptree, Devon Douglas, Rev. H. College, Durham •Douglas, Rev. S. Ashling, Chichester •Dowding, Rev.W. Grimley, "Worcester •Dowding, T. W. Esq. The Close, Salisbury •Downe, Rev. G. E Rushden Rectory, Higham Ferrers, Northamptonshire •Drake, Rev.Richard.Stourmouth, Kent •Drummond, Col. E. Brighton SUBSCRIBERS. *Dry, Rev. T. Walthamstow, Essex •Dudman, Rev. L. S. Charlton • Duffield, Rev. R. Frating, Colchester *Dugard, Rev. G. Manchester •Duke, Dr. Hastings •Duncombe, Hon. and Rev. Aug. Kirby Misperton, Malton Dundas, W. Pitt, Esq. Edinburgh *Dungannon, Viscount, Brynkinalt, Chirk •Duulap, Rev. A. P. St. John's College, Oxford *Dunraven,theEarlof, Adare, Limerick • Dupuis, Rev. H. Eton College *Durnford, Rev. Francis, Eton College •Du Sautoy, Rev. W. S. O. Frome Selwood, Somerset •Dwarris, Rev. B. E. Durham •Dyke, Rev. W. Cradley, Malvern •Dymock, J. B. Esq. St Mary Hall •Dyne, Rev. J. B. Highgate •Dyson, Rev. C. Dogmersfield, Hart- ford Bridge Edinburgh, The Scottish Episcopal Church Library • Eamonson, Rev. B. Collingham •Easther, Alfred, Esq. Bedale, Yorksh. •Eaton, W. Esq. Merton Coll. Oxford Eaton and Son, "Worcester Ebsworth, Rev. Geo. Searle •Eddie, Rev. R. Barton on Humber, Lincolnshire •Eddrup, E. P. Esq. "Wadham College •Eden, Rev. R. Legh, Rochford •Edmondstone, Sir Archibald, Bart. •Edouart, Rev. A. G. St. Paul's Church, Blackburn •Edwards, Rev. A. Magd. Coll. Oxford •Edwards, Rev. J.The College, Durham Egerton, Rev. T. Dunnington, Yorkshire *E. H. T. •Eland, Rev. H. G. Bedminster, Bristol "Elder, Rev.E. Master of the Grammar School, Durham •Eldridge, Rev. J. A. Bridlington, Yorkshire •Elliot, J. E. Esq. Catherine Hall, Cambridge •Ellicott, C. J. Esq. St. John's, Camb. •Ellis, Conyngham, Esq. 4, Fitzwilliam Place, Dublin •Ellison, H. Esq. University College, Oxford •Elmhirst, Rev. Edward, Shawell, Lei- cestershire • Elrington, Rev. Dr. Dublin • Elrington, Rev. H. P. Precentor of Ferns, Ireland •Elwes, J. M. Esq. Bossington, Stock- bridge •Ensor, Rev. F. Nector, Norfolk Estcourt, Rev. E. E. Cirencester •Ethelston, Rev. C. W. Lyme Regis, Dorset •Evans, Rev.A.B.D.D.MarketBosworth Evans, Rev. E. C. Ingham •Evans, Herbert N. Esq. Hampstead •Evans, Rev. L. 'Wadham College, Oxford ; Hendon, London Evans, Rev. T. Gloucester •Evans, Rev. T. Simpson •Evans, Rev.E. Pembroke Coll. Oxford •Eveleigh, Rev. James •Evetts, T. Esq. C. C. C. Oxford Ewart, "W. Esq. Exeter College,Oxford •Ewing, Rev. "W. Alburgh, near Harleston, Norfolk •Eyre, Charles, Esq. Welford Park, Newbury • Eyton, J. Walter K. Esq. Leamington *Fagan, Rev. G. H. ♦Falkner, T. A. Esq. St. John's Col- lege, Oxford •Fallow, Rev. T. M. All Souls, London •Fanshawe, F. Esq. Exeter Coll. Oxford •Farebrother, Rev. T. Aston, Birming- ham •Farley, Rev. T. Ducklington •Farquharson, Rev. R. Langton Rec- tory, Blandford •Fearnley, Rev. I. King's Coll. London •Fearon, Rev. W. C. Grimston, Lynn, Norfolk •Feetham, Rev. T. O. Eggesford, Devon •Fellowes, Rev. T. L. Cantley Rec- tory, Acle, Norfolk •Fenwicke, Rev. G. O. Aston, Birming- ham •Fenwicke, Rev. M. G. Ballyshannon •Fernley, J. Esq. Manchester •Few, Mr. Robert,2, Henrietta Street, Covent Garden, London LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. •Field, Rev. S. P. High Beech, Lough- ton, Essex •Finch, Miss Charlotte •Fitzgerald, Rev. A. O. Fledborough, near Tuxford •Flemyng, Rev. W. Redcross, County of Wicklow •Fletcher, T. W. Esq. F.R.S. Dudley, Worcestershire •Fletcher, Rev. William, Collegiate School, Southwell •Fletcher, Rev. W. K. Bombay •Floyer, Ayscoghe, Esq. Wadham Coll. ••Forbes, G. H. Esq. Edinburgh •Forbes, I. S. Esq. Christ's College, Cambridge •Forbes, Right Hon. Lord •Forbes, Sir John Stuart •Ford, H. Esq. Manchestei Ford, Rev. J. Exeter * Ford, W. Esq. Milbrook House, Kentish Town •Formby, Rev. H. Brasenose College, Oxford •Forster,Rev. H.B.Stratton,Cirencester •Fortescue, Rev. H. R. Newton Ferrers, Yealmpton, Devon •Foster, Rev. J. S. Ilchester •Foster, Rev. John, Kempston Vicar- age, near Bedford •Foulkes, Rev. H. P. Buckby Moun- tain, Flintshire •Fowler, Rev. C. A. Walliscote House, near Reading •Fox, Rev. C. J. Henley-on-Thames Foxe, Rev. O. Worcester *France, Rev. G. 88, Cadogan-place •Francis, Rev. J. 50, Great Ormond- street, London Franklin, Rev. — * Fraser, Rev. R. Stedmarsh.Canterbury •Freeland, E. Esq. Chichester * Freeth, Frederic Harvey, Esq. 80, Coleshill Street, Eaton-sq., London •Frome Clerical Library •Frost, Rev. I. L. Bradford Frost, R. M. Esq. Pembroke College, Cambridge •Frost, Rev. Percival, St John's Coll., Cambridge •Froude, W. Esq. Collumpton, Devon Fulford, Rev. F. Trowbridge Fyler, Rev. S. Cornhill, Durham •Gace, Rev. F.A. Ashby, near Bragg •Galton, Rev. John L. Leamington •Garbett, Rev. J. Clayton, Brighton •Gardiner, Rev. W. Rochford •Garside, Rev. C. B.' Garvey, Rev. Richard, Wakefield •Gihbings, Rev. R. Dublin •Gibbons, Sir John, Balliol College, Oxford • Gibbs, G. Esq. Belmont, near Bristol •Gibbs, H. Esq. Bedford Sq. London • Gibbs, W. Esq. 13, Hyde-Park Street, London •Gibson, Rev. W. Rectory, Fawley •Gibson, J. Esq. Jesus College, Cam- bridge •Gibson, Rev. Edward, Alley, near Coventry •Gidley, J. Esq. Exeter •Giffard, Rev. W. Molesey, near King- ston Gilbertson, Rev. Lewis, Llangorwen, near Aberystwith •Gildea, Rev. George Robert, New- port, county of Mayo ••Gillett, Rev. G.E. Waltham, Melton Mowbray •Gillett, E. Markshall, near'Norwich Gladstone, Rev. John, Liverpool •Gladstone, W. E. Esq. M. P. •Glaister, Rev. W. Beckley Rectory, Sussex •Glanville, Rev. E. F. Wheatfield •Glencross, Rev. James, Balliol Coll. Oxford •Glenie, Rev. J. M. Salisbury •Godley, John R. Esq. •Gooch, Rev. I. H. Head Master of Heath School, Halifax •Gooch, Rev. John, Stanningley, Leeds •Goodcliild, Rev. C. W., A.M., Free- Grammar School, Sutton Valence, Kent •Goodford, C. O. Esq. Eton •Goodlake, Rev. T. W. Manor House, Swindon Goodwin, H. Esq. B.A. Caius College, Cambridge •Gordon.Rev.H.Colwich, near Rugeley •Gordon, Rev. O. Ch. Ch. Oxford *Goie, Rev. H. J. Horsham SUBSCRIBERS. *Gough, Rev. H. Carlisle *Gough, Rev. B. Londonderry GouVburn, H. Esq. Gould, Rev. Edward, Sproughton, Ipswich *Gower, Rev. S. Wandsworth, Surrey •Gray, Rev. R. Old Park, Durham *Gray, Rev. R. H. Ch. Ch. Oxford •Graham, Mr. W. Oxford •Graham, W. T. Esq. 17, Upper Buck- ingham Street, Duhlin Grant, R. and Son, Edinburgh •Grantham Clerical Society •Green, J. Esq. Woburn Green, Mr. T. W. Leeds •Greene, Miss, Whittington Hall, Burton, Westmoreland •Greene, Rev. H.B. Vicar of Longparish, Winchester •Greene, Miss C. M. Norwich •Greene, R. Esq. Lichfield •Greenly, Rev.I.P. Burlestone Rectory, Blandford •Greenwell, W. Esq. University Coll., Durham •Gregory, R. Esq. C. C. C. Oxford Gresley, Richard, Esq. Gresley, Rev. William, Lichfield •Gresley, Rev. J. M. Over Seile, Leicestershire ••Greswell, Rev. R. Worcester Coll. ••Greswell, Rev. W. Kilve Rectory, Somersetshire •Grey, Hon. and Rev. Francis, Buxton •Grey, Rev. W. Allington, Salisbury •Grieve, Rev. John, Barnham Rec- tory, Thetford, Norfolk •Griffiths, Rev. John, Wadham Coll. Oxford •Griffith, Rev. C. A. Commoners, Win- chester • Grueher, Rev. C.S.Clapham Common •Guildford Theological Library Guillemard, Rev. H. P. Trinity Coll. Oxford Gunner, Rev. W. H. Winchester •Gutch, Rev. Rt. Segrave, Leicester •Guthrie, Rev. J. Calne, Wilts •Hackman, Rev. A. Ch. Ch. Oxford •Haddan,Rev. A. W. Trin. Col. Oxford •Haig, Rev. Robt. Armagh Haigh, Rev. Daniel, Great Marlow Haines, Mrs. Hampstead Hale, Rev. Matt. B. Stroud *Hall, Rev. W. Manchester •Hallen, Rev. George, Rushock, Me- doute, Upper Canada •Hallen, Rev. William, Wribbenhall, Worcestershire •Halton, Rev. T. 20, Great George Square, Liverpool Hamilton, Rev. J. Great Baddow, Essex •Hanham, Rev. Phelips, Wimborne, Dorset •Harcourt, Rev. L. V. Midhurst Harcourt, Rev. R. Cirencester ••Harding, Rev. G. S. Brasenose Col- lege, Oxford •Harding, J. Esq. St. Mary Hall ••Hare, Venerable Archdeacon Harington, Rev. Rd. D.D. Principal of Brasenose College, Oxford •Harison, W. H. Esq. New York •Harper, T. N. Esq. Queen's College, Oxford •Harper, Rev. A. Inverary, Aberdeen- shire •Harper, Rev. G. Manor House, Ton- bridge Wells •Harpur, Rev. E. Salford, Manchester • Harris, Hon. and Rev. C. Wilton, Salisbury •Harris, G. T. Esq. Harrow-on-the- Hill •Harris, J. Esq. Harrison, Rev. B. Domestic Chaplain to the Lord Archbishop of Canterbury •Harrison, Rev. H. Gondhurst Harrison, Rev. T. Trinity Church, Maidstone • Harrison, Rev. W. Christ's Hospital, London •Harrow School Library, the •Hartley, L. L. Esq. Middleton Lodge, Richmond, Yorkshire •Hartnell, E. G. Esq. Trinity College, Cambridge •Hartshorne, Rev. Joseph •Harvey, Rev. H. Preb. of Bristol, Bradford, Wilts •Harward, J. Esq. Stourbridge •Haslehurst, Rev. R. Haywood, Ruge- ley •Hassells, Rev. C. S. Fox Earth, near Newcastle LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. •Hatchard and Son, Piccadilly, London Hawkins, Rev. E. Secretary to the So< ciety for the Propagation of the Gospel •Hawkins, Herbert S. Esq. Jesus Coll. Oxford •Hawkins, E. Esq. British Museum * Hawkins, Rev. E. Newport, Monmouth- shire Hawkins, Rev. W. B. L. 23, Great Marlbofough-street, London •Hawtrey, Rev. Dr. Eton College Hayes, Rev. L. Warren, Arborfield Rectory, Berks •Heale, S. W. Esq. Queen's College • Heath, W. M. Esq. Exeter Coll. Oxford •Hecker, Rev. H. T. Seven Oaks, Kent *Hedley, Rev. T. A. Gloucester •Hemary, Rev. Jas. Trinity College, Cambridge • Henderson, W. G. Esq. Magd. Coll. Oxford •Henderson, Peter, Esq. Macclesfield •Henderson, Rev. T. Messing, Kel- vedon •Henn, Rev. W. Londonderry •Herbert, Hon. Algernon, Ickleton, Saffron Walden •Heslop, Anchem, Esq. Trinity CoDege, Cambridge •Hessey, Rev. F. St, John's College, Oxford •Hessey, Rev. J. A. St. John's College, Oxford Hewetson, Rev. J. S. Curate of Killeary, Ireland •Hewett, J. W. Esq. Exeter •Hewitt, Rev. T. S. Norton in Hales, near Market Drayton •Heygate, Miss, Southend, Essex * Hichens, R. Esq. Threadneedle-street, London •Hildyard, Rev. J. Christ's College, Cambridge •Hill, Rev. E. Ch. Ch. Oxford Hill, Lincolnshire "Hillyard, Rev. Temple, Wormleighton, Southam •Hilton, A. D. Esq. Wadham College, Oxford Hinde, Rev. T. Liverpool *Hine, Rev. H. T. C. Bury St. Edmunds • Hingiston, James Ansley, Esq. 48, Finsbury Circus, London ••Hippesley, H. Esq. Lambourne Place, Berks •Hippisley, Rev. R. W. Stow-on-the- Wold •Hobhouse, Rev. Edm. Merton Coll. Oxford ••Hodges, late Rev. T.S. (Executors of) •Hodgkinson, Rev. G. C. Droitwich, near Worcester •Hodgson, Rev. I. F. Horsham • Hodgson, Rev. G. St. Peter's, Isle of Thanet Hodgson, Rev. H. St. Martin's, London •Hodson, Rev. J. Saunderstead, Croy- don, Surrey •Hogan, Rev. J. Dublin Holden, Rev. W. R. Worcester •Holden, Mr. A. Bookseller, Exeter •Holland, Rev. Henry •Hollinshead, H. B. Esq. , Hollinshead •Holme, Hon. Mrs. A. C. ••Hook, Rev. W. F. D.D. Vicar of Leeds. Presented by a few of his younger parishioners ••Hope, A. J. B. Esq. M.P. 1, Con- naught Place, London •Hope, W. Esq. Catherine Hall, Cam- bridge •Hopkins, Rev. J. O. Umngton, Salop •Hopkinson, C. Esq. M.A. 39, Eaton Place, Belgrave Square, London •Hopper, A. M. Esq. B.A. Fellow of St. John's College, Cambridge •Hopton, Mrs. Kemerton Court, Tewkesbury •Hopwood, Rev. F. G. Knowsley, Prescot, Lancashire •Hornby, Rev. Edward, Walmersley, Bury, Lancashire •Hornby, Rev. R. W. York Hornby, Rev. T. Liverpool • Horner, Rev. Josh. Everton, Biggles- wade, Bedfordshire •Horsfall, Rev. A. Litchurch •Horsfall, John, Esq. Standard Hill, Nottingham •Hocking, R. Esq. Penzance •Hotham, W. F. Esq. Ch. Ch. Oxford •Houblon, Rev. T. A. Peasemore, Newbury, Berks SUBSCRIBERS. Houghton, Rev. John, Matching, near Harlow, Essex "•Houghton, Rev. W. Hartford, near Northwich, Cheshire •Howard, Hon. and Rev. H. E. J. D.D. Dean of Lichfield Howard, Col. Ashstead Park, Epsom •Howard, Hon. and Rev. W. Fareham •Howard, Rev. N. A. Plymouth Howard, Hon. F. G. •Howard, Rev. R. D.D. Beaumaris, Anglesea •Howard, Hon. and Rev. H. •Howell, Rev.Hinds, Shobrooke, Devon *Howorth, Rev. W., March, Isle of Ely, Camhridgeshire •Hue, Dr., 9, Bedford Square, London Huff, Rev. E. Butterwick, near Boston •Hughes, Rev. H. •Hughes, Rev. J. B. Hadley, near Barnet •Hunt, Rev. R. S. Stinchcomhe Dursley •Hunter, Rev. A. Alvechurch •Hunter, Rev. W. Lurgurshall, near Godalming Huntingford, Rev. G. W. Winchester Hussey, Rev. W. L. Ch. Ch. Oxford Hutchinson, Rev. C. Chichester •Hutchinson, Rev. T. Lymm, Cheshire •Hutchinson, R. Esq. Mersey Court, Liverpool •Hutchinson, W. Esq. •Hutton, Rev. G. B. Gainsborough Huxtable, Rev. A. Sutton Waldron, Dorset * Hyde and Crewe, Newcastle, Stafford- shire ••Inge, Rev. I. R. St. Mary's, Portsmouth Inner Temple, the Hon. Society of the, London Irons, Rev. W. J. Brompton •Irving, Rev. J. Kendall Jackson, Rev. T. St Peter's, Stepney •Jackson, Rev. W. Dealtry, Ch. Ch. Hoxton •Jackson, J. J. Esq. Exeter College •Jackson, G. Esq. •Jackson, Rev. J. Islington Jackson, Rev. J. Farley, near Bath James, Rev. J. D.D. Prebendary of Peterborough •James, Sir Walter, Bart., M. P. 11, Whitehall Place, London James, Rev. H. 20, James-street, Buck- ingham Gate, London •James, Rev. T. Sibbestoft, near Wel- ford, Northamptonshire •James, Rev. J. •Janvrin, J. H. Esq. Oriel Coll. Oxford * Jeffray, Rev. L. W. Ashton Parsonage, Preston •Jelf, Rev. Dr. Canon of Ch. Ch. Oxford Jelf, Rev. W. E. Ch. Ch. Oxford •Jellott, H. Esq. Trinity Coll. Dublin •Jenkins, Rev. J. Rothwell, Leeds •Jenner, Rev. C. H. Bristol •Jennings, Rev. M. J. Chaplain to the Hon. East India Company * Jerrard, Rev. F. W. H. Long Stratton, Norfolk •Jersey,TheVeryRev.theDean of Jew, Mr. Thomas, Gloucester •Johnson, C. W. Esq. Balliol College, Oxford Johnson, M. J. Esq. Radcliffe Obser- vatory, Oxford •Johnson, W. Esq. King's College, Cambridge •Johnson, Rev. W. C. Diptford, Devon •Johnson, Rev. W. H. Witham on the Hill, Lincolnshire •Johnstone, Rev. W. S. Minnigafi House, Newton Stewart, Scotland •Jones, E. K. Esq. 28, Mark-lane •Jones, Rev. D. E. Stamford •Jones, Rev. J. S. Armagh, Ireland Jones, Rev. R. Branxton, Coldstream •Jones, W. H. Esq. Queen's College, Oxford •Jones, B. Esq. Lowestoft Karslake, Rev. T. W. Culmstock, near Wellington *Keble, Rev. J. Hursley, Winchester •Kelk, Rev. W. 23, City Road, London •Kelly, A. Esq. Kelly House, Laun- ceston Kemp, Mr. John, Beverley Kempe, Rev. J. C. Morchard Bishop's, Devon •Ken Society, Leeds LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. •Kendall, Rev.J. H.F. Kirkby Lonsdale •Kennard, John P. Esq. 4, Lombard- Street, London *Kenrick,Rev. Jarvis, Horsham, Sussex •Kent, jun. Rev. G. D. Sudbrook, near Lincoln •Kenyon, Lord, 9, Portman Square, London •Keppell, Hon. and Rev. T. Wells, Norfolk **Kerby, Rev. C. L. Stoke Talmage, near Tetsworth •Kerr, Rev. Lord H. Dittisham •Kerr, James, Esq. Coventry •Kershaw, Rev. G. W. St. Nicholas, Worcester •Key, H. C. Esq. Peluston Rectory, near Ross •Keymes, Rev. N. Christ's Hospital, Hertford "Kildare, Ven. Archdeacon of Kilvert, Rev. F. Bath King, Mr. H. S. Brighton •King, T. H. Esq. Exeter Coll. Oxford King, Rev. W. Smyth, Ireland •King's College, London Kingdom, Rev. G. T. Trinity Col- lege, Cambridge •Kingdom G. R. Esq. Trinity College, Cambridge •Kingsford, B. Esq. Exeter Coll. Oxford •Kingsmill, Rev. H. Chewton Mendip, Somerset •Kingsmill, William, Esq. Sidmonton House, Hants ••Kirby, R. H. Esq. St. John's Coll. Cambridge ,Kirrier, Clerical Society, Cornwall •Kirwan, Rev. J. H. Bath •Kirwan, Rev. E. Newport- street, Tiverton •Kitson, J. F. Esq. Exeter College, Oxford Kitson, J. Esq. Jesus Coll. Cambridge •Knight, J. W. Esq. Free School, Co- ventry Knight, Henry, Esq. Exeter College, Oxford Knight, Rev. T. Ford Rectory •Knott, J. W. Esq. Magdalene Hall •Knowles, J. L. Esq. Pembroke Coll. Oxford •Knowles, Edward H. Esq. St. Bees Grammar School, Whitehaven Knox, Rev. H. B. Monk's Cleigh, Hadleigh, Suffolk •Knox, Rev. Spencer, Vicar- General of the Diocese of Kerry •Knox, T. F. Esq. Trin. Coll. Camb. Knox, Rev. R. Lee House, Limerick •Kyle, Rev. John T. Cork Kynnersley, Rev. E. C. Sneyd, Dray- cott Rectory, Stone, Staffordshire Lakm, Rev. J. M. Freazeley, nea r Fazeley •Landon, Rev. W. H. Lane, Rev. E. Gloucester •Langbridge, Mr. Birmingham Langdon, A. Esq. Coldharbour House, Tonbridge •Langley, Rev.T. Landogo, Monmouth •Langmore, Dr. ••Laprimaudaye, Rev. C. J. Leyton, Essex Latouche, Rev. J. Rathfornham, co. Dublin •Laurie, Mrs. John, 10, Charles-street, St James's •Lawrell, Rev. J. Hampreston Rectory *Lawrence, F. J. R. Esq. Exeter Coll. Oxford •Lawson, Rev. R •Lawson, Rev. W. D. Magd. College, Cambridge •Lawson, Rev. G. West Grimstead, Salisbury •Lee, Rev. William, Fellow of Trinity College, Dublin Lechmere, Rev. A. Whitmore, Wool- hope, Hereford •Lefroy, Rev. A. C. * Legge, Rev. W. Ashstead, Epsom •Legge, Hon. and Rev. Henry, Black- heath, Kent •Leigh, W. Esq. Little Ashton, Lich- field * Leighton, Rev. F. K. All Souls Coll. Oxford •Leman, Rev. T. Brampton Rectory, Beccles *Le Mesurer, J. Esq. Ch. Ch. Oxford •Leonard, Rev. R.W. Aynho, Banbury •Leslie, Rev. C. Elphin, Ireland Leslie, Mr. Great Queen Street, London SUBSCRIBERS. •Lethbridge, Ambrose, Esq. All Souls, Oxford •Lewis, Rev. D. Jesus College, Oxford •Lewthwaite, Rev. W. H. Clifford, near Tadcaster ••Ley, Rev. Jacob, Ch. Ch. Oxford * Ley, Rev. John, Exeter Coll. Oxford •Lichfield Cathedral, the Dean and Chapter of *Liddon, H. Esq. Taunton •Lindsay, Hon. C. Trinity Coll. Cainb. •Lingard.E.A. Esq. Runcorn, Cheshire •Linsdedt, F. W. Esq. Calcutta Linzee, Rev. Edw. Hood •Linzee, R. G. Esq. Ch. Ch. Oxford Linzell, Rev. B. H. •Litler, Rev. Robert, Poynton Par- sonage, near Macclesfield •Lloyd, Rev. C. W. Gosfield, Essex * Lloyd, Rev.F. L. L. "Wilnecote, Farelay Lloyd, Rev. F. T. Curate of Kilmore, Dioc. Armagh •Lloyd, Rev. C. •Lloyd, Rev. H. W. Pentre Voelas, Denbighshire •Lockyer, E. L. Esq. Emmanuel Coll. Cambridge Lodge, Rev. Barton •Lohr, C. W. Esq. Gwaenynog, Denbigh •London Library, Pall Mall •Long, W. Esq. Bath •Lott, H. J. Esq. Hornton, Devon •Lott, H. B. Esq. Tracy House, Awlis- combe •Low, I. L. Esq. •Lowder, C. F. Esq. Exeter College, Oxford •Lowe, Rev. J. M. Grindleton, Yorkshire *Lowe, Rev. R. F. Madeira •Lowe, Rev. R. H. Abascragh, co. Galway •Lowndes, Rev. C. Hartwell Rectory, near Aylesbury •Lukis, Rev. W. C. Bradford, Wilts Lund, Rev. T. B.D. St. John's College, Cambridge fLurgan, Lord •Lush, Rev. Vieesimus •Lusk, John, Esq. Glasgow Lutwyche, A. I. P. Esq. Middle Temple •Luxmoore, Rev. J. H. M. Marchwiel, Wrexham "Lyttleton, The Right Hon. Lord •Lyttleton, Hon. and Rev. W. H. Kettering, Northamptonshire •Maberly, Rev.T. A. Cuckfield, Sussex •M'c All, Rev. Edward, Brixton, Isle of Wight •M'c Ewen, Rev. A. Semington, near Melksham, Wilts •M'Clintock, Rev. G. F.Calcutta •Macfarfane, W. C. Esq. Birmingham •Machlachlan, Rev. A. N. Campbell, Thorverton, near Cullompton, Devon •Mackenzie, A. C. Esq. St. John's College, Oxford Mackenzie, Lewis M. Esq. Exeter Coll, •Mackinnon, Rev, John, Bloxholm, near Sleaford, Lincoln •Mackonochie, A. H. Esq. Edinburgh *Maclachlan,Rev.A.Thorverton,Devon •Maclean, Rev. H. Coventry •Maclean, Rev. W. Prebendary of Tynan, Armagh Macmullen, Rev. R. G. Corpus Christi Coll. Oxford •Madox, Wm. Esq. 61, York Ten-ace, Regent's Park •Major, Rev, I. R. D.D. King's Coll. London •Malcolm, H. Esq. Eckington, Chesterfield Malcolm, Rev. Gilbert, Toddenham •Malcolm, W. E. Esq. Burnfoot Lang- holm, Dumfriesshire •Malins, Mr. G. W. R. Kelsford •Mangin, Rev. Edw. N. South Cerney, Gloucestershire •Mann, Rev. W. M. Thornthwaite Keswick, Cumberland •Manning, F. J. Esq. Lincoln College, Oxford •Manson, Rev. A. T. G. *Mapleton, R. J. Esq. St. John's Coll. Oxford Mapperton, Rev. C. Fox •Markland, J. H. Esq. Bath •Marriott, Rev. C. Oriel Coll., Oxford •Marriott, Rev. J. Bradfield, Reading •Marshall, Rev. S. Eton •Marshall, Rev. E. Deene Rectory, Wansford LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. •Martin, Rev. F Trin. Coll. Camb. •Martin, Rev. John, Orford, near Woodbridge Martin, Rev. G. Exeter •Martin, Wm. Esq. Fellow of Corpus Christi College, Cambridge •Martineau, Rev. A. Whitkirk Vicar- age, Leeds •Martyn, Rev. T. W. Exeter •Mason, Rev. J. Great Malvern •Mason, Rev. A. W. Booking, Essex •Mason, Rev. E. Cold Ashton, Marsh- field, Chippenham •Mason, Rev. H. B. Head Master of Brewood School, Staffordshire Mason, Mr. W. H. Chichester •Mathison, W. C. Esq. M.A. Trinity College, Cambridge •Matthews, Rev. R M. Great Bowdler, Market Harborough *Maule, Rev. G. Great Munden, near Pickeridge, Herts •Maynard, Rev. John •Maynard, Rev. R Wormleighton, Southam •Mayo, A. F. Esq. Oriel Coll. Oxford •Mayor, C. Esq. St John's College, Cambridge •Mease, Rev. J. Fresford •Meason, Rev. Henry, Exeter •Melton Mowbray Clerical Society Mence, Rev. J. W. Hkley, Otley, York- shire •Menet, J. Esq. Exeter Coll. Oxford •Merriman, H. G. Esq., New Coll. Oxford •Merry, Rev. R. M.A., Jesus College, Cambridge •Mesham, Rev. A. B. Wotton, near Canterbury •Metcalf, Rev. W. L. •Metcalfe, Rev. Wallace, Reddenhall, Harlestone, Norfolk •Middleton, Rev. J. E. •Middleton, Henry O. Esq. Exeter College, Oxford •Mill, Rev. Dr. Christian Advocate, Cambridge Miller, Rev. I. R. Walkeringham, Bawtry, Yorkshire •Mills, R. T. Esq. Magdalene College, Oxford •Mills, H. Esq. Trinity Coll., Cam- bridge •Minster, Rev. T. Farmley Tyas •Moberly, C. E. Esq. Balliol College, Oxford •Moberly, Rev. Dr. Winchester •Money Kyrle, Rev. E. A. Hastings •Monro, Rev. E. Oriel Coll. Oxford •Monsell, Rev. C. H. Limerick, Ireland •Monsell, Rev. J. S. Limerick, Ireland •Monsell, W. Esq. Limerick, Ireland •Montagu, J. E. Esq. Exeter College Moodie, C. Esq. Magdalene Hall •Moore, Rev. Edward, Rector of Killan, Ireland •Moore, Rev. J. W. Hordley, Ellesmere •Moorsom, Rev. R. Seaham Vicarage, Durham •Morrell, F.J. Esq. St Giles's, Oxford •Morrice, Rev. W. D. Clovelly, near Bideford, Devon •Morris, Rev. J. B. Exeter College, Oxford •Morris, Rev. T. E. Ch. Ch. Oxford •Morrison, Rev. A. Eton College Morton, Mr. Boston •Morton, Rev. M. C. Exeter College, Oxford •Mould, Rev. R. A.St George's-square, Worcester Moultrie, Rev. J. Rugby Mount, Rev. C. M. Prebendary of Wells *Mountam,Rev.G.R. Rector of Havant Mountain, Rev. H. B. Prebendary of Lincoln •Mountain, J. G. Esq. Eton Coll. Eton *Mozley, Rev. J. B. Magdalene College, Oxford •Mules, Rev. P. Exeter Coll. Oxford •Munn, Rev. G. Worcester •Murray, Rev. A. Clapham, Surrey •Murray, Rev. W. St Martin's, Col- chester •Murray, F. Esq. Ch. Ch. Oxford • Muskett, Mr. C. Norwich Neale, Rev. J. M. •Neeld, J. Esq. M.P. Grittleton House Chippenham •Nelson, Earl, Bricknorth House, near Salisbury SUBSCRIBERS. •Nelson, Rev. H. Romford * Neve, Rev. F. R. Poole Keynes, Cirencester •Nevill, H. R. Esq. University College *Nevins, Rev. W. Martin, near Horn- castle New, Rev. F. T. Ch. Ch. St. Pancras, London *New York Theological Seminary Newland, Rev. Dr. Ferns •Newland, Rev. Thomas, Dublin Newman, Rev. J. H. Oriel College, Oxford •Newton, Mr. C. Croydon •New- York-Society Library Nicholl, Rev. J. R. Greenhill Grove, near Barnet, Hertfordshire Nicholls, Rev. W. L. Bristol Nicholson, Rev. W. "Wickham House, Welford, Berks •Nicholson, Rev. W. Wickham House, Welford, Berks •Nicholson, Rev. W. Rector of St. Maurice, Winchester *Nicoll, Rev. Charles, Stratford, Essex •Nooman, Rev. H. Dunfanaghy, County of Donegal *Noott, Rev. E. H. L. Tipton, Bir- mingham •North, Rev. Jacob •Northcote, G. B. Esq. Ilfracombe, Devon •Northcote, Rev. J. S. Ilftaeombe •Norwich Clerical Society •Nunns, Rev. T. Birmingham •Nutt, Rev. Charles Theston, Bath •O'Brien, Mr. E. Dublin •O'Brien, Rev. H. Killegar, Ireland *0'Brien, Mrs. 108, George Street, Limerick •Ogle and Son, Booksellers, Glasgow •Oldershaw, R. Esq. Islington •Oldham, George A. Esq. Brunswick Place, Brighton Oldham, Rev. T. R. Huddersfield •Oldknow, Rev. Joseph, Bordesley, Birmingham •Oliver, Rev. J. Rothwell, North- amptonshire •Oliverson, R. Esq. 14 Portland Place, London •Orr, T. Esq. Oriel College, Oxford * Osborn, Rev. G. Manchester •Ostell, Messrs. T. & Co. booksellers, London •Ouvry, Rev. P. T. Oxford Terrace, London •Owen, Rev. R. Llanrhaiade, near Den- bigh •Oxenham, Rev. Nutcombe, Modbury, Totness •Pagan, Rev. S. Leverbridge, Bolton- le-Moors Page, Rev. C. Westminster Abbey • Page, Rev. L. F. Woolpit, Bury St. Edmund's Page, R. jun. Esq. •Page, Rev. Vernon, Ch. Ch. Oxford •Paget, Rev. F. E. Elford, Lichfield •Paine, Cornelius, Esq. 11, Cannon- bury-lane, Islington •Palmer, Roundell, Esq. •Palmer.Rev. W.Magdalen Coll.Oxford •Palmer.Rev. W.Worcester Coll.Oxford •Pantin, J. Esq. Pembroke Coll. Oxford •Pardoe, Rev. J. Leyton, Stone, Essex •Parke, C. W. Esq. M.P. Great Glen, Leicestershire •Parker, C. Esq. Upper Bedford Place, London •Parker, Rev. E. Bahia, South America •Parker, Rev. R. Welton, Spilsby, Lincolnshire Parkinson, Mrs. Holywell •Parkinson, Rev. J. P. Magdalene Coll. Oxford •Parr, Rev. W. H. Halifax •Farrington, Rev. Matthew, Feltwell, Norfolk Parsons, Rev. C. A. St. Mary's, Southampton •Pascoe, Rev. T. St. Hilary, Marazion, Cornwall fPATTESoN, Hon. Mr. Justice •Paul, G. W. Esq. Magdalene Coll. Oxford •Payne, R. jun. Esq. Magdalene Hall •Paynsent, F. A. Esq., Antigua, West Indies. •Pearson.F.T.Esq.Queen'sColl.Oxfoid •Pedder, Rev. W. St. Cuthbert, Wells LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. •Pedder, E. Esq. Brasenose College *Peed, Rev. J. Harold's Cross, Dublin •Pelly, Rev. T. C. C. C. Oxford •Pennefather, Rev. William, Grange, Armagh tPenney, Rev. E. St. Andrew's, Canter- bury •Penny, C. B. Esq. Theol. Coll., "Wells •.Perceval, Hon. and Rev. A. P. East Horsley, Surrey •Perceval, Captain E. A. Bindon House, Milverton, Somerset •Percival, Ernest A. Esq. Bindon House, Milverton, Somerset •Perram, Rev. J. G. Harrogate •Perry, Rev. A. Bettesworth, Pre- centor's Vicar of St. Caniees Cathe- dral, Kilkenny •Perry, T. W. Esq. 20, Steward-street, Spitalfields •Perry, G. Esq. Churchill, near Bristol •Phelps, Rev. R. Sidney Sussex Coll. Cambridge •Phelps, Rev. T. P. Ridley, Seven Oaks, Kent •Phelps, Rev. H. D. Tarrington, near Ledbury, Hereford •Philips, G. H. Esq. Belle Vue, Liverpool •Phillips, Rev. E. 5, Nelson Terrace, Clapham •Philpott, Rev. Other, Clungunford, near Ludlow •Philpott, Rev. T. Maddresfield, Wor- cester •Pickering, Rev. H. Great Henney, Sudbury •Pickwood, Rev. John •Piercy, Rev. J. W. Wimeswold •Pigott, Rev. A. J. Newport, Salop •Pigott, Rev, George, Bombay •Pigott, Rev. H. Brasenose College •Pillans, Rev. W. H. Himley Rectory, Dudley •Pinder, Rev. J. H. Precentor of Wells •Piatt, J. P. Esq. 39, Tavistock-square, London •Plumptre, E. H. Esq. University Coll. ••Pocock, Rev. N. Queen's College, Oxford Pocock, Mr. W. Bath •Pogson, Rev. E. J. St. John's College, Oxford •Ponsonby, Hon. Walter •Pope, T. A. Esq. Jesus ColL, Cam- bridge •Pope, W. Esq. Christ's College, Cam- bridge •Popham, W. Esq. Tramore, Water- ford, Ireland •Portman, Rev. F. Staple Fitzpaine •Pountney, Rev. H. St. John's, Wolver- hampton ••Powell, A. Esq. Carey Street, London ••Powell, Rev. E. A. Ampthill Powell, Rev. H. T. Stretton •Powell, Rev. J. C. Powell, Rev. Richard, Bury, near Arundel, Sussex Powell, Rev. T. Turnarton, near Peter Church •Powell, Rev. J. W. S. Kingston-on- Thames •Powell, Rev. R. Worcester Coll. Oxford •Powell, Rev. Richmond, Bury, near Arundel, Sussex •Power, Rev. J. P. Queen's College, Cambridge •Power, Rev. J., Fellow of Pembroke College, Cambridge •Powles, R. C. Esq. Exeter College •Pownall, Rev. C. C. B. Milton Ernest, Bedfordshire •Pownall, Rev. W. L. St. John's Coll. Cambridge •Powys, Hon. and Rev. Horace, War- rington Poynder, Rev. F. •Prater, Rev. T. Hardwicke, near Bicester •Prescott, Rev. I. P. St.Mary's Chapel, Portsmouth •Preston, Rev. Plunket, Prebendary of Edermine, Ferns, Ireland •Prevost, Rev. Sir George, Bart. Stinch- combe, Dursley •Price, Rev. B. Pembroke College •Prichard, Rev. R. Kidderminster •Pridden, Rev. W. Broxted, Dunmow •Prosser, Rev. S. Blackheath Park •Prothero, G. Esq. Brasenose College •Pryor, Rev. R. Spelsbury SUBSCRIBERS. •Pulling, Rev. W. Hereford ••Pusey, Rev. Dr. Canon of Ch. Ch. Oxford *Pusey, Rev. W. B. Maidstone Pym, Rev. F. •Radford, Rev. J. A. Down St. Mary, near Crediton •Raikes, R. Esq. Welton, near Hull •Ramsbotham, Rev. T. Wakefield Randolph, Rev. E. J. Tring •Randolph, Rev. W. Newington, near Folkstone •Randolph, Rev. W. C. Hawkesbury Vicarage Raven, Rev. V. 11, Crescent-place, Burton-crescent •Rawle, Rev. R. Cheadle, Staffordshire •Ray, Rev. H. W. Kirkland, Kendal •Redfern, Rev. W. I. Magd. Hall •Reed, Rev. C. Chirton House, Tyne- mouth •Reed, Rev. J. Harold's Cross, Dublin •Reeve, Mr. W. Leamington •Reid, Rev. C. J. 42, Frederick- street, Edinburgh •Rew, Rev. Charles, Maidstone Rhides, M. T. Esq. Stanmoor Hall, Middlesex •Richards, Edw. Priest, Esq. Cardiff •Richards, Rev. Edw. Tew, Farlington Rectory, Havant •Richards, Rev. W. Upton, London •Richards, Rev. H. M. Ch. Ch. Oxford Rickards, Rev. F. Stowlangtoft, Suffolk •Rickards, E. P. Esq. •Riddell, Rev. J. C. B. Harrietsham •Riddle, John B. Esq. 2, Seymour Place, Bristol •Ridgway, Josh. jun. Esq.Wallsuches, near Bolton •Ridley, Rev.W. H. Hambledon •Ridley, N. J. Esq. Ch. Ch. Oxford •Rivaz, C. Esq. Great St. Helen's London •Roberts, Rev. H. Jesus Coll. Camb. •Roberts, Rev. L. Slaidburn, near Clitheroe, Yorkshire •Roberts, Rev. R. Milton Abbas, Dorsetshire •Robertson, Dr. Doctors' Commons, London •Robertson, Rev. J.C.Boxley, Maidstone •Robertson, Rev. J. C. Cheddington Hemel Hempstead, Bucks •Robin, Rev. P.R. Itchen, Southampton •Robins, Rev. Sanderson, Shaftsbury, Dorsetshire •Robinson, G. J. Esq. Hart Street, Bloomsbury •Robinson, Rev. Sir George, Bart. Cranford, Northamptonshire •Robinson, Rev. Christr. Kirknewton, near Wooler, Northumberland •Robinson, Rev. R. B. Lytharn, near Preston •Robson, T. U. Esq. Magd. Hall.Oxford •Rodmell, Rev. J. •Rodwell, Rev. J. M. St. Peter's, Saffron Hill, 7, ParkTerrace, Barnsbury Park •Rodwell, R. M. Esq. Exeter College, Oxford •Rogers, Edward, Esq. Eliot Place, Blackheath, Kent •Roper, Rev. C. Rector of St. Olave's Rose, Rev. H. H. Erdington •Ross, Rev. I. L. Fyfield, near Burford ••Ross and Argyll, Diocesan Library of **Routh, Rev. Dr. President of Magd. College, Oxford • R outledge, Rev. W. Ilminster, Somerset Rowland, Miss, Hereford •Rowlandson, Rev. J. Mansergh, near Kirby Lonsdale •Rowsell, Rev. T. J. ** Russell, D. "Watts, Esq. Biggin Hall, Oundle ** Russell, I. Watts, Esq. Ham Hall, Ashbourn, Derbyshire •Russell, Rev. S. Printing House Sq., London •Ryde, J. G. Esq. St. John's College, Oxford Ryder, Rev. George Dudley, Easton, Winchester Ryder, T. D. Esq. Oriel Coll. Oxford Samler, Rev. J. H. Bampton, Oxon. Sandford, Rev. G.B.Minshull, Cheshire Sandford, Rev. John, Dunchurch, near Rugby • Sandford, Frederick, Esq. • Sandham, Rev. James, Selsey Rec- tory, near Chichester LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. •Sandham, H. Esq. St. John's College, Oxford *Sandilands, Hon. and Rev. J. Coston Rectory, Melton Mowbray •Sandon, Lord, 39, Grosvenor-square Sankey, P. Esq. St John's Coll. Oxford •Sargeant, Rev. R. Worcester Saunders, Rev. A. P. Charter House •Savage, Rev. W. Queen's Coll. Oxford •Savory, J. S. Esq. 16, Somerset Place, Bath Scartli, Rev. H. Bathwick, Bath •Schofield, Rich. L. Esq. 20, Coleshill Street, Eaton Square ••Scott, Rev. R. Duloe, Cornwall • Scott, Rev. W. Ch. Ch. Hoxton •Scudamore, Rev. W. E. Ditchingham, Bungay •Selwyn, Rev. W. Canon of Ely Sewell, Rev. W. Exeter Coll. Professor of Moral Philosophy, Oxford •Seymour, E. W. Esq. Porthmawr, Breconshire Seymour, Rev. Sir J. Hobart, Bart, Prebendary of Gloucester •Seymour, Rev. R. Kinwarton, Alcester •Shairp, John C. Esq. Balliol Coll., Oxford •Sharpe, Rev. W. C. M.A. •Sharpies, Rev James Hool, War- rington •Shaw, Rev. G. Fen Drayton, near Cambridge •Shaw, Rev.John, Stoke, SJough, Bucks Shaw, Rev. M. Hawkhurst, Kent •Shea, Rev. Robert Francis Jones •Shedden, Rev. S. Pembroke College •Shelley, Rev.John, Kingsby Rectory, Cheadle, Staffordshire •Shepherd, Rev. S. North Somercote, near Louth, Lincolnshire •Sheppard, J. H. Esq. Queen's College Oxford •Sheppard, Rev. J. G. Repton Priory, Burton-on- Trent •Sheppard, Rev. F. M.A. Clare Hall, Cambridge Shield, Rev. W. T. Durham •Shilleto, Rev. Richard, M.A. King's College, Cambridge •Shilleto, Rev. W. York Shillibeer, Rev. J. Oundle •Shipston-on-Stour Theological Book Society *Shipton, Rev. J. N. Othery, near Bridgewater •Shirreff, Rev. S. B. Birkwell Minden, Warwick •Shirreff, Rev. R. St. John, Blackheath •Shorthand, Rev. H. Rector of Twin- stead •Short, Rev. A. Ravensthorpe Shuttleworth, Rev. E. •Sidgwick, C. Esq. Skipton, Yorkshire •Simes, G. F. Esq. *Simms, Rev. E. Bath Simms and Son, Bath Simpson, Rev. H. Bexhill •Simpson, Rev. W. H. Louth, Lincoln- shire •Simpson, R. Esq. •Simpson, Rev. J. D. Sidney Sussex College, Cambridge •Singer, Rev. Dr. I. H., S.F.T.C.D. •Singleton, Rev. R. C. Curate of Monart, Ireland •Sion College Library •Skeffington, Hon. H. R. Worcester College, Oxford •Skeffington, Hon. T. C. F. Worcester College, Oxford •Skinner, Fitzowen, Esq. 23, Keppel Street, Russell Square •Skinner, J. Esq. Xing William's Coll. Isle of Man •Skrine, Rev. Harcourt, Sunbury, Middlesex •Slade, Rev. James, Bolton •Sladen, Rev. E. H. M. Bockleton ••Slatter, Rev. John •Slocombe and Simms, Leeds •Small, Rev. Nath.P. Market Bosworth, Hinckley •Smirke, Sir Robert, London, 5, Strat- ford Place, Oxford-street, London •Smith, Rev. J. Campbell, Dawlish, Devon •Smith, Rev. Edw. Booking, Braintree Smith, Rev. G. Garvagh, Ireland •Smith, H.T. Esq. Queen's CoU, Oxford •Smith, Rev. J. Trinity College, Oxford •Smith, Rev. W. Great Cauford, Wim- borne •Smith, H. W. Esq. SUBSCRIBERS. •Smith, R. P. Esq. Pembroke College Smith, Rev. H. Sennicotts, Chichester •Smith, Rev. — Forgue •Smyth, Rev. H. Fenner, Glebe, Johns- town •Smythies, E. Esq. Lutterworth Snare, Mr. John, Reading Somers, the Countess of •Southampton Theological Library •Southwell, Rev. G. Boyton Rectory, Heytesbury, "Wilts Sparke, Rev. E. Hopton Vicarage, Norfolk •Spence, Rev. J. •Spencer, Rev. W. Pakenham, Starston, Norfolk Spranger, Rev. R. J. Exeter Coll. Oxford Spreat, Mr. W. Exeter •Spry, Rev.J. H. D.D. St.Mary-le-bone Spurgin, Rev. J. C. C. C. Cambridge •Stafford, Rev. J. C. Dinton, Salisbury •Stainton, T. Esq. "Wadham College, Oxford ♦Stanley, Rev. E. Rugby •Stanton, R. Esq. Brasenose College •Starey, B. H. Esq. Clerkenwell, London Starkey, Rev. A. B. C. St. John's Col- lege, Oxford •Steel, H. W. Esq. Mathune, near Chepstow •St John, Rev. Ambrose, Bransgore, Ringwood Stephens, Rev. C. L. Kencot, Burford ••Stert, Rev. A. R. 33, Connaught Square, London *Stevens, Rev. T. Bradford, Reading * Stevenson, Rev. J. Durham University Stewart, Mr. King "William Street •Stockdale, Rev. H. Mislerton Vicar- age, Bautry Stockdale, Rev. W. Linwood Rectory, Market Rasin •Stoker, Rev. H. Durham *Stoke3, S. N. Esq. Trin. Coll. Camb. •Stonehouse, Rev. "W. B. Owston •Stott, Miss, Bradford, Yorkshire •Street, J. Esq. Lloyd's Rooms,London "Street, "W. F. Esq. 13, Austin Friars, London •Stretton, Rev. H. 4 Great Smith Street, "Westminster Strong, Mr. W. Bristol *Stuart, Rev. John B., M.D. Billeston, Leicester •Stuart, Rev. Hamilton •Studdert, Rev. G. Dundalk •Sturges, S. Esq. Magdalene Hall ••Sturrock, Rev. W. Chaplain, Bengal Presidency •Stuart, Rev A. •Suckling, R. Esq. Caius Coll. Camb. •Swainson, C. A. Esq. Christ's College, Cambridge Swainson, Rev. E. E. Clunn, Shropshire •Swainson, Rev. C. L. Crick Rectory, Daventry •Swansborough, G. S. Esq. Pembroke College, Cambridge Sweet, Rev. C. Cornworthy, Totnes, Devon •Sweet, J. Hales, Esq. Spring Grove, Hunslet, Leeds "Swinney, Rev. H. H. Magd. College, Cambridge •Swire, John, Esq. Manfield Vicarage, Darlington •Sykes, G. M. Esq. Downing College, Cambridge ♦Tarbutt, Rev.A.C.St. Mary's, Reading •Tate, Frank, Esq. University College, Oxford Tatham, Rev. Arthur, Broadoak, Lost- withiel, Cornwall Tayler, Rev. A. W. Stoke Newington Taylor, Mr. J. Brighton ♦Taylor, John, Esq. Leicester •Taylor, A. Esq. Queen's Coll., Oxford •Tennant, Rev. "W. 3, Cawley- street. Westminster •Thomas, J. H. Esq. Trinity College, Cambridge •Thompson, Rev. E. H. St. James's, "Westminster •Thomson, Rev. "W. St. Nicholas, Guildford Thornton, Rev. T. Brockhall, "Weedon Thornton, Rev. W. Dodford, Weedon Thorp, Ven. Archdeacon, Durham ••Thorp, VenerableArchdeacon, Trinity College, Cambridge LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. •Thrupp, J. W. Esq. Upper Brook- street •Thurland, F. E. Esq. New College, Oxford •Thurtell, Rev. A. Caius College, Cam- bridge Thwaytes, Rev. J. Perpetual Curate of Trinity Church, Carlisle •Thynne, Right Hon. and Rev. Lord John, D.D. Rector of Street-cum- "Walton •Thynne, Rev. Lord Charles, Long- bridge Deverill, Warminster •Tindale, John, Esq. Huddersfield •Tireman, Mrs. Nurton, Chepstow •Todd, Rev. Dr. Trinity College, Dublin •Todd, Venerable Archdeacon, Settring- ton Malton, Yorkshire •Tonge, G. Esq. •Toovey, Mr. James, 36, St James Str. •Tottenham, Rev. E. Bath •Topham, Rer. J. Huddersfield •Tower, F. E. Esq. Theol. Coll. Wells •Tragett, Rev. T. H. Awbridge Danes, near Romsey •Treacher, I. S. Esq. Magd. Hall •Trench, Rev. F. S. Kilmoroney Athey •Trevelyan, Rev. J. Milverton, So- merset •Tripp, Rev. Dr. Silverton, Devonshire •Tristram, H. B. Esq. Lincoln College, Oxford •Tritton, Henry, Esq. 54, Lombard Street, London "Trollope, Rev. A. St Mary-le-bow •Trotter, C. Esq. Edinburgh •Trower, Rev. Walter, Wiston, near Steyning •Truro Theological Library, care of Rev. W. D. Longlands, Kenwyn, Cornwall ♦Trym, C. Esq. Theol. Coll. Wells Tuckwell, Henry, Esq. •Tupper, W. G. Esq. Trinity College, Oxford •Turbitt, Rev. J. H. Powick, near Worcester •Turner, Miss, Shooter's Hill, Kent •Turner, Rev. G. Chelsfield, Farn- borough, Kent Turner, Rev. J. Hagley, Stourbridge •Turner, J. Esq. Balliol Coll. Oxford Turner, Rev. Sam. H. D.D. Prof, in the New York Theol. Seminary of the Episcopal Church •Turner, Rev.W. Fishbourn.Chichester •Twining, Rev. D. Therfield, Royston •Twining, Richard, jun. Esq. Strand, London •Twining, James, Esq. Trinity College, Cambridge •Twiss, G.J. Great Shelford, Cambridge •Tyler, Rev. Geo. Trinity Coll. Oxford •Tyrrell, Rev. W. Beaulieu Rectory, Southampton •Tyrwhitt, Rev. R. E. Bombay •Underwood, R. Esq. Broadwell Rec- tory, Stow-on-the-Wold Utterton, Rev. I. S. Dorking •Vale, W.S.Esq. Worcester Coll, Oxford •Vaux, W. S. W. Esq. Ball. Coll. Oxford •Vaux, Rev. W. Winchester •Venables, C. Esq. Pembroke College, Cambridge •Venn, E. S. Esq. Highbury Park, near London •Vernon, Honourable Mrs. •Vickerman, C. R. Esq. Vigne, Rev. Henry, Sunbury, Middlesex •Vizard, J. Esq. Dursley, Gloucester •Voules, Rev. F. Eton •Vyrvyan, Rev. V. F. Withiel Rectory, Bodmin •Wade, Benjamin, Esq. Dublin •Wade, Rev. N.StPanl's, BunhiU Row •Wagner, A. Esq. Cambridge •Wagner, G. Esq. Trinity College, Cambridge •Wagstaff, Rev. C. Aberdeen •Wakes, Rev. T. Bentley, South Stain- ley, near Harrogate Walford, Rev. O. Charterhouse ••Walford, Rev. W. Hatfield, Witham, Essex •Walker, Rev. R. Wadham College, Oxford •Walker, Rev. C. H. North Tamerton, Launceston •Wallace, Rev. G. Canterbury Waller, Rev. E. A. Warwick SUBSCRIBERS. "Waller, Rev.W.Hartrow, near Taunton •Walter, H. Esq. Exeter Coll. Oxford •Walters, Mr. Rugeley * Ward, Re v. John, Great B edwyn, Wilts *Ward, Rev. W. C. Southampton *Wardroper, Rev. C. Gloucester •Warre, Rev. Fran. Bishop's Lydiard * Warter, Rev. I. Wood, West Tarring, Sussex *Warwick Rural Deanery Society Wason, James, Esq. Roweroft, Stroud, Gloucestershire •Watkins, W.B.Esq. Wadham College, Oxford •Watkins, Rev. B. E. •Watson, Rev. Alexander, St. John's, Cheltenham •Watson, Joshua, Esq. Park- Street •Watts, Rev. John, Tarrant-Gunville, Dorset •Webb, Benj. Esq. Trinity College, Cambridge •Webb, Mr. Wareing, Liverpool •Webster, Rev. S. K. Isham Rectory, Kettering •Weguelin, Rev. W. A. South Stoke, near Arundel Wells, Rev. F. Woodchurch, Tenter- den, Kent •Wells Theological College *Wenham, J. G. Esq. St. John's College, Oxford •Wentworth, Rev. S. E. Liverpool Weston, Francis M.Esq. Charleston, U.S. * Weston, Plowden, E sq. Charleston, U. S •Whall, Rev. W. Thierning Rectory, Oundle •Wheatley, E. B. Esq. Cote Walls •Whitby, R. Vernon, Esq. Osbaston Lodge, Market- Bosworth •Whitcome, J. Esq. Gloucester •White, Rev. R. Longridge, near Ro- chester, Lancashire •White, Rev. R. Marsh, Aveley, Essex •White, Horace P. Esq. Magd. Hall, Oxford •White, H. M. Esq. New College •White, A. Esq. Balliol Coll. Oxford •Whitehead, Rev. W. Worcester Col- lege, Oxford •Whitelegg, Rev.W. Hulme, near Man- chester Whitley and Booth, Messrs. Halifax •Whitfield, Rev. G. T. Bockleton, Tenbury, Worcestershire •Whitley, Rev. J. Manchester •Whitaker, Rev. G. Queen's College, Cambridge •Whorwood, Rev. T. Magd. College, Oxford •Wickens, Rev. Henry, Margaretting •Wilberforce, Rev. H. W. East Far- leigh, Maidstone Wilberforce, Rev. S. Archdeacon of Surrey *Wilkins,VenerableGeorge,D.D. Arch- deacon of Nottingham, Southwell Wilkins, Rev. J. M. •Wilkinson, Rev. M. Marlborough •Wilkinson, Rev. Henry J. Queen's College, Oxford •Wilkinson, T. W. Esq. ■ University College, Durham Williams, Rev. E. T. Mount Ballan, Chepstow "Williams, Rev. I. Bisley, Stroud Williams, Rev. George, Wicherford, Worcester •Williams, M. D. Esq. Cwmcynfelin, Aberystwith •Williams, Rev. W. St. Bartholomew's, Hyde, Winchester •Williams, Rev. T. E., D.D., Buckle- bury, Berks •Williams, Rev. J. Jesus Coll. Oxford •Willis, Rev. T. Rayne, near Braintree •Willis, Rev. W. D. Green Park, Bath •Willock, Rev. W. W. St. Philips, Stepney, London •Willott, Rev. John, Farnborough, Kent •Wilshire, E. S. Esq. Worcester Col- lege, Oxford •Wilson, Rev. Charles, Liverpool •Wilson, Rev. Francis, Rugeley •Wilson, Rev. J. Corpus Christi Coll. Oxford •Wilson, L. Esq. Norwood Hill •Wilson, R. Esq. Magdalene Hall ••Wilson, Rev. Robert, B.A. Bootle, Liverpool. Presented as a testimonial of regard from the congregation at St. Martin's, Liverpool •Wilson, A. Esq. Balham, Surrey Wise, Rev. H. Offchurch LIBRARY OF ANGLO-CATHOLIC THEOLOGY. •Wise, Mrs. M. Shrublands, Leaming- ton •Wither, Rev. H. I. B.Worthing, Hants •Wither, Rev. W. H. W. Bigg, Otter- borne, near Winchester •Withers, Rev. George, Bishop's Coll. Calcutta Wix, Mr. H. Bridge- Street, Black- friars Wix, Rev. S. St Bartholomew's Hospital Wix, W. Esq. Tonbridge Wells *Wix, Rev. Joseph, Littlebury, near Saffron Walden, Essex •Wodehouse, G. Esq. 89, Hamilton- terrace, St. John's Wood Wolfe, J. Esq. Wollaston, T. T. Esq. St. Peter's Col- lege, Cambridge •Wood, Rev. R. •Wood, Rev. R. Orme •Woodcock, H. Esq. •Woodford, A. F. A. Esq. University College, Durham. •Woods, Rev. G. H. Westdean, Chichester •Woodward, Rev. F. B. Dublin •Woodward, Rev. T. Woollcombe, Rev. W. Balliol College * Woollcombe, W. W. Esq. Exeter Col- lege ♦Woolley, Rev. John, University Coll. Oxford •Worcester College Library ••Wordsworth, Rev. Christopher, D.D. Head Master of Harrow School •Wordsworth, Rev. Christopher, D.D. Buxted Parsonage, Uckfield, Sussex Wordsworth, Rev. C. Winchester Wordsworth, Rev. C. F. Gillingham, Dorset •Worgan, Rev. John H. Calthorpe, Rugby •Worsley, Rev. J.H. Tilehurst, Reading •Worthy, Rev. C. Curate of St. David's, Exeter Wragge, G. Esq. Cheadle, Stafford- shire •Wray, Rev. C. Liverpool •Wrench, Rev. J. G. D.C.L. Salehurst, Sussex •Wrench, Rev. Frederick, Stowting, Kent •Wright, H. Esq. Magd. Hall, Oxford •Wright, Rev. W. Colchester •Wright, Rev. J. P. Wrottesley, Rev. E. J. Tettinhall, Wol- verhampton •Wyatt, C. F. Esq. Ch. Ch. •Wyld, Rev. W. Wocdbro, Wilts •Wylie, R Esq. Beverley * Wynter, Rev. J. Cecil, Gatton Rectory, Reigate •Yard, Rev. G. B. Wragby, Lincoln- shire •Yates, Rev. W. St Mary's, Reading •Yates, Thomas, Esq. M.D. Brighton •Young, Rev.J.G.Leighterton Rectory, Dunkirk •Young, Rev. R. G. •Young, Rev. R. Riseley, Beds Dickinson, F. H. Esq. £10. 10s. donation. Evans, H. N. Esq. £5. 5s. donation. J. H. £\. Is. donation. L. M. £1. Is. donation. M. A. F. jgl. Is. donation. BOOKS RECENTLY PUBLISHED AT THE UNIVERSITY PRESS, OXFORD SOLD BY JOHN HENRY PARKER, OXFORD; PAYNE AND FOSS, AND C+ARDNER, LONDON. (JULY, 1844). 12 vols. 8vo. Price 4Z. 10s. in sheets. THE WORKS OF THOMAS JACKSON, D.D. 2 vols. 8vo. Price 19s. in sheets. The MINOR THEOLOGICAL WORKS of JOHN PEARSON, D.D., SOMETIME BISHOP OF CHESTER, AND MASTER OF TRINITY COLLEGE, CAMBRIDGE. Now first collected, with a Memoir of the Author, Notes, and Index. By Edward Churton, M.A., Canon of York, and Rector of Crayke, in the county of Durham. 2 vols. 8vo. Price 15s. in sheets, JOANNIS PEARSONI OLIM EPISCOPI CESTRIENSIS ADVERSARIA HESYCHIANA. New Edition, 2 vols. 8vo. Price 9s. in sheets. AN EXPOSITION OF THE CREED, By JOHN PEARSON, D.D., sometime Lord Bishop of Chester. Revised and corrected by the Rev. E. Burton, D.D., late Regius Professor of Divinity, and Canon of Christ Church. New Edition. 2 vols. 8vo. Price 10s. in sheets, THE WORKS of the Right Reverend Father in God JOSEPH BUTLER, D.C.L., SOMETIME LORD BISHOP OF DURHAM. To which is added THE INDEX TO THE ANALOGY, from a MS. in the Bodleian Library, prepared by Dr. Bentham, and corrected by the Author himself; and a Preface, giving some account of the Character and "Writings of the Author. By Samuel Halifax, D.D., late Lord Bishop of Gloucester. A New Edition. 2 vols. 8vo. Price 16s. in sheets, A RATIONAL ACCOUNT OF THE GROUNDS OF PROTESTANT RELIGION. Being A Vindication of Archbishop Laud's Relation of a Con- ference, &c. from the pretended Answer of T. C. "Wherein the true grounds of faith are cleared, and the false discovered ; the Church of England vindicated from the imputation of schism ; and the most important particular controversies between us and those of the Church of Rome throughly examined. By EDWARD STILLINGFLEET, D.D., Sometime Dean of St. Paul's, and Chaplain in Ordinary to His Majesty. Second Edition, with copious Indexes, 6 vols. 8vo. Price 31. in sheets. THE WORKS OF THE REV. DANIEL WATERLAND, D.D., Formerly Master of Magdalene College, Cambridge, Canon of Windsor, and Archdeacon of Middlesex. To which is prefixed, A REVIEW OF THE AUTHOR'S LIFE AND WRITINGS, By William Van Mildert, D.D., Lord Bishop of Llandaff. UNIVERSITY PRESS, OXFORD Price 21. 2s. in sheets. A GREEK-ENGLISH LEXICON BASED ON THE GERMAN WORK OP FRANCIS PASSOW, By H. G. LIDDELL, M.A., and R. SCOTT, M.A. Square \2mo. Price 12s. in sheets. A LEXICON CHIEFLY FOR THE USE OF SCHOOLS ABRIDGED FROM THE GREEK-ENGLISH LEXICON OF H. G. LIDDELL, M.A., and R. SCOTT, M.A. 4 Vols. 8vo. 21. 8s. in sheets, EUSEBII PAMPHILI EVANGELIC^ PREPARATIONS. Libri XV. ad MSS. recensuit THOMAS GAISFORD, S.T.P. 8vo. Price 10s. in sheets. EUSEBII PAMPHILI ECLOGUE PROPHETIOE. E Codice Manuscripto Bibliothecae Caesareae Vindobensis nunc primum edidit THOMAS GAISFORD, S.T.P., Miis Christi Decanus necnon Linguae Graecae Professor Regius. 4 Vols. 8vo. 21. 10s. in sheets. EUSEBII PAMPHILI HISTORLE ECCLESIASTICS. Libri decern ad codd. MSS. recensuit Edv. Burton, S.T.P., accedunt Annotationes variorum. 8vo. 10s. in slieets. SOCRATIS SCHOLASTICI HISTORLE ECCLESIASTICS Libri septem ex recensione H. Valesii. 8vo. 12s. in sheets. CATENAE GRSCORUM PATRUM IN S. PAULI EPISTOLAS, Ad Timotheum, Titum, Philemona.et ad Hebrasos. Ad fidem codd. MSS. edidit J. A. CRAMER, S.T.P. In 1 Vol. royal 8vo. Price 11. in sheets. THE HISTORY OF THE REBELLION AND CIVIL WARS IN ENGLAND. From the original MS. By EDWARD EARL OF CLARENDON. Also, his Life written by himself, in which is included a Continuation of his History of the Grand Rebellion. With a large Index. BOOKS RECENTLY PUBLISHED BY JOHN HENRY PARKER, OXFORD. & Ut'brarg of jpatfiers OF THE HOLY CATHOLIC CHURCH, ANTERIOR TO THE DIVISION OF THE EAST AND WEST. TRANSLATED BY MEMBERS OF THE ENGLISH CHURCH. VOLUMES RECENTLY PUBLISHED. 1. Third Edition, price to Subscribers 7s. To Non-Subscribers 9s. THE CONFESSIONS OF S. AUGUSTINE. BY THE REV. E. B. PUSEY, D.D. 16. Price to Subscribers 10s. To Non-Subscribers 14s. S. AUGUSTINE'S HOMILIES on the NEW TESTAMENT. Vol. I. By the REV. R. G. MACMULLEN, M.A., Fellow of C.C.C. 17. Price to Subscribers 9s. To Non- Subscribers 12s. S. CYPRIAN'S EPISTLES. BY THE REV. H. CAREY. M.A. A COMMENTARY ON THE FOUR GOSPELS, COLLECTED OUT OF THE WORKS OF THE FATHERS TRANSLATED FROM THE CATENA AUUEA OF THOMAS AQUINAS. Vol. I. St. Matthew, in three Parts, 11. 8s. Vol. II. St. Mark, 10s. 6d. Vol. III. St. Luke, in two Parts, 11. Is. Vol. IV. St. John, in the press. 8vo. Vols..I. and II., each 10s. 6d. THE ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY of M. L'ABBE FLEURY, From the Second Oecumenical Council, A.D. 381 — 429. Translated with Notes. It is proposed to continue this series to the time of Pope Gregory the Great, A.D. 603, which is calculated to form six vols. The Third Volume is nearly ready. 8vo. Price 5s. Part I. ANALECTA CHRISTIANA, In usum tironum edidit et annotationihus illustravit C. MARRIOTT, A.M., Coll. Oriel. Socius. 12mo. 6s. SERMONS preached before the university of oxford, and in other places. By the Rev. C. MARRIOTT, M.A. Fellow of Oriel College, and late Principal of the Diocesan College at Chichester. 2 volumes, 8vo. Boards, price 21s. DE POETICS VI MEDICA. PR^ELECTIONES ACADEMICS OXONII HABITUE, Annis mdcccxxxii — mdcccxli, a JOANNE KEBLE, A.M., Poeticae Publico Prffilectore, Collegii Orielensis Nuper Socio. BOOKS RECENTLY PUBLISHED Uflbrarp of &ngIo=ffiati)oItc ©Seologs. Volumes published for 1841. BISHOP ANDREWES' SERMONS, Vols. I. to IV. It. Is. ARCHBISHOP BRAMHALL'S WORKS. Vol.1. 10*. 6d. BISHOP BULL'S HARMONY OF ST. PAUL AND ST. JAMES ON JUSTIFICATION. 6s. Second Edition. For 1842. BISHOP NICHOLSON ON THE CATECHISM. 6s. Second Edition. ARCHBISHOP BRAMHALL'S WORKS. Vol. II. and III. Us. each. BISHOP ANDREWES' SERMONS. Vol. V. 14s. BISHOP BEVERIDGE'S WORKS. Vol. I. 12s. Reprinting. BISHOP BULL'S ANSWER TO STRICTURES, AND APOLOGY FOR HIS HARMONY. Now first translated. 12s. Reprinting. For 1843. ARCHBISHOP BRAMHALL'S WORKS. Vol. IV. Nearly ready. BISHOP BEVERIDGE'S WORKS. Vol. II. & III. each 12s. BISHOP COSIN'S WORKS. Vol. I. 12s. BISHOP OVERALL'S CONVOCATION BOOK, nearly ready. THORNDIKE'S WORKS. Vol. I. Part I. 10s. In the press for 1844- THORNDIKE'S- WORKS. Vol. I. Part II. 10s. BISHOP COSIN'S WORKS. Vol. II. BISHOP BEVERIDGE'S WORKS. Vol. IV. 12s. MARSHALL — The Penitential Discipline of the Primitive Church, for the first 400 years after Christ. 6s. BISHOP GUNNING — The Paschal, or Lent Fast ; Apostolical and Perpetual. JOHNSON — The Unbloody Sacrifice, and Altar Unveiledand Supported. Vol. I. Subscribers paying two guineas annually IN ADVANCE are entitled to all the Pub- lications for that year without further payment. A New Edition in One Volume, 8vo. 10s. 6d. THE ENGLISH THEOLOGICAL WORKS OF GEORGE BULL, D.D., Sometime Lord Bishop of St. David's. *»* This Volume will be necessary for the Subscribers to the Anglo- Catholic Library to complete Bishop Bull's Works, as the Translations of the Latin Works only will appear in that series. 8vo. 10s. Qd. A DISSERTATION ON THE VALIDITY of the ORDINATIONS of the ENGLISH, "and of ' The SUCCESSION of the BISHOPS of the ANGLICAN CHURCH ; With the Proofs establishing the Facts advanced in this Work : By the Rev. Father PIERRE FRANCOIS LE COURAYER, Canon Regular and Chief Librarian of the Augnstinian Abbey of St. Genevieve at Paris. Nearly ready, 8vo. AN INQUIRY INTO THE MEANS OF GRACE, AS ENJOYED IN THE CHURCH Or ENGLAND, THEIR MUTUAL CONNECTION AND COMBINED USE ; In EIGHT SERMONS preached before the University of Oxford, AT CANON BAMPTON'S LECTURE, 1844. By R. W. JELF, D.D., Canon of Christ Church, Oxford, and Principal of King's College, London : formerly Fellow of Oriel College. Lix tfie Press 8t - o. SERMONS PREACHED BEFORE the UNIVERSITY of OXFORD. By HENRY EDWARD MANNING, M A. Of Merton College, Oxford ; Archdeacon of Chichester. Svo. 10s. 6d. SERMONS ON THE EPISTLE TO THE ROMANS AND OTHERS. 13y the Rev. T. W. ALLIES, M.A., Rector of Launton, Oxon. BY J. H. PARKER, OXFORD. The 24th Edition. 18mo. Cloth 6s. Morocco 8s. 6d. THE CHRISTIAN YEAR. Thoughts in Verse for the Sundays and Holidays throughout the Year. Second Edition. 32mo. Cloth 3s. 6d., Morocco 5s. THE BAPTISTERY, or THE WAY OF ETERNAL LIFE. BY THE AUTHOR OF "THE CATHEDRAL." Foolscap &vo. 5s. GERMAN PROTESTANTISM, AND THE RIGHT OF PRIVATE JUDGMENT IN THE INTERPRETATION OF SCRIPTURE. A Sketch of German Theology from the Reformation to the present time, in a Series of Letters to a Layman. By the Rev. G. H. DEWAR, M.A, late of Exeter College, Oxford, and Chaplain to the British Residents at Hamhurg. Z2mo. Price in cloth or sheep, 2s. ; roan, 2s. 6d. ; morocco, 3s. BISHOP WILSON ON THE LORD'S SUPPER, Reprinted ENTIRE from the Folio Edition. A SHORT AND PLAIN INSTRUCTION FOR THE BETTER UNDERSTANDING OF THE LORD'S SUPPER. TO WHICH IS ANNEXED, THE OFFICE OF THE HOLY COMMUNION, WITH PROPER HELPS AND DIRECTIONS. BY THOMAS "WILSON, D.D., sometime Lord Bishop of Sodor and Man. Fcap. 8vo., 5s. THE DAY HOURS OF THE CHURCH, WITH THE GREGORIAN TONES. Part I. Containing the Ordinary Offices through the Week. . Edited by ALBANY J. CHRISTIE, M.A., Fellow of Oriel College, Oxford. OXFORD EDITIONS. s. d. ANDREWES' [Bp.] Service for Consecration of Churches 1 BULL'S [Bp.] Vindication of the Church of England 2 6 HAMMOND'S Paramesis - -26 HENSHAW'S [Bp.] Meditations 2 KEN'S [Bp.] Manual of Prayers 1 LAUD'S [Abp.] Devotions - 3 6 Speeches on the Liturgy, &c. - 3 6 NELSON'S Life of Bishop Bull 3 6 PATRICK'S [Bp.] Advice to a Friend 2 6 on Prayer - - 3 6 on Repentance and Fasting - 2 6 PRIDEAUX'S [Bp.] Doctrine of Prayer - 4 SARAVIA on the Priesthood - 2 6 SCANDRET on the Saciament - 2 6 SHERLOCK'S Practical Christian, 2 vols. 5 Church Catechism Paraphrased - 10 SPARROW'S [Bp.] Rationale on the Common Prayer, a New Edition 5 SPELMAN — Churches not to he Violated 2 6 SPINCKES'S Devotions - 3 6 SUTTON'S Disce Mori, Learn to Die 3 6 Disce Vivere, Learn to Live - - 3 6 Meditations on the Sacrament, a New Edition - 3 6 TAYLOR'S [Bp.] Golden Grove, and Guide for the Penitent - 2 6 VINCENTIUS of LIRINS against Heresy - 2 6 WELLS'S Rich Man's Duly; and Dowsing's Journal 2 6 WILSON'S [Bp.] Sacra Privata - 3 6 — Parochialia - - - 2 6 BOOKS RECENTLY PUBLISHED BY J. H. PARKER. Just published, price 2s. (id., No. 2. of ©fie &wfiaeotogfcaI ^Journal, Under the direction of the Committee of the British Archaeological Association. Illustrated by numerous Woodcuts. Also, price 2*. 6d., No. I., second edition. In the Press, Fourth Edition, much enlarged. A GLOSSARY OF TERMS USED IN GRECIAN, EOMAN, ITALIAN, AND GOTHIC ARCHITECTURE. 8vo., Illustrated by numerous Woodcuts, A GUIDE TO THE ARCHITECTURAL ANTIQUITIES IN THE NEIGHBOURHOOD OF' OXFORD, comprising a circuit of 10 miles. Part I. Deanery of Bicester. 4s. Part II. Deanery of Woodstock. 7s. 6d. Part III. Deanery of Cuddesden, in the Press. Part IV. Deanery of Abingdon, preparing/or Publication. Third Edition enlarged. Small 8vo. 6s. 6d. REMARKS ON ENGLISH CHURCHES, And on the Expediency of rendering Sepulchral Memorials subservient to Pious and Christian uses. By J. H. MARKLAND, F.R.S., S.A. Second Edition, revised and enlarged, small 8vo. 6s. ANGLICAN CHURCH ARCHITECTURE, With some Remarks upon Ecclesiastical Furniture. By JAMES BARR, Architect Third Edition. Small 8vo. 3s. 6d. ST. ANTHOLIN'S; or, OLD CHURCHES AND NEW. A TALE FOR THE TIMES. By FRANCIS E. PAGET, M.A., Rector of Elford, and Chaplain to the Lord Bishop of Oxford. By the same Author. Small 8vo. 4s. 6d. cloth, with plates. MILFORD MALVOISIN; or, PEWS AND PEWHOLDERS. Royal 8vo. Price 7s. 6d. MEMORIALS OF CODFORD ST. MARY, WILTSHIRE, Containing particulars of the Church. With Six Plates of Illustration, and several Engravings on Wood. By JAMES INGRAM, D.D., President of Trinity College. Author of" Memorials of Oxford." 8vo. illustrated by Ten Woodcuts, Is, a Paper on JWonuments. By the Rev. JOHN ARMSTRONG, B.A., Priest Vicar of Exeter Cathedral. 8vo. illustrated by seven Woodcuts, 2s. 6d. He mm- lis upon Kl.insiuc @j)apels, WITH OBSERVATIONS ON THE ARCHITECTURE AND PRESENT STATE OF THE CHANTRY ON WAKEFIELD BRIDGE. By JOHN CHESSELL BUCKLER, & CHARLES BUCKLER, Architects. Preparing for Publication, ?i)tnts on ffllnss fainting, BY AN AMATEUR. ILLUSTRATED BY COLOURED PLATES FROM ANCIENT EXAMPLES.